home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1996-10-11 | 680.4 KB | 16,853 lines |
-
- THE REPUBLIC
-
- by Plato
- (360 B.C.)
-
- translated by Benjamin Jowett
-
-
-
-
- THE INTRODUCTION
-
- THE Republic of Plato is the longest of his works with the exception
- of the Laws, and is certainly the greatest of them. There are nearer
- approaches to modern metaphysics in the Philebus and in the Sophist;
- the Politicus or Statesman is more ideal; the form and institutions
- of the State are more clearly drawn out in the Laws; as works of art,
- the Symposium and the Protagoras are of higher excellence. But no
- other Dialogue of Plato has the same largeness of view and the same
- perfection of style; no other shows an equal knowledge of the world,
- or contains more of those thoughts which are new as well as old,
- and not of one age only but of all. Nowhere in Plato is there a deeper
- irony or a greater wealth of humor or imagery, or more dramatic power.
- Nor in any other of his writings is the attempt made to interweave
- life and speculation, or to connect politics with philosophy.
- The Republic is the centre around which the other Dialogues may
- be grouped; here philosophy reaches the highest point to which ancient
- thinkers ever attained. Plato among the Greeks, like Bacon among
- the moderns, was the first who conceived a method of knowledge,
- although neither of them always distinguished the bare outline
- or form from the substance of truth; and both of them had to be
- content with an abstraction of science which was not yet realized.
- He was the greatest metaphysical genius whom the world has seen;
- and in him, more than in any other ancient thinker, the germs of future
- knowledge are contained. The sciences of logic and psychology,
- which have supplied so many instruments of thought to after-ages, are based
- upon the analyses of Socrates and Plato. The principles of definition,
- the law of contradiction, the fallacy of arguing in a circle,
- the distinction between the essence and accidents of a thing or notion,
- between means and ends, between causes and conditions; also the division
- of the mind into the rational, concupiscent, and irascible elements,
- or of pleasures and desires into necessary and unnecessary--
- these and other great forms of thought are all of them to be found
- in the Republic, and were probably first invented by Plato.
- The greatest of all logical truths, and the one of which writers
- on philosophy are most apt to lose sight, the difference between
- words and things, has been most strenuously insisted on by him,
- although he has not always avoided the confusion of them in his
- own writings. But he does not bind up truth in logical formulae,--
- logic is still veiled in metaphysics; and the science which he
- imagines to "contemplate all truth and all existence" is very unlike
- the doctrine of the syllogism which Aristotle claims to have
- discovered.
-
- Neither must we forget that the Republic is but the third part
- of a still larger design which was to have included an ideal
- history of Athens, as well as a political and physical philosophy.
- The fragment of the Critias has given birth to a world-famous fiction,
- second only in importance to the tale of Troy and the legend of Arthur;
- and is said as a fact to have inspired some of the early navigators
- of the sixteenth century. This mythical tale, of which the subject
- was a history of the wars of the Athenians against the Island
- of Atlantis, is supposed to be founded upon an unfinished poem
- of Solon, to which it would have stood in the same relation
- as the writings of the logographers to the poems of Homer.
- It would have told of a struggle for Liberty, intended to represent
- the conflict of Persia and Hellas. We may judge from the noble
- commencement of the Timaeus, from the fragment of the Critias itself,
- and from the third book of the Laws, in what manner Plato would
- have treated this high argument. We can only guess why the great
- design was abandoned; perhaps because Plato became sensible of some
- incongruity in a fictitious history, or because he had lost his
- interest in it, or because advancing years forbade the completion
- of it; and we may please ourselves with the fancy that had this
- imaginary narrative ever been finished, we should have found Plato
- himself sympathizing with the struggle for Hellenic independence,
- singing a hymn of triumph over Marathon and Salamis, perhaps making
- the reflection of Herodotus where he contemplates the growth
- of the Athenian empire--"How brave a thing is freedom of speech,
- which has made the Athenians so far exceed every other state
- of Hellas in greatness!" or, more probably, attributing the victory
- to the ancient good order of Athens and to the favor of Apollo
- and Athene.
-
- Again, Plato may be regarded as the "captain" ('arhchegoz') or leader
- of a goodly band of followers; for in the Republic is to be found
- the original of Cicero's De Republica, of St. Augustine's City
- of God, of the Utopia of Sir Thomas More, and of the numerous
- other imaginary States which are framed upon the same model.
- The extent to which Aristotle or the Aristotelian school were indebted
- to him in the Politics has been little recognized, and the recognition
- is the more necessary because it is not made by Aristotle himself.
- The two philosophers had more in common than they were conscious of;
- and probably some elements of Plato remain still undetected in Aristotle.
- In English philosophy too, many affinities may be traced, not only
- in the works of the Cambridge Platonists, but in great original
- writers like Berkeley or Coleridge, to Plato and his ideas.
- That there is a truth higher than experience, of which the mind bears
- witness to herself, is a conviction which in our own generation has
- been enthusiastically asserted, and is perhaps gaining ground.
- Of the Greek authors who at the Renaissance brought a new
- life into the world Plato has had the greatest influence.
- The Republic of Plato is also the first treatise upon education,
- of which the writings of Milton and Locke, Rousseau, Jean Paul,
- and Goethe are the legitimate descendants. Like Dante or Bunyan,
- he has a revelation of another life; like Bacon, he is profoundly
- impressed with the unity of knowledge; in the early Church
- he exercised a real influence on theology, and at the Revival
- of Literature on politics. Even the fragments of his words when
- "repeated at second-hand" have in all ages ravished the hearts
- of men, who have seen reflected in them their own higher nature.
- He is the father of idealism in philosophy, in politics,
- in literature. And many of the latest conceptions of modern thinkers
- and statesmen, such as the unity of knowledge, the reign of law,
- and the equality of the sexes, have been anticipated in a dream
- by him.
-
- ARGUMENT
-
- The argument of the Republic is the search after Justice, the nature
- of which is first hinted at by Cephalus, the just and blameless old man--
- then discussed on the basis of proverbial morality by Socrates
- and Polemarchus--then caricatured by Thrasymachus and partially
- explained by Socrates--reduced to an abstraction by Glaucon
- and Adeimantus, and having become invisible in the individual reappears
- at length in the ideal State which is constructed by Socrates.
- The first care of the rulers is to be education, of which an outline
- is drawn after the old Hellenic model, providing only for an improved
- religion and morality, and more simplicity in music and gymnastic,
- a manlier strain of poetry, and greater harmony of the individual
- and the State. We are thus led on to the conception of a higher State,
- in which "no man calls anything his own," and in which there is neither
- "marrying nor giving in marriage," and "kings are philosophers"
- and "philosophers are kings;" and there is another and higher education,
- intellectual as well as moral and religious, of science as well as of art,
- and not of youth only but of the whole of life. Such a State is
- hardly to be realized in this world and would quickly degenerate.
- To the perfect ideal succeeds the government of the soldier
- and the lover of honor, this again declining into democracy,
- and democracy into tyranny, in an imaginary but regular order having
- not much resemblance to the actual facts. When "the wheel has come
- full circle" we do not begin again with a new period of human life;
- but we have passed from the best to the worst, and there we end.
- The subject is then changed and the old quarrel of poetry and
- philosophy which had been more lightly treated in the earlier books
- of the Republic is now resumed and fought out to a conclusion.
- Poetry is discovered to be an imitation thrice removed from the truth,
- and Homer, as well as the dramatic poets, having been condemned
- as an imitator, is sent into banishment along with them.
- And the idea of the State is supplemented by the revelation of a
- future life.
-
- The division into books, like all similar divisions, is probably later
- than the age of Plato. The natural divisions are five in number;--( 1)
- Book I and the first half of Book II down to the paragraph beginning,
- "I had always admired the genius of Glaucon and Adeimantus,"
- which is introductory; the first book containing a refutation
- of the popular and sophistical notions of justice, and concluding,
- like some of the earlier Dialogues, without arriving at any
- definite result. To this is appended a restatement of the nature
- of justice according to common opinion, and an answer is demanded
- to the question--What is justice, stripped of appearances?
- The second division (2) includes the remainder of the second and
- the whole of the third and fourth books, which are mainly occupied
- with the construction of the first State and the first education.
- The third division (3) consists of the fifth, sixth, and seventh books,
- in which philosophy rather than justice is the subject of inquiry,
- and the second State is constructed on principles of communism
- and ruled by philosophers, and the contemplation of the idea
- of good takes the place of the social and political virtues.
- In the eighth and ninth books (4) the perversions of States and of
- the individuals who correspond to them are reviewed in succession;
- and the nature of pleasure and the principle of tyranny are
- further analyzed in the individual man. The tenth book (5) is
- the conclusion of the whole, in which the relations of philosophy
- to poetry are finally determined, and the happiness of the citizens
- in this life, which has now been assured, is crowned by the vision
- of another.
-
- Or a more general division into two parts may be adopted; the first
- (Books I - IV) containing the description of a State framed generally
- in accordance with Hellenic notions of religion and morality,
- while in the second (Books V - X) the Hellenic State is transformed
- into an ideal kingdom of philosophy, of which all other governments
- are the perversions. These two points of view are really opposed,
- and the opposition is only veiled by the genius of Plato.
- The Republic, like the Phaedrus, is an imperfect whole; the higher light
- of philosophy breaks through the regularity of the Hellenic temple,
- which at last fades away into the heavens. Whether this imperfection
- of structure arises from an enlargement of the plan; or from the
- imperfect reconcilement in the writer's own mind of the struggling
- elements of thought which are now first brought together by him;
- or, perhaps, from the composition of the work at different times--
- are questions, like the similar question about the Iliad and the Odyssey,
- which are worth asking, but which cannot have a distinct answer.
- In the age of Plato there was no regular mode of publication,
- and an author would have the less scruple in altering or adding
- to a work which was known only to a few of his friends.
- There is no absurdity in supposing that he may have laid his
- labors aside for a time, or turned from one work to another;
- and such interruptions would be more likely to occur in the case
- of a long than of a short writing. In all attempts to determine
- the chronological he order of the Platonic writings on internal evidence,
- this uncertainty about any single Dialogue being composed at one time
- is a disturbing element, which must be admitted to affect longer works,
- such as the Republic and the Laws, more than shorter ones.
- But, on the other hand, the seeming discrepancies of the Republic
- may only arise out of the discordant elements which the philosopher
- has attempted to unite in a single whole, perhaps without being
- himself able to recognize the inconsistency which is obvious to us.
- For there is a judgment of after ages which few great writers have
- ever been able to anticipate for themselves. They do not perceive
- the want of connection in their own writings, or the gaps in their
- systems which are visible enough to those who come after them.
- In the beginnings of literature and philosophy, amid the first
- efforts of thought and language, more inconsistencies occur than now,
- when the paths of speculation are well worn and the meaning of words
- precisely defined. For consistency, too, is the growth of time;
- and some of the greatest creations of the human mind have been wanting
- in unity. Tried by this test, several of the Platonic Dialogues,
- according to our modern ideas, appear to be defective, but the
- deficiency is no proof that they were composed at different times
- or by different hands. And the supposition that the Republic was
- written uninterruptedly and by a continuous effort is in some degree
- confirmed by the numerous references from one part of the work
- to another.
-
- The second title, "Concerning Justice," is not the one by
- which the Republic is quoted, either by Aristotle or generally
- in antiquity, and, like the other second titles of the Platonic
- Dialogues, may therefore be assumed to be of later date.
- Morgenstern and others have asked whether the definition of justice,
- which is the professed aim, or the construction of the State
- is the principal argument of the work. The answer is,
- that the two blend in one, and are two faces of the same truth;
- for justice is the order of the State, and the State is the visible
- embodiment of justice under the conditions of human society.
- The one is the soul and the other is the body, and the Greek ideal
- of the State, as of the individual, is a fair mind in a fair body.
- In Hegelian phraseology the State is the reality of which justice
- is the ideal. Or, described in Christian language, the kingdom
- of God is within, and yet develops into a Church or external kingdom;
- "the house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens,"
- is reduced to the proportions of an earthly building. Or, to use
- a Platonic image, justice and the State are the warp and the woof
- which run through the whole texture. And when the constitution
- of the State is completed, the conception of justice is not dismissed,
- but reappears under the same or different names throughout the work,
- both as the inner law of the individual soul, and finally
- as the principle of rewards and punishments in another life.
- The virtues are based on justice, of which common honesty in buying
- and selling is the shadow, and justice is based on the idea of good,
- which is the harmony of the world, and is reflected both in
- the institutions of States and in motions of the heavenly bodies.
- The Timaeus, which takes up the political rather than the ethical
- side of the Republic, and is chiefly occupied with hypotheses
- concerning the outward world, yet contains many indications that
- the same law is supposed to reign over the State, over nature,
- and over man.
-
- Too much, however, has been made of this question both in ancient
- and in modern times. There is a stage of criticism in which
- all works, whether of nature or of art, are referred to design.
- Now in ancient writings, and indeed in literature generally,
- there remains often a large element which was not comprehended
- in the original design. For the plan grows under the author's hand;
- new thoughts occur to him in the act of writing; he has not worked
- out the argument to the end before he begins. The reader who seeks
- to find some one idea under which the whole may be conceived,
- must necessarily seize on the vaguest and most general.
- Thus Stallbaum, who is dissatisfied with the ordinary explanations
- of the argument of the Republic, imagines himself to have found
- the true argument "in the representation of human life in a State
- perfected by justice and governed according to the idea of good."
- There may be some use in such general descriptions, but they can
- hardly be said to express the design of the writer. The truth is,
- that we may as well speak of many designs as of one; nor need
- anything be excluded from the plan of a great work to which the mind
- is naturally led by the association of ideas, and which does not
- interfere with the general purpose. What kind or degree of unity
- is to be sought after in a building, in the plastic arts, in poetry,
- in prose, is a problem which has to be determined relatively to the
- subject-matter. To Plato himself, the inquiry "what was the intention
- of the writer," or "what was the principal argument of the Republic"
- would have been hardly intelligible, and therefore had better be at
- once dismissed.
-
- Is not the Republic the vehicle of three or four great truths which,
- to Plato's own mind, are most naturally represented in the form
- of the State? Just as in the Jewish prophets the reign of Messiah,
- or "the day of the Lord," or the suffering Servant or people
- of God, or the "Sun of righteousness with healing in his wings"
- only convey, to us at least, their great spiritual ideals,
- so through the Greek State Plato reveals to us his own thoughts
- about divine perfection, which is the idea of good--like the sun
- in the visible world;--about human perfection, which is justice--
- about education beginning in youth and continuing in later years--
- about poets and sophists and tyrants who are the false teachers
- and evil rulers of mankind--about "the world" which is the embodiment
- of them--about a kingdom which exists nowhere upon earth but is
- laid up in heaven to be the pattern and rule of human life.
- No such inspired creation is at unity with itself, any more
- than the clouds of heaven when the sun pierces through them.
- Every shade of light and dark, of truth, and of fiction which is
- the veil of truth, is allowable in a work of philosophical imagination.
- It is not all on the same plane; it easily passes from ideas
- to myths and fancies, from facts to figures of speech. It is not
- prose but poetry, at least a great part of it, and ought not to be
- judged by the rules of logic or the probabilities of history.
- The writer is not fashioning his ideas into an artistic whole;
- they take possession of him and are too much for him.
- We have no need therefore to discuss whether a State such as Plato
- has conceived is practicable or not, or whether the outward form
- or the inward life came first into the mind of the writer.
- For the practicability of his ideas has nothing to do with their truth;
- and the highest thoughts to which he attains may be truly said to bear
- the greatest "marks of design"--justice more than the external frame-work
- of the State, the idea of good more than justice. The great science
- of dialectic or the organization of ideas has no real content;
- but is only a type of the method or spirit in which the higher knowledge
- is to be pursued by the spectator of all time and all existence.
- It is in the fifth, sixth, and seventh books that Plato reaches
- the "summit of speculation," and these, although they fail to satisfy
- the requirements of a modern thinker, may therefore be regarded
- as the most important, as they are also the most original, portions of
- the work.
-
- It is not necessary to discuss at length a minor question which has
- been raised by Boeckh, respecting the imaginary date at which
- the conversation was held (the year 411 B. C. which is proposed
- by him will do as well as any other); for a writer of fiction,
- and especially a writer who, like Plato, is notoriously careless
- of chronology, only aims at general probability. Whether all the persons
- mentioned in the Republic could ever have met at any one time is
- not a difficulty which would have occurred to an Athenian reading
- the work forty years later, or to Plato himself at the time of writing
- (any more than to Shakespeare respecting one of his own dramas);
- and need not greatly trouble us now. Yet this may be a question having
- no answer "which is still worth asking," because the investigation
- shows that we can not argue historically from the dates in Plato;
- it would be useless therefore to waste time in inventing far-fetched
- reconcilements of them in order avoid chronological difficulties,
- such, for example, as the conjecture of C. F. Hermann, that Glaucon
- and Adeimantus are not the brothers but the uncles of Plato,
- or the fancy of Stallbaum that Plato intentionally left anachronisms
- indicating the dates at which some of his Dialogues were written.
-
- CHARACTERS
-
- The principal characters in the Republic are Cephalus,
- Polemarchus, Thrasymachus, Socrates, Glaucon, and Adeimantus.
- Cephalus appears in the introduction only, Polemarchus drops at
- the end of the first argument, and Thrasymachus is reduced to silence
- at the close of the first book. The main discussion is carried on
- by Socrates, Glaucon, and Adeimantus. Among the company are Lysias
- (the orator) and Euthydemus, the sons of Cephalus and brothers
- of Polemarchus, an unknown Charmantides--these are mute auditors;
- also there is Cleitophon, who once interrupts, where, as in the Dialogue
- which bears his name, he appears as the friend and ally of Thrasymachus.
-
- Cephalus, the patriarch of house, has been appropriately engaged in
- offering a sacrifice. He is the pattern of an old man who has almost
- done with life, and is at peace with himself and with all mankind.
- He feels that he is drawing nearer to the world below, and seems
- to linger around the memory of the past. He is eager that Socrates
- should come to visit him, fond of the poetry of the last generation,
- happy in the consciousness of a well-spent life, glad at having
- escaped from the tyranny of youthful lusts. His love of conversation,
- his affection, his indifference to riches, even his garrulity,
- are interesting traits of character. He is not one of those who have
- nothing to say, because their whole mind has been absorbed in making money.
- Yet he acknowledges that riches have the advantage of placing men
- above the temptation to dishonesty or falsehood. The respectful
- attention shown to him by Socrates, whose love of conversation,
- no less than the mission imposed upon him by the Oracle, leads him
- to ask questions of all men, young and old alike, should also be noted.
- Who better suited to raise the question of justice than Cephalus,
- whose life might seem to be the expression of it? The moderation
- with which old age is pictured by Cephalus as a very tolerable
- portion of existence is characteristic, not only of him, but of Greek
- feeling generally, and contrasts with the exaggeration of Cicero
- in the De Senectute. The evening of life is described by Plato
- in the most expressive manner, yet with the fewest possible touches.
- As Cicero remarks (Ep. ad Attic. iv. 16), the aged Cephalus would
- have been out of place in the discussion which follows, and which he
- could neither have understood nor taken part in without a violation of
- dramatic propriety.
-
- His "son and heir" Polemarchus has the frankness and impetuousness
- of youth; he is for detaining Socrates by force in the opening scene,
- and will not "let him off" on the subject of women and children.
- Like Cephalus, he is limited in his point of view, and represents
- the proverbial stage of morality which has rules of life rather
- than principles; and he quotes Simonides as his father had quoted Pindar.
- But after this he has no more to say; the answers which he
- makes are only elicited from him by the dialectic of Socrates.
- He has not yet experienced the influence of the Sophists like Glaucon
- and Adeimantus, nor is he sensible of the necessity of refuting them;
- he belongs to the pre-Socratic or pre-dialectical age.
- He is incapable of arguing, and is bewildered by Socrates
- to such a degree that he does not know what he is saying.
- He is made to admit that justice is a thief, and that the virtues
- follow the analogy of the arts. From his brother Lysias we learn
- that he fell a victim to the Thirty Tyrants, but no allusion
- is here made to his fate, nor to the circumstance that Cephalus
- and his family were of Syracusan origin, and had migrated from Thurii
- to Athens.
-
- The "Chalcedonian giant," Thrasymachus, of whom we have already heard
- in the Phaedrus, is the personification of the Sophists, according to
- Plato's conception of them, in some of their worst characteristics.
- He is vain and blustering, refusing to discourse unless he
- is paid, fond of making an oration, and hoping thereby to escape
- the inevitable Socrates; but a mere child in argument, and unable
- to foresee that the next "move" (to use a Platonic expression)
- will "shut him up." He has reached the stage of framing general notions,
- and in this respect is in advance of Cephalus and Polemarchus.
- But he is incapable of defending them in a discussion,
- and vainly tries to cover his confusion in banter and insolence.
- Whether such doctrines as are attributed to him by Plato were really
- held either by him or by any other Sophist is uncertain; in the infancy
- of philosophy serious errors about morality might easily grow up--
- they are certainly put into the mouths of speakers in Thucydides;
- but we are concerned at present with Plato's description of him,
- and not with the historical reality. The inequality of the contest
- adds greatly to the humor of the scene. The pompous and empty Sophist
- is utterly helpless in the hands of the great master of dialectic,
- who knows how to touch all the springs of vanity and weakness in him.
- He is greatly irritated by the irony of Socrates, but his noisy
- and imbecile rage only lays him more and more open to the thrusts
- of his assailant. His determination to cram down their throats,
- or put "bodily into their souls" his own words, elicits a cry
- of horror from Socrates. The state of his temper is quite as worthy
- of remark as the process of the argument. Nothing is more amusing
- than his complete submission when he has been once thoroughly beaten.
- At first he seems to continue the discussion with reluctance,
- but soon with apparent good-will, and he even testifies his
- interest at a later stage by one or two occasional remarks.
- When attacked by Glaucon he is humorously protected by Socrates
- "as one who has never been his enemy and is now his friend."
- From Cicero and Quintilian and from Aristotle's Rhetoric we learn
- that the Sophist whom Plato has made so ridiculous was a man of note
- whose writings were preserved in later ages. The play on his name
- which was made by his contemporary Herodicus, "thou wast ever bold
- in battle," seems to show that the description of him is not devoid of
- verisimilitude.
-
- When Thrasymachus has been silenced, the two principal respondents,
- Glaucon and Adeimantus, appear on the scene: here, as in Greek tragedy,
- three actors are introduced. At first sight the two sons of Ariston
- may seem to wear a family likeness, like the two friends Simmias
- and Cebes in the Phaedo. But on a nearer examination of them
- the similarity vanishes, and they are seen to be distinct characters.
- Glaucon is the impetuous youth who can "just never have enough of fechting"
- (cf. the character of him in Xen. Mem. iii. 6); the man of pleasure
- who is acquainted with the mysteries of love; the "juvenis qui
- gaudet canibus," and who improves the breed of animals; the lover
- of art and music who has all the experiences of youthful life.
- He is full of quickness and penetration, piercing easily below
- the clumsy platitudes of Thrasymachus to the real difficulty;
- he turns out to the light the seamy side of human life, and yet
- does not lose faith in the just and true. It is Glaucon who seizes
- what may be termed the ludicrous relation of the philosopher
- to the world, to whom a state of simplicity is "a city of pigs,"
- who is always prepared with a jest when the argument offers him
- an opportunity, and who is ever ready to second the humor of Socrates
- and to appreciate the ridiculous, whether in the connoisseurs of music,
- or in the lovers of theatricals, or in the fantastic behavior of
- the citizens of democracy. His weaknesses are several times alluded
- to by Socrates, who, however, will not allow him to be attacked
- by his brother Adeimantus. He is a soldier, and, like Adeimantus,
- has been distinguished at the battle of Megara.
-
- The character of Adeimantus is deeper and graver, and the profounder
- objections are commonly put into his mouth. Glaucon is more demonstrative,
- and generally opens the game. Adeimantus pursues the argument further.
- Glaucon has more of the liveliness and quick sympathy of youth;
- Adeimantus has the maturer judgment of a grown-up man of the world.
- In the second book, when Glaucon insists that justice and injustice
- shall be considered without regard to their consequences,
- Adeimantus remarks that they are regarded by mankind in general only
- for the sake of their consequences; and in a similar vein of reflection
- he urges at the beginning of the fourth book that Socrates falls
- in making his citizens happy, and is answered that happiness is not
- the first but the second thing, not the direct aim but the indirect
- consequence of the good government of a State. In the discussion
- about religion and mythology, Adeimantus is the respondent, but Glaucon
- breaks in with a slight jest, and carries on the conversation
- in a lighter tone about music and gymnastic to the end of the book.
- It is Adeimantus again who volunteers the criticism of common
- sense on the Socratic method of argument, and who refuses to let
- Socrates pass lightly over the question of women and children.
- It is Adeimantus who is the respondent in the more argumentative,
- as Glaucon in the lighter and more imaginative portions of the Dialogue.
- For example, throughout the greater part of the sixth book, the causes
- of the corruption of philosophy and the conception of the idea of
- good are discussed with Adeimantus. Then Glaucon resumes his place
- of principal respondent; but he has a difficulty in apprehending
- the higher education of Socrates, and makes some false hits in the course
- of the discussion. Once more Adeimantus returns with the allusion
- to his brother Glaucon whom he compares to the contentious State;
- in the next book he is again superseded, and Glaucon continues to
- the end.
-
- Thus in a succession of characters Plato represents the successive stages
- of morality, beginning with the Athenian gentleman of the olden time,
- who is followed by the practical man of that day regulating his life
- by proverbs and saws; to him succeeds the wild generalization of
- the Sophists, and lastly come the young disciples of the great teacher,
- who know the sophistical arguments but will not be convinced by them,
- and desire to go deeper into the nature of things. These too,
- like Cephalus, Polemarchus, Thrasymachus, are clearly distinguished
- from one another. Neither in the Republic, nor in any other Dialogue
- of Plato, is a single character repeated.
-
- The delineation of Socrates in the Republic is not wholly consistent.
- In the first book we have more of the real Socrates,
- such as he is depicted in the Memorabilia of Xenophon,
- in the earliest Dialogues of Plato, and in the Apology.
- He is ironical, provoking, questioning, the old enemy of the Sophists,
- ready to put on the mask of Silenus as well as to argue seriously.
- But in the sixth book his enmity towards the Sophists abates;
- he acknowledges that they are the representatives rather than
- the corrupters of the world. He also becomes more dogmatic
- and constructive, passing beyond the range either of the political
- or the speculative ideas of the real Socrates. In one passage Plato
- himself seems to intimate that the time had now come for Socrates,
- who had passed his whole life in philosophy, to give his own
- opinion and not to be always repeating the notions of other men.
- There is no evidence that either the idea of good or the conception
- of a perfect State were comprehended in the Socratic teaching,
- though he certainly dwelt on the nature of the universal and
- of final causes (cp. Xen. Mem. i. 4; Phaedo 97); and a deep
- thinker like him in his thirty or forty years of public teaching,
- could hardly have falled to touch on the nature of family relations,
- for which there is also some positive evidence in the Memorabilia
- (Mem. i. 2, 51 foll.) The Socratic method is nominally retained;
- and every inference is either put into the mouth of the respondent
- or represented as the common discovery of him and Socrates.
- But any one can see that this is a mere form, of which the affectation
- grows wearisome as the work advances. The method of inquiry
- has passed into a method of teaching in which by the help of
- interlocutors the same thesis is looked at from various points
- of view.
-
- The nature of the process is truly characterized by Glaucon,
- when he describes himself as a companion who is not good for much
- in an investigation, but can see what he is shown, and may,
- perhaps, give the answer to a question more fluently than another.
-
- Neither can we be absolutely certain that, Socrates himself taught
- the immortality of the soul, which is unknown to his disciple
- Glaucon in the Republic; nor is there any reason to suppose
- that he used myths or revelations of another world as a vehicle
- of instruction, or that he would have banished poetry or have
- denounced the Greek mythology. His favorite oath is retained,
- and a slight mention is made of the daemonium, or internal sign,
- which is alluded to by Socrates as a phenomenon peculiar to himself.
- A real element of Socratic teaching, which is more prominent
- in the Republic than in any of the other Dialogues of Plato,
- is the use of example and illustration ('taphorhtika auto
- prhospherhontez'): "Let us apply the test of common instances."
- "You," says Adeimantus, ironically, in the sixth book, "are so
- unaccustomed to speak in images." And this use of examples or images,
- though truly Socratic in origin, is enlarged by the genius of Plato
- into the form of an allegory or parable, which embodies in the concrete
- what has been already described, or is about to be described,
- in the abstract. Thus the figure of the cave in Book VII
- is a recapitulation of the divisions of knowledge in Book VI.
- The composite animal in Book IX is an allegory of the parts of the soul.
- The noble captain and the ship and the true pilot in Book VI are a
- figure of the relation of the people to the philosophers in the State
- which has been described. Other figures, such as the dog in
- the second, third, and fourth books, or the marriage of the portionless
- maiden in the sixth book, or the drones and wasps in the eighth
- and ninth books, also form links of connection in long passages,
- or are used to recall previous discussions.
-
- Plato is most true to the character of his master when he describes
- him as "not of this world." And with this representation of him
- the ideal State and the other paradoxes of the Republic are quite
- in accordance, though they can not be shown to have been speculations
- of Socrates. To him, as to other great teachers both philosophical
- and religious, when they looked upward, the world seemed to be
- the embodiment of error and evil. The common sense of mankind has
- revolted against this view, or has only partially admitted it.
- And even in Socrates himself the sterner judgment of the multitude
- at times passes into a sort of ironical pity or love. Men in general
- are incapable of philosophy, and are therefore at enmity with
- the philosopher; but their misunderstanding of him is unavoidable:
- for they have never seen him as he truly is in his own image;
- they are only acquainted with artificial systems possessing no
- native force of truth--words which admit of many applications.
- Their leaders have nothing to measure with, and are therefore ignorant
- of their own stature. But they are to be pitied or laughed at,
- not to be quarrelled with; they mean well with their nostrums,
- if they could only learn that they are cutting off a Hydra's head.
- This moderation towards those who are in error is one of
- the most characteristic features of Socrates in the Republic.
- In all the different representations of Socrates, whether of Xenophon
- or Plato, and the differences of the earlier or later Dialogues,
- he always retains the character of the unwearied and disinterested
- seeker after truth, without which he would have ceased to
- be Socrates.
-
- Leaving the characters we may now analyze the contents of the Republic,
- and then proceed to consider (1) The general aspects of this Hellenic
- ideal of the State, (2) The modern lights in which the thoughts
- of Plato may be read.
-
-
-
-
-
- BOOK I
-
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- I WENT down yesterday to the Piraeus with Glaucon the son of Ariston,
- that I might offer up my prayers to the goddess; and also because I
- wanted to see in what manner they would celebrate the festival,
- which was a new thing. I was delighted with the procession
- of the inhabitants; but that of the Thracians was equally,
- if not more, beautiful. When we had finished our prayers and
- viewed the spectacle, we turned in the direction of the city;
- and at that instant Polemarchus the son of Cephalus chanced
- to catch sight of us from a distance as we were starting on our
- way home, and told his servant to run and bid us wait for him.
- The servant took hold of me by the cloak behind, and said:
- Polemarchus desires you to wait.
-
- I turned round, and asked him where his master was.
-
- There he is, said the youth, coming after you, if you will only wait.
-
- Certainly we will, said Glaucon; and in a few minutes Polemarchus appeared,
- and with him Adeimantus, Glaucon's brother, Niceratus the son
- of Nicias, and several others who had been at the procession.
-
- SOCRATES - POLEMARCHUS - GLAUCON - ADEIMANTUS
-
- Polemarchus said to me: I perceive, Socrates, that you and our
- companion are already on your way to the city.
-
- You are not far wrong, I said.
-
- But do you see, he rejoined, how many we are?
-
- Of course.
-
- And are you stronger than all these? for if not, you will have
- to remain where you are.
-
- May there not be the alternative, I said, that we may persuade you
- to let us go?
-
- But can you persuade us, if we refuse to listen to you? he said.
-
- Certainly not, replied Glaucon.
-
- Then we are not going to listen; of that you may be assured.
-
- Adeimantus added: Has no one told you of the torch-race on horseback
- in honour of the goddess which will take place in the evening?
-
- With horses! I replied: That is a novelty. Will horsemen carry
- torches and pass them one to another during the race?
-
- Yes, said Polemarchus, and not only so, but a festival will
- he celebrated at night, which you certainly ought to see.
- Let us rise soon after supper and see this festival; there will be
- a gathering of young men, and we will have a good talk. Stay then,
- and do not be perverse.
-
- Glaucon said: I suppose, since you insist, that we must.
-
- Very good, I replied.
-
- GLAUCON - CEPHALUS - SOCRATES
-
- Accordingly we went with Polemarchus to his house; and there we
- found his brothers Lysias and Euthydemus, and with them Thrasymachus
- the Chalcedonian, Charmantides the Paeanian, and Cleitophon the son
- of Aristonymus. There too was Cephalus the father of Polemarchus,
- whom I had not seen for a long time, and I thought him very much aged.
- He was seated on a cushioned chair, and had a garland on his head,
- for he had been sacrificing in the court; and there were some other chairs
- in the room arranged in a semicircle, upon which we sat down by him.
- He saluted me eagerly, and then he said:--
-
- You don't come to see me, Socrates, as often as you ought:
- If I were still able to go and see you I would not ask you
- to come to me. But at my age I can hardly get to the city,
- and therefore you should come oftener to the Piraeus. For let
- me tell you, that the more the pleasures of the body fade away,
- the greater to me is the pleasure and charm of conversation.
- Do not then deny my request, but make our house your resort and keep
- company with these young men; we are old friends, and you will be
- quite at home with us.
-
- I replied: There is nothing which for my part I like better,
- Cephalus, than conversing with aged men; for I regard them
- as travellers who have gone a journey which I too may have to go,
- and of whom I ought to enquire, whether the way is smooth and easy,
- or rugged and difficult. And this is a question which I should
- like to ask of you who have arrived at that time which the poets
- call the `threshold of old age'--Is life harder towards the end,
- or what report do you give of it?
-
- I will tell you, Socrates, he said, what my own feeling is.
- Men of my age flock together; we are birds of a feather,
- as the old proverb says; and at our meetings the tale of my
- acquaintance commonly is--I cannot eat, I cannot drink;
- the pleasures of youth and love are fled away: there was a good
- time once, but now that is gone, and life is no longer life.
- Some complain of the slights which are put upon them by relations,
- and they will tell you sadly of how many evils their old age is
- the cause. But to me, Socrates, these complainers seem to blame
- that which is not really in fault. For if old age were the cause,
- I too being old, and every other old man, would have felt as they do.
- But this is not my own experience, nor that of others whom I have known.
- How well I remember the aged poet Sophocles, when in answer to
- the question, How does love suit with age, Sophocles,--are you still
- the man you were? Peace, he replied; most gladly have I escaped
- the thing of which you speak; I feel as if I had escaped from a mad
- and furious master. His words have often occurred to my mind since,
- and they seem as good to me now as at the time when he uttered them.
- For certainly old age has a great sense of calm and freedom;
- when the passions relax their hold, then, as Sophocles says,
- we are freed from the grasp not of one mad master only, but of many.
- The truth is, Socrates, that these regrets, and also the complaints
- about relations, are to be attributed to the same cause, which is
- not old age, but men's characters and tempers; for he who is
- of a calm and happy nature will hardly feel the pressure of age,
- but to him who is of an opposite disposition youth and age are equally
- a burden.
-
- I listened in admiration, and wanting to draw him out, that he
- might go on--Yes, Cephalus, I said: but I rather suspect that
- people in general are not convinced by you when you speak thus;
- they think that old age sits lightly upon you, not because of your
- happy disposition, but because you are rich, and wealth is well
- known to be a great comforter.
-
- You are right, he replied; they are not convinced: and there is
- something in what they say; not, however, so much as they imagine.
- I might answer them as Themistocles answered the Seriphian who was
- abusing him and saying that he was famous, not for his own merits
- but because he was an Athenian: `If you had been a native of my
- country or I of yours, neither of us would have been famous.'
- And to those who are not rich and are impatient of old age,
- the same reply may be made; for to the good poor man old age
- cannot be a light burden, nor can a bad rich man ever have peace
- with himself.
-
- May I ask, Cephalus, whether your fortune was for the most part
- inherited or acquired by you?
-
- Acquired! Socrates; do you want to know how much I acquired? In the art
- of making money I have been midway between my father and grandfather:
- for my grandfather, whose name I bear, doubled and trebled the value
- of his patrimony, that which he inherited being much what I possess now;
- but my father Lysanias reduced the property below what it is at present:
- and I shall be satisfied if I leave to these my sons not less
- but a little more than I received.
-
- That was why I asked you the question, I replied, because I see
- that you are indifferent about money, which is a characteristic
- rather of those who have inherited their fortunes than of those
- who have acquired them; the makers of fortunes have a second love
- of money as a creation of their own, resembling the affection
- of authors for their own poems, or of parents for their children,
- besides that natural love of it for the sake of use and profit which
- is common to them and all men. And hence they are very bad company,
- for they can talk about nothing but the praises of wealth.
- That is true, he said.
-
- Yes, that is very true, but may I ask another question?
- What do you consider to be the greatest blessing which you have
- reaped from your wealth?
-
- One, he said, of which I could not expect easily to convince others.
- For let me tell you, Socrates, that when a man thinks himself to be
- near death, fears and cares enter into his mind which he never had before;
- the tales of a world below and the punishment which is exacted
- there of deeds done here were once a laughing matter to him,
- but now he is tormented with the thought that they may be true:
- either from the weakness of age, or because he is now drawing
- nearer to that other place, he has a clearer view of these things;
- suspicions and alarms crowd thickly upon him, and he begins
- to reflect and consider what wrongs he has done to others.
- And when he finds that the sum of his transgressions is great he
- will many a time like a child start up in his sleep for fear,
- and he is filled with dark forebodings. But to him who is conscious
- of no sin, sweet hope, as Pindar charmingly says, is the kind nurse of
- his age:
-
- Hope, he says, cherishes the soul of him who lives in
- justice and holiness and is the nurse of his age and the
- companion of his journey;--hope which is mightiest to sway
- the restless soul of man.
-
- How admirable are his words! And the great blessing of riches, I do not
- say to every man, but to a good man, is, that he has had no occasion
- to deceive or to defraud others, either intentionally or unintentionally;
- and when he departs to the world below he is not in any apprehension
- about offerings due to the gods or debts which he owes to men.
- Now to this peace of mind the possession of wealth greatly contributes;
- and therefore I say, that, setting one thing against another,
- of the many advantages which wealth has to give, to a man of sense this
- is in my opinion the greatest.
-
- Well said, Cephalus, I replied; but as concerning justice, what is it?--
- to speak the truth and to pay your debts--no more than this?
- And even to this are there not exceptions? Suppose that a friend
- when in his right mind has deposited arms with me and he asks for them
- when he is not in his right mind, ought I to give them back to him?
- No one would say that I ought or that I should be right in doing so,
- any more than they would say that I ought always to speak the truth to one
- who is in his condition.
-
- You are quite right, he replied.
-
- But then, I said, speaking the truth and paying your debts is not
- a correct definition of justice.
-
- CEPHALUS - SOCRATES - POLEMARCHUS
-
- Quite correct, Socrates, if Simonides is to be believed,
- said Polemarchus interposing.
-
- I fear, said Cephalus, that I must go now, for I have to look
- after the sacrifices, and I hand over the argument to Polemarchus
- and the company.
-
- Is not Polemarchus your heir? I said.
-
- To be sure, he answered, and went away laughing to the sacrifices.
-
- SOCRATES - POLEMARCHUS
-
- Tell me then, O thou heir of the argument, what did Simonides say,
- and according to you truly say, about justice?
-
- He said that the repayment of a debt is just, and in saying so he
- appears to me to be right.
-
- I should be sorry to doubt the word of such a wise and inspired man,
- but his meaning, though probably clear to you, is the reverse of
- clear to me. For he certainly does not mean, as we were now saying
- that I ought to return a return a deposit of arms or of anything
- else to one who asks for it when he is not in his right senses;
- and yet a deposit cannot be denied to be a debt.
-
- True.
-
- Then when the person who asks me is not in his right mind I am
- by no means to make the return?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- When Simonides said that the repayment of a debt was justice,
- he did not mean to include that case?
-
- Certainly not; for he thinks that a friend ought always to do
- good to a friend and never evil.
-
- You mean that the return of a deposit of gold which is to the injury
- of the receiver, if the two parties are friends, is not the repayment
- of a debt,--that is what you would imagine him to say?
-
- Yes.
-
- And are enemies also to receive what we owe to them?
-
- To be sure, he said, they are to receive what we owe them, and an enemy,
- as I take it, owes to an enemy that which is due or proper to him--
- that is to say, evil.
-
- Simonides, then, after the manner of poets, would seem to have
- spoken darkly of the nature of justice; for he really meant to say
- that justice is the giving to each man what is proper to him,
- and this he termed a debt.
-
- That must have been his meaning, he said.
-
- By heaven! I replied; and if we asked him what due or proper thing
- is given by medicine, and to whom, what answer do you think that he
- would make to us?
-
- He would surely reply that medicine gives drugs and meat and drink
- to human bodies.
-
- And what due or proper thing is given by cookery, and to what?
-
- Seasoning to food.
-
- And what is that which justice gives, and to whom?
-
- If, Socrates, we are to be guided at all
- by the analogy of the preceding instances,
- then justice is the art which gives good to friends and evil to enemies.
-
- That is his meaning then?
-
- I think so.
-
- And who is best able to do good to his friends and evil to his
- enemies in time of sickness?
-
- The physician.
-
- Or when they are on a voyage, amid the perils of the sea?
-
- The pilot.
-
- And in what sort of actions or with a view to what result is the just
- man most able to do harm to his enemy and good to his friends?
-
- In going to war against the one and in making alliances with the other.
-
- But when a man is well, my dear Polemarchus, there is no need
- of a physician?
-
- No.
-
- And he who is not on a voyage has no need of a pilot?
-
- No.
-
- Then in time of peace justice will be of no use?
-
- I am very far from thinking so.
-
- You think that justice may be of use in peace as well as in war?
-
- Yes.
-
- Like husbandry for the acquisition of corn?
-
- Yes.
-
- Or like shoemaking for the acquisition of shoes,--that is what you mean?
-
- Yes.
-
- And what similar use or power of acquisition has justice in time
- of peace?
-
- In contracts, Socrates, justice is of use.
-
- And by contracts you mean partnerships?
-
- Exactly.
-
- But is the just man or the skilful player a more useful and better
- partner at a game of draughts?
-
- The skilful player.
-
- And in the laying of bricks and stones is the just man a more useful
- or better partner than the builder?
-
- Quite the reverse.
-
- Then in what sort of partnership is the just man a better partner
- than the harp-player, as in playing the harp the harp-player
- is certainly a better partner than the just man?
-
- In a money partnership.
-
- Yes, Polemarchus, but surely not in the use of money; for you do not
- want a just man to be your counsellor the purchase or sale of a horse;
- a man who is knowing about horses would be better for that,
- would he not?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And when you want to buy a ship, the shipwright or the pilot would
- be better?
-
- True.
-
- Then what is that joint use of silver or gold in which the just man
- is to be preferred?
-
- When you want a deposit to be kept safely.
-
- You mean when money is not wanted, but allowed to lie?
-
- Precisely.
-
- That is to say, justice is useful when money is useless?
-
- That is the inference.
-
- And when you want to keep a pruning-hook safe, then justice is useful
- to the individual and to the state; but when you want to use it,
- then the art of the vine-dresser?
-
- Clearly.
-
- And when you want to keep a shield or a lyre, and not to use them,
- you would say that justice is useful; but when you want to use them,
- then the art of the soldier or of the musician?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And so of all the other things;--justice is useful when they
- are useless, and useless when they are useful?
-
- That is the inference.
-
- Then justice is not good for much. But let us consider this
- further point: Is not he who can best strike a blow in a boxing
- match or in any kind of fighting best able to ward off a blow?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And he who is most skilful in preventing or escaping from a disease
- is best able to create one?
-
- True.
-
- And he is the best guard of a camp who is best able to steal a march
- upon the enemy?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then he who is a good keeper of anything is also a good thief?
-
- That, I suppose, is to be inferred.
-
- Then if the just man is good at keeping money, he is good at stealing it.
-
- That is implied in the argument.
-
- Then after all the just man has turned out to be a thief.
- And this is a lesson which I suspect you must have learnt out of Homer;
- for he, speaking of Autolycus, the maternal grandfather of Odysseus,
- who is a favourite of his, affirms that
-
- He was excellent above all men in theft and perjury.
-
- And so, you and Homer and Simonides are agreed that justice is
- an art of theft; to be practised however `for the good of friends
- and for the harm of enemies,'--that was what you were saying?
-
- No, certainly not that, though I do not now know what I did say;
- but I still stand by the latter words.
-
- Well, there is another question: By friends and enemies do we mean
- those who are so really, or only in seeming?
-
- Surely, he said, a man may be expected to love those whom he
- thinks good, and to hate those whom he thinks evil.
-
- Yes, but do not persons often err about good and evil:
- many who are not good seem to be so, and conversely?
-
- That is true.
-
- Then to them the good will be enemies and the evil
- will be their friends? True.
-
- And in that case they will be right in doing good to the evil
- and evil to the good?
-
- Clearly.
-
- But the good are just and would not do an injustice?
-
- True.
-
- Then according to your argument it is just to injure those who do
- no wrong?
-
- Nay, Socrates; the doctrine is immoral.
-
- Then I suppose that we ought to do good to the just and harm
- to the unjust?
-
- I like that better.
-
- But see the consequence:--Many a man who is ignorant of human nature
- has friends who are bad friends, and in that case he ought to do harm
- to them; and he has good enemies whom he ought to benefit; but, if so,
- we shall be saying the very opposite of that which we affirmed
- to be the meaning of Simonides.
-
- Very true, he said: and I think that we had better correct an error
- into which we seem to have fallen in the use of the words `friend'
- and `enemy.'
-
- What was the error, Polemarchus? I asked.
-
- We assumed that he is a friend who seems to be or who is thought good.
-
- And how is the error to be corrected?
-
- We should rather say that he is a friend who is, as well
- as seems, good; and that he who seems only, and is not good,
- only seems to be and is not a friend; and of an enemy the same may be said.
-
- You would argue that the good are our friends and the bad our enemies?
-
- Yes.
-
- And instead of saying simply as we did at first, that it is just to do
- good to our friends and harm to our enemies, we should further say:
- It is just to do good to our friends when they are good and harm
- to our enemies when they are evil?
-
- Yes, that appears to me to be the truth.
-
- But ought the just to injure any one at all?
-
- Undoubtedly he ought to injure those who are both wicked and his enemies.
-
- When horses are injured, are they improved or deteriorated?
-
- The latter.
-
- Deteriorated, that is to say, in the good qualities of horses,
- not of dogs?
-
- Yes, of horses.
-
- And dogs are deteriorated in the good qualities of dogs, and not
- of horses?
-
- Of course.
-
- And will not men who are injured be deteriorated in that which is
- the proper virtue of man?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And that human virtue is justice?
-
- To be sure.
-
- Then men who are injured are of necessity made unjust?
-
- That is the result.
-
- But can the musician by his art make men unmusical?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Or the horseman by his art make them bad horsemen?
-
- Impossible.
-
- And can the just by justice make men unjust, or speaking general
- can the good by virtue make them bad?
-
- Assuredly not.
-
- Any more than heat can produce cold?
-
- It cannot.
-
- Or drought moisture?
-
- Clearly not.
-
- Nor can the good harm any one?
-
- Impossible.
-
- And the just is the good?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then to injure a friend or any one else is not the act of a just man,
- but of the opposite, who is the unjust?
-
- I think that what you say is quite true, Socrates.
-
- Then if a man says that justice consists in the repayment of debts,
- and that good is the debt which a man owes to his friends, and evil
- the debt which he owes to his enemies,--to say this is not wise;
- for it is not true, if, as has been clearly shown, the injuring of
- another can be in no case just.
-
- I agree with you, said Polemarchus.
-
- Then you and I are prepared to take up arms against any one
- who attributes such a saying to Simonides or Bias or Pittacus,
- or any other wise man or seer?
-
- I am quite ready to do battle at your side, he said.
-
- Shall I tell you whose I believe the saying to be?
-
- Whose?
-
- I believe that Periander or Perdiccas or Xerxes or Ismenias
- the Theban, or some other rich and mighty man, who had a great
- opinion of his own power, was the first to say that justice
- is `doing good to your friends and harm to your enemies.'
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- Yes, I said; but if this definition of justice also breaks down,
- what other can be offered?
-
- Several times in the course of the discussion Thrasymachus had made
- an attempt to get the argument into his own hands, and had been
- put down by the rest of the company, who wanted to hear the end.
- But when Polemarchus and I had done speaking and there was a pause,
- he could no longer hold his peace; and, gathering himself up,
- he came at us like a wild beast, seeking to devour us. We were quite
- panic-stricken at the sight of him.
-
- SOCRATES - POLEMARCHUS - THRASYMACHUS
-
- He roared out to the whole company: What folly. Socrates, has taken
- possession of you all? And why, sillybillies, do you knock under to
- one another? I say that if you want really to know what justice is,
- you should not only ask but answer, and you should not seek honour
- to yourself from the refutation of an opponent, but have your own answer;
- for there is many a one who can ask and cannot answer. And now I
- will not have you say that justice is duty or advantage or profit
- or gain or interest, for this sort of nonsense will not do for me;
- I must have clearness and accuracy.
-
- I was panic-stricken at his words, and could not look at him
- without trembling. Indeed I believe that if I had not fixed my eye
- upon him, I should have been struck dumb: but when I saw his fury rising,
- I looked at him first, and was therefore able to reply to him.
-
- Thrasymachus, I said, with a quiver, don't be hard upon us.
- Polemarchus and I may have been guilty of a little mistake in
- the argument, but I can assure you that the error was not intentional.
- If we were seeking for a piece of gold, you would not imagine
- that we were `knocking under to one another,' and so losing our
- chance of finding it. And why, when we are seeking for justice,
- a thing more precious than many pieces of gold, do you say that we
- are weakly yielding to one another and not doing our utmost
- to get at the truth? Nay, my good friend, we are most willing
- and anxious to do so, but the fact is that we cannot. And if so,
- you people who know all things should pity us and not be angry
- with us.
-
- How characteristic of Socrates! he replied, with a bitter laugh;--
- that's your ironical style! Did I not foresee--have I not already
- told you, that whatever he was asked he would refuse to answer,
- and try irony or any other shuffle, in order that he might
- avoid answering?
-
- You are a philosopher, Thrasymachus, I replied, and well
- know that if you ask a person what numbers make up twelve,
- taking care to prohibit him whom you ask from answering twice six,
- or three times four, or six times two, or four times three,
- `for this sort of nonsense will not do for me,'--then obviously,
- that is your way of putting the question, no one can answer you.
- But suppose that he were to retort, `Thrasymachus, what do you mean?
- If one of these numbers which you interdict be the true answer
- to the question, am I falsely to say some other number which is
- not the right one?--is that your meaning?' --How would you
- answer him?
-
- Just as if the two cases were at all alike! he said.
-
- Why should they not be? I replied; and even if they are not,
- but only appear to be so to the person who is asked, ought he not
- to say what he thinks, whether you and I forbid him or not?
-
- I presume then that you are going to make one of the interdicted answers?
-
- I dare say that I may, notwithstanding the danger, if upon reflection
- I approve of any of them.
-
- But what if I give you an answer about justice other and better,
- he said, than any of these? What do you deserve to have done
- to you?
-
- Done to me!--as becomes the ignorant, I must learn from the wise--
- that is what I deserve to have done to me.
-
- What, and no payment! a pleasant notion!
-
- I will pay when I have the money, I replied.
-
- SOCRATES - THRASYMACHUS - GLAUCON
-
- But you have, Socrates, said Glaucon: and you, Thrasymachus, need be
- under no anxiety about money, for we will all make a contribution
- for Socrates.
-
- Yes, he replied, and then Socrates will do as he always does--
- refuse to answer himself, but take and pull to pieces the answer
- of some one else.
-
- Why, my good friend, I said, how can any one answer who knows,
- and says that he knows, just nothing; and who, even if he has some faint
- notions of his own, is told by a man of authority not to utter them?
- The natural thing is, that the speaker should be some one like
- yourself who professes to know and can tell what he knows.
- Will you then kindly answer, for the edification of the company
- and of myself ?
-
- Glaucon and the rest of the company joined in my request and Thrasymachus,
- as any one might see, was in reality eager to speak; for he thought
- that he had an excellent answer, and would distinguish himself.
- But at first he to insist on my answering; at length he consented
- to begin. Behold, he said, the wisdom of Socrates; he refuses
- to teach himself, and goes about learning of others, to whom he
- never even says thank you.
-
- That I learn of others, I replied, is quite true; but that I am ungrateful
- I wholly deny. Money I have none, and therefore I pay in praise,
- which is all I have: and how ready I am to praise any one who appears
- to me to speak well you will very soon find out when you answer;
- for I expect that you will answer well.
-
- Listen, then, he said; I proclaim that justice is nothing else
- than the interest of the stronger. And now why do you not me?
- But of course you won't.
-
- Let me first understand you, I replied. justice, as you say, is the
- interest of the stronger. What, Thrasymachus, is the meaning of this?
- You cannot mean to say that because Polydamas, the pancratiast,
- is stronger than we are, and finds the eating of beef conducive
- to his bodily strength, that to eat beef is therefore equally
- for our good who are weaker than he is, and right and just for us?
-
- That's abominable of you, Socrates; you take the words in the sense
- which is most damaging to the argument.
-
- Not at all, my good sir, I said; I am trying to understand them;
- and I wish that you would be a little clearer.
-
- Well, he said, have you never heard that forms of government differ;
- there are tyrannies, and there are democracies, and there
- are aristocracies?
-
- Yes, I know.
-
- And the government is the ruling power in each state?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And the different forms of government make laws democratical,
- aristocratical, tyrannical, with a view to their several interests;
- and these laws, which are made by them for their own interests,
- are the justice which they deliver to their subjects, and him who
- transgresses them they punish as a breaker of the law, and unjust.
- And that is what I mean when I say that in all states there is the same
- principle of justice, which is the interest of the government;
- and as the government must be supposed to have power, the only reasonable
- conclusion is, that everywhere there is one principle of justice,
- which is the interest of the stronger.
-
- Now I understand you, I said; and whether you are right or not I
- will try to discover. But let me remark, that in defining justice you
- have yourself used the word `interest' which you forbade me to use.
- It is true, however, that in your definition the words `of the stronger'
- are added.
-
- A small addition, you must allow, he said.
-
- Great or small, never mind about that: we must first enquire whether
- what you are saying is the truth. Now we are both agreed that justice
- is interest of some sort, but you go on to say `of the stronger';
- about this addition I am not so sure, and must therefore consider further.
-
- Proceed.
-
- I will; and first tell me, Do you admit that it is just or subjects
- to obey their rulers?
-
- I do.
-
- But are the rulers of states absolutely infallible, or are they
- sometimes liable to err?
-
- To be sure, he replied, they are liable to err.
-
- Then in making their laws they may sometimes make them rightly,
- and sometimes not?
-
- True.
-
- When they make them rightly, they make them agreeably to their interest;
- when they are mistaken, contrary to their interest; you admit that?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the laws which they make must be obeyed by their subjects,--
- and that is what you call justice?
-
- Doubtless.
-
- Then justice, according to your argument, is not only obedience
- to the interest of the stronger but the reverse?
-
- What is that you are saying? he asked.
-
- I am only repeating what you are saying, I believe. But let us consider:
- Have we not admitted that the rulers may be mistaken about their own
- interest in what they command, and also that to obey them is justice?
- Has not that been admitted?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then you must also have acknowledged justice not to be for the interest
- of the stronger, when the rulers unintentionally command things
- to be done which are to their own injury. For if, as you say,
- justice is the obedience which the subject renders to their commands,
- in that case, O wisest of men, is there any escape from the conclusion
- that the weaker are commanded to do, not what is for the interest,
- but what is for the injury of the stronger?
-
- Nothing can be clearer, Socrates, said Polemarchus.
-
- SOCRATES - CLEITOPHON - POLEMARCHUS - THRASYMACHUS
-
- Yes, said Cleitophon, interposing, if you are allowed to be his witness.
-
- But there is no need of any witness, said Polemarchus, for Thrasymachus
- himself acknowledges that rulers may sometimes command what is not
- for their own interest, and that for subjects to obey them is justice.
-
- Yes, Polemarchus,--Thrasymachus said that for subjects to do
- what was commanded by their rulers is just.
-
- Yes, Cleitophon, but he also said that justice is the interest
- of the stronger, and, while admitting both these propositions,
- he further acknowledged that the stronger may command the weaker
- who are his subjects to do what is not for his own interest;
- whence follows that justice is the injury quite as much as the interest
- of the stronger.
-
- But, said Cleitophon, he meant by the interest of the stronger
- what the stronger thought to be his interest,--this was what
- the weaker had to do; and this was affirmed by him to be justice.
-
- Those were not his words, rejoined Polemarchus.
-
- SOCRATES - THRASYMACHUS
-
- Never mind, I replied, if he now says that they are, let us
- accept his statement. Tell me, Thrasymachus, I said, did you
- mean by justice what the stronger thought to be his interest,
- whether really so or not?
-
- Certainly not, he said. Do you suppose that I call him who is
- mistaken the stronger at the time when he is mistaken?
-
- Yes, I said, my impression was that you did so, when you admitted
- that the ruler was not infallible but might be sometimes mistaken.
-
- You argue like an informer, Socrates. Do you mean, for example,
- that he who is mistaken about the sick is a physician in that he is
- mistaken? or that he who errs in arithmetic or grammar is an arithmetician
- or grammarian at the me when he is making the mistake, in respect
- of the mistake? True, we say that the physician or arithmetician
- or grammarian has made a mistake, but this is only a way of speaking;
- for the fact is that neither the grammarian nor any other person
- of skill ever makes a mistake in so far as he is what his name implies;
- they none of them err unless their skill fails them, and then
- they cease to be skilled artists. No artist or sage or ruler
- errs at the time when he is what his name implies; though he is
- commonly said to err, and I adopted the common mode of speaking.
- But to be perfectly accurate, since you are such a lover of accuracy,
- we should say that the ruler, in so far as he is the ruler,
- is unerring, and, being unerring, always commands that which is for his
- own interest; and the subject is required to execute his commands;
- and therefore, as I said at first and now repeat, justice is the interest
- of the stronger.
-
- Indeed, Thrasymachus, and do I really appear to you to argue
- like an informer?
-
- Certainly, he replied.
-
- And you suppose that I ask these questions with any design
- of injuring you in the argument?
-
- Nay, he replied, `suppose' is not the word--I know it; but you will
- be found out, and by sheer force of argument you will never prevail.
-
- I shall not make the attempt, my dear man; but to avoid any misunderstanding
- occurring between us in future, let me ask, in what sense do you
- speak of a ruler or stronger whose interest, as you were saying,
- he being the superior, it is just that the inferior should execute--
- is he a ruler in the popular or in the strict sense of the term?
-
- In the strictest of all senses, he said. And now cheat and play
- the informer if you can; I ask no quarter at your hands.
- But you never will be able, never.
-
- And do you imagine, I said, that I am such a madman as to try
- and cheat, Thrasymachus? I might as well shave a lion.
-
- Why, he said, you made the attempt a minute ago, and you failed.
-
- Enough, I said, of these civilities. It will be better that I should
- ask you a question: Is the physician, taken in that strict sense
- of which you are speaking, a healer of the sick or a maker of money?
- And remember that I am now speaking of the true physician.
-
- A healer of the sick, he replied.
-
- And the pilot--that is to say, the true pilot--is he a captain
- of sailors or a mere sailor?
-
- A captain of sailors.
-
- The circumstance that he sails in the ship is not to be taken
- into account; neither is he to be called a sailor; the name pilot
- by which he is distinguished has nothing to do with sailing,
- but is significant of his skill and of his authority over the sailors.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Now, I said, every art has an interest?
-
- Certainly.
-
- For which the art has to consider and provide?
-
- Yes, that is the aim of art.
-
- And the interest of any art is the perfection of it--this and
- nothing else?
-
- What do you mean?
-
- I mean what I may illustrate negatively by the example of the body.
- Suppose you were to ask me whether the body is self-sufficing
- or has wants, I should reply: Certainly the body has wants;
- for the body may be ill and require to be cured, and has therefore
- interests to which the art of medicine ministers; and this is
- the origin and intention of medicine, as you will acknowledge.
- Am I not right?
-
- Quite right, he replied.
-
- But is the art of medicine or any other art faulty or deficient
- in any quality in the same way that the eye may be deficient
- in sight or the ear fail of hearing, and therefore requires
- another art to provide for the interests of seeing and hearing--
- has art in itself, I say, any similar liability to fault or defect,
- and does every art require another supplementary art to provide
- for its interests, and that another and another without end?
- Or have the arts to look only after their own interests? Or have they
- no need either of themselves or of another?--having no faults or defects,
- they have no need to correct them, either by the exercise of their
- own art or of any other; they have only to consider the interest
- of their subject-matter. For every art remains pure and faultless
- while remaining true--that is to say, while perfect and unimpaired.
- Take the words in your precise sense, and tell me whether I am
- not right."
-
- Yes, clearly.
-
- Then medicine does not consider the interest of medicine,
- but the interest of the body?
-
- True, he said.
-
- Nor does the art of horsemanship consider the interests
- of the art of horsemanship, but the interests of the horse;
- neither do any other arts care for themselves, for they have no needs;
- they care only for that which is the subject of their art?
-
- True, he said.
-
- But surely, Thrasymachus, the arts are the superiors and rulers
- of their own subjects?
-
- To this he assented with a good deal of reluctance.
-
- Then, I said, no science or art considers or enjoins the interest
- of the stronger or superior, but only the interest of the subject
- and weaker?
-
- He made an attempt to contest this proposition also, but finally acquiesced.
-
- Then, I continued, no physician, in so far as he is a physician,
- considers his own good in what he prescribes, but the good
- of his patient; for the true physician is also a ruler having
- the human body as a subject, and is not a mere money-maker;
- that has been admitted?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the pilot likewise, in the strict sense of the term, is a ruler
- of sailors and not a mere sailor?
-
- That has been admitted.
-
- And such a pilot and ruler will provide and prescribe for the interest
- of the sailor who is under him, and not for his own or the ruler's interest?
-
- He gave a reluctant `Yes.'
-
- Then, I said, Thrasymachus, there is no one in any rule who, in so far
- as he is a ruler, considers or enjoins what is for his own interest,
- but always what is for the interest of his subject or suitable to his art;
- to that he looks, and that alone he considers in everything which he
- says and does.
-
- When we had got to this point in the argument, and every one saw
- that the definition of justice had been completely upset, Thrasymachus,
- instead of replying to me, said: Tell me, Socrates, have you got a nurse?
-
- Why do you ask such a question, I said, when you ought rather
- to be answering?
-
- Because she leaves you to snivel, and never wipes your nose:
- she has not even taught you to know the shepherd from the sheep.
-
- What makes you say that? I replied.
-
- Because you fancy that the shepherd or neatherd fattens of tends the sheep
- or oxen with a view to their own good and not to the good of himself
- or his master; and you further imagine that the rulers of states,
- if they are true rulers, never think of their subjects as sheep,
- and that they are not studying their own advantage day and night.
- Oh, no; and so entirely astray are you in your ideas about the just
- and unjust as not even to know that justice and the just are in
- reality another's good; that is to say, the interest of the ruler
- and stronger, and the loss of the subject and servant; and injustice
- the opposite; for the unjust is lord over the truly simple and just:
- he is the stronger, and his subjects do what is for his interest,
- and minister to his happiness, which is very far from being their own.
- Consider further, most foolish Socrates, that the just is always a loser
- in comparison with the unjust. First of all, in private contracts:
- wherever the unjust is the partner of the just you will find that,
- when the partnership is dissolved, the unjust man has always more
- and the just less. Secondly, in their dealings with the State:
- when there is an income tax, the just man will pay more and
- the unjust less on the same amount of income; and when there is
- anything to be received the one gains nothing and the other much.
- Observe also what happens when they take an office; there is the just
- man neglecting his affairs and perhaps suffering other losses,
- and getting nothing out of the public, because he is just;
- moreover he is hated by his friends and acquaintance for refusing
- to serve them in unlawful ways. But all this is reversed in the case
- of the unjust man. I am speaking, as before, of injustice on a
- large scale in which the advantage of the unjust is more apparent;
- and my meaning will be most clearly seen if we turn to that highest
- form of injustice in which the criminal is the happiest of men,
- and the sufferers or those who refuse to do injustice are the
- most miserable--that is to say tyranny, which by fraud and force takes
- away the property of others, not little by little but wholesale;
- comprehending in one, things sacred as well as profane, private and public;
- for which acts of wrong, if he were detected perpetrating any one
- of them singly, he would be punished and incur great disgrace--
- they who do such wrong in particular cases are called robbers
- of temples, and man-stealers and burglars and swindlers and thieves.
- But when a man besides taking away the money of the citizens has
- made slaves of them, then, instead of these names of reproach,
- he is termed happy and blessed, not only by the citizens but by all
- who hear of his having achieved the consummation of injustice.
- For mankind censure injustice, fearing that they may be the victims
- of it and not because they shrink from committing it. And thus,
- as I have shown, Socrates, injustice, when on a sufficient scale,
- has more strength and freedom and mastery than justice; and, as I said
- at first, justice is the interest of the stronger, whereas injustice
- is a man's own profit and interest.
-
- Thrasymachus, when he had thus spoken, having, like a bathman,
- deluged our ears with his words, had a mind to go away. But the company
- would not let him; they insisted that he should remain and defend
- his position; and I myself added my own humble request that he
- would not leave us. Thrasymachus, I said to him, excellent man,
- how suggestive are your remarks! And are you going to run away
- before you have fairly taught or learned whether they are true or not?
- Is the attempt to determine the way of man's life so small a matter
- in your eyes--to determine how life may be passed by each one of us
- to the greatest advantage?
-
- And do I differ from you, he said, as to the importance of the enquiry?
-
- You appear rather, I replied, to have no care or thought about us,
- Thrasymachus--whether we live better or worse from not knowing what you
- say you know, is to you a matter of indifference. Prithee, friend,
- do not keep your knowledge to yourself; we are a large party;
- and any benefit which you confer upon us will be amply rewarded.
- For my own part I openly declare that I am not convinced, and that I
- do not believe injustice to be more gainful than justice, even if
- uncontrolled and allowed to have free play. For, granting that there
- may be an unjust man who is able to commit injustice either by fraud
- or force, still this does not convince me of the superior advantage
- of injustice, and there may be others who are in the same predicament
- with myself. Perhaps we may be wrong; if so, you in your wisdom
- should convince us that we are mistaken in preferring justice to injustice.
-
- And how am I to convince you, he said, if you are not already
- convinced by what I have just said; what more can I do for you?
- Would you have me put the proof bodily into your souls?
-
- Heaven forbid! I said; I would only ask you to be consistent;
- or, if you change, change openly and let there be no deception.
- For I must remark, Thrasymachus, if you will recall what was previously said,
- that although you began by defining the true physician in an exact sense,
- you did not observe a like exactness when speaking of the shepherd;
- you thought that the shepherd as a shepherd tends the sheep not
- with a view to their own good, but like a mere diner or banqueter
- with a view to the pleasures of the table; or, again, as a trader
- for sale in the market, and not as a shepherd. Yet surely the art
- of the shepherd is concerned only with the good of his subjects;
- he has only to provide the best for them, since the perfection of the art
- is already ensured whenever all the requirements of it are satisfied.
- And that was what I was saying just now about the ruler. I conceived
- that the art of the ruler, considered as ruler, whether in a state
- or in private life, could only regard the good of his flock or subjects;
- whereas you seem to think that the rulers in states, that is to say,
- the true rulers, like being in authority.
-
- Think! Nay, I am sure of it.
-
- Then why in the case of lesser offices do men never take them
- willingly without payment, unless under the idea that they govern
- for the advantage not of themselves but of others? Let me ask you
- a question: Are not the several arts different, by reason of their
- each having a separate function? And, my dear illustrious friend,
- do say what you think, that we may make a little progress.
-
- Yes, that is the difference, he replied.
-
- And each art gives us a particular good and not merely a general one--
- medicine, for example, gives us health; navigation, safety at sea,
- and so on?
-
- Yes, he said.
-
- And the art of payment has the special function of giving pay:
- but we do not confuse this with other arts, any more than
- the art of the pilot is to be confused with the art of medicine,
- because the health of the pilot may be improved by a sea voyage.
- You would not be inclined to say, would you, that navigation is
- the art of medicine, at least if we are to adopt your exact use
- of language?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Or because a man is in good health when he receives pay you would
- not say that the art of payment is medicine?
-
- I should say not.
-
- Nor would you say that medicine is the art of receiving pay
- because a man takes fees when he is engaged in healing?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- And we have admitted, I said, that the good of each art is specially
- confined to the art?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then, if there be any good which all artists have in common,
- that is to be attributed to something of which they all have
- the common use?
-
- True, he replied.
-
- And when the artist is benefited by receiving pay the advantage
- is gained by an additional use of the art of pay, which is not
- the art professed by him?
-
- He gave a reluctant assent to this.
-
- Then the pay is not derived by the several artists from their
- respective arts. But the truth is, that while the art of medicine
- gives health, and the art of the builder builds a house, another art
- attends them which is the art of pay. The various arts may be doing
- their own business and benefiting that over which they preside,
- but would the artist receive any benefit from his art unless he
- were paid as well?
-
- I suppose not.
-
- But does he therefore confer no benefit when he works for nothing?
-
- Certainly, he confers a benefit.
-
- Then now, Thrasymachus, there is no longer any doubt that neither
- arts nor governments provide for their own interests; but, as we
- were before saying, they rule and provide for the interests
- of their subjects who are the weaker and not the stronger--
- to their good they attend and not to the good of the superior.
-
- And this is the reason, my dear Thrasymachus, why, as I was just
- now saying, no one is willing to govern; because no one likes
- to take in hand the reformation of evils which are not his
- concern without remuneration. For, in the execution of his work,
- and in giving his orders to another, the true artist does
- not regard his own interest, but always that of his subjects;
- and therefore in order that rulers may be willing to rule,
- they must be paid in one of three modes of payment: money, or honour,
- or a penalty for refusing.
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- What do you mean, Socrates? said Glaucon. The first two modes
- of payment are intelligible enough, but what the penalty is I
- do not understand, or how a penalty can be a payment.
-
- You mean that you do not understand the nature of this payment
- which to the best men is the great inducement to rule? Of course you
- know that ambition and avarice are held to be, as indeed they are,
- a disgrace?
-
- Very true.
-
- And for this reason, I said, money and honour have no attraction for them;
- good men do not wish to be openly demanding payment for governing
- and so to get the name of hirelings, nor by secretly helping
- themselves out of the public revenues to get the name of thieves.
- And not being ambitious they do not care about honour.
- Wherefore necessity must be laid upon them, and they must
- be induced to serve from the fear of punishment. And this,
- as I imagine, is the reason why the forwardness to take office,
- instead of waiting to be compelled, has been deemed dishonourable.
- Now the worst part of the punishment is that he who refuses
- to rule is liable to be ruled by one who is worse than himself.
- And the fear of this, as I conceive, induces the good to take office,
- not because they would, but because they cannot help--not under the idea
- that they are going to have any benefit or enjoyment themselves,
- but as a necessity, and because they are not able to commit
- the task of ruling to any one who is better than themselves,
- or indeed as good. For there is reason to think that if a city
- were composed entirely of good men, then to avoid office would be
- as much an object of contention as to obtain office is at present;
- then we should have plain proof that the true ruler is not meant
- by nature to regard his own interest, but that of his subjects;
- and every one who knew this would choose rather to receive
- a benefit from another than to have the trouble of conferring one.
- So far am I from agreeing with Thrasymachus that justice is the
- interest of the stronger. This latter question need not be further
- discussed at present; but when Thrasymachus says that the life
- of the unjust is more advantageous than that of the just, his new
- statement appears to me to be of a far more serious character.
- Which of us has spoken truly? And which sort of life, Glaucon,
- do you prefer?
-
- I for my part deem the life of the just to be the more advantageous,
- he answered.
-
- Did you hear all the advantages of the unjust which Thrasymachus
- was rehearsing?
-
- Yes, I heard him, he replied, but he has not convinced me.
-
- Then shall we try to find some way of convincing him, if we can,
- that he is saying what is not true?
-
- Most certainly, he replied.
-
- If, I said, he makes a set speech and we make another recounting
- all the advantages of being just, and he answers and we rejoin,
- there must be a numbering and measuring of the goods which are claimed
- on either side, and in the end we shall want judges to decide;
- but if we proceed in our enquiry as we lately did, by making admissions
- to one another, we shall unite the offices of judge and advocate
- in our own persons.
-
- Very good, he said.
-
- And which method do I understand you to prefer? I said.
-
- That which you propose.
-
- Well, then, Thrasymachus, I said, suppose you begin at the beginning
- and answer me. You say that perfect injustice is more gainful
- than perfect justice?
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON - THRASYMACHUS
-
- Yes, that is what I say, and I have given you my reasons.
-
- And what is your view about them? Would you call one of them
- virtue and the other vice?
-
- Certainly.
-
- I suppose that you would call justice virtue and injustice vice?
-
- What a charming notion! So likely too, seeing that I affirm
- injustice to be profitable and justice not.
-
- What else then would you say?
-
- The opposite, he replied.
-
- And would you call justice vice?
-
- No, I would rather say sublime simplicity.
-
- Then would you call injustice malignity?
-
- No; I would rather say discretion.
-
- And do the unjust appear to you to be wise and good?
-
- Yes, he said; at any rate those of them who are able to be perfectly
- unjust, and who have the power of subduing states and nations;
- but perhaps you imagine me to be talking of cutpurses.
-
- Even this profession if undetected has advantages, though they
- are not to be compared with those of which I was just now speaking.
-
- I do not think that I misapprehend your meaning, Thrasymachus, I replied;
- but still I cannot hear without amazement that you class injustice
- with wisdom and virtue, and justice with the opposite.
-
- Certainly I do so class them.
-
- Now, I said, you are on more substantial and almost unanswerable ground;
- for if the injustice which you were maintaining to be profitable
- had been admitted by you as by others to be vice and deformity,
- an answer might have been given to you on received principles;
- but now I perceive that you will call injustice honourable and strong,
- and to the unjust you will attribute all the qualities which were
- attributed by us before to the just, seeing that you do not hesitate to
- rank injustice with wisdom and virtue.
-
- You have guessed most infallibly, he replied.
-
- Then I certainly ought not to shrink from going through
- with the argument so long as I have reason to think that you,
- Thrasymachus, are speaking your real mind; for I do believe
- that you are now in earnest and are not amusing yourself at our expense.
-
- I may be in earnest or not, but what is that to you?--to refute
- the argument is your business.
-
- Very true, I said; that is what I have to do: But will you
- be so good as answer yet one more question? Does the just man
- try to gain any advantage over the just?
-
- Far otherwise; if he did would not be the simple, amusing creature
- which he is.
-
- And would he try to go beyond just action?
-
- He would not.
-
- And how would he regard the attempt to gain an advantage over the unjust;
- would that be considered by him as just or unjust?
-
- He would think it just, and would try to gain the advantage;
- but he would not be able.
-
- Whether he would or would not be able, I said, is not to the point.
- My question is only whether the just man, while refusing to have
- more than another just man, would wish and claim to have more than
- the unjust?
-
- Yes, he would.
-
- And what of the unjust--does he claim to have more than the just
- man and to do more than is just
-
- Of course, he said, for he claims to have more than all men.
-
- And the unjust man will strive and struggle to obtain more than
- the unjust man or action, in order that he may have more than all?
-
- True.
-
- We may put the matter thus, I said--the just does not desire
- more than his like but more than his unlike, whereas the unjust
- desires more than both his like and his unlike?
-
- Nothing, he said, can be better than that statement.
-
- And the unjust is good and wise, and the just is neither?
-
- Good again, he said.
-
- And is not the unjust like the wise and good and the just unlike them?
-
- Of course, he said, he who is of a certain nature, is like those
- who are of a certain nature; he who is not, not.
-
- Each of them, I said, is such as his like is?
-
- Certainly, he replied.
-
- Very good, Thrasymachus, I said; and now to take the case of the arts:
- you would admit that one man is a musician and another not a musician?
-
- Yes.
-
- And which is wise and which is foolish?
-
- Clearly the musician is wise, and he who is not a musician is foolish.
-
- And he is good in as far as he is wise, and bad in as far as he
- is foolish?
-
- Yes.
-
- And you would say the same sort of thing of the physician?
-
- Yes.
-
- And do you think, my excellent friend, that a musician when he
- adjusts the lyre would desire or claim to exceed or go beyond
- a musician in the tightening and loosening the strings?
-
- I do not think that he would.
-
- But he would claim to exceed the non-musician?
-
- Of course.
-
- And what would you say of the physician? In prescribing meats
- and drinks would he wish to go beyond another physician or beyond
- the practice of medicine?
-
- He would not.
-
- But he would wish to go beyond the non-physician?
-
- Yes.
-
- And about knowledge and ignorance in general; see whether you think
- that any man who has knowledge ever would wish to have the choice
- of saying or doing more than another man who has knowledge.
- Would he not rather say or do the same as his like in the same case?
-
- That, I suppose, can hardly be denied.
-
- And what of the ignorant? would he not desire to have more than
- either the knowing or the ignorant?
-
- I dare say.
-
- And the knowing is wise?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the wise is good?
-
- True.
-
- Then the wise and good will not desire to gain more than his like,
- but more than his unlike and opposite?
-
- I suppose so.
-
- Whereas the bad and ignorant will desire to gain more than both?
-
- Yes.
-
- But did we not say, Thrasymachus, that the unjust goes beyond
- both his like and unlike? Were not these your words? They were.
-
- They were.
-
- And you also said that the lust will not go beyond his like but his unlike?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then the just is like the wise and good, and the unjust like the evil
- and ignorant?
-
- That is the inference.
-
- And each of them is such as his like is?
-
- That was admitted.
-
- Then the just has turned out to be wise and good and the unjust
- evil and ignorant.
-
- Thrasymachus made all these admissions, not fluently,
- as I repeat them, but with extreme reluctance; it was a hot
- summer's day, and the perspiration poured from him in torrents;
- and then I saw what I had never seen before, Thrasymachus blushing.
- As we were now agreed that justice was virtue and wisdom,
- and injustice vice and ignorance, I proceeded to another point:
-
- Well, I said, Thrasymachus, that matter is now settled; but were we
- not also saying that injustice had strength; do you remember?
-
- Yes, I remember, he said, but do not suppose that I approve of what
- you are saying or have no answer; if however I were to answer,
- you would be quite certain to accuse me of haranguing; therefore either
- permit me to have my say out, or if you would rather ask, do so,
- and I will answer `Very good,' as they say to story-telling old women,
- and will nod `Yes' and `No.'
-
- Certainly not, I said, if contrary to your real opinion.
-
- Yes, he said, I will, to please you, since you will not let me speak.
- What else would you have?
-
- Nothing in the world, I said; and if you are so disposed I will ask
- and you shall answer.
-
- Proceed.
-
- Then I will repeat the question which I asked before,
- in order that our examination of the relative nature of justice
- and injustice may be carried on regularly. A statement was made
- that injustice is stronger and more powerful than justice,
- but now justice, having been identified with wisdom and virtue,
- is easily shown to be stronger than injustice, if injustice
- is ignorance; this can no longer be questioned by any one.
- But I want to view the matter, Thrasymachus, in a different way:
- You would not deny that a state may be unjust and may be unjustly
- attempting to enslave other states, or may have already enslaved them,
- and may be holding many of them in subjection?
-
- True, he replied; and I will add the best and perfectly unjust
- state will be most likely to do so.
-
- I know, I said, that such was your position; but what I would further
- consider is, whether this power which is possessed by the superior
- state can exist or be exercised without justice.
-
- If you are right in you view, and justice is wisdom, then only
- with justice; but if I am right, then without justice.
-
- I am delighted, Thrasymachus, to see you not only nodding assent
- and dissent, but making answers which are quite excellent.
-
- That is out of civility to you, he replied.
-
- You are very kind, I said; and would you have the goodness
- also to inform me, whether you think that a state, or an army,
- or a band of robbers and thieves, or any other gang of evil-doers
- could act at all if they injured one another?
-
- No indeed, he said, they could not.
-
- But if they abstained from injuring one another, then they might
- act together better?
-
- Yes.
-
- And this is because injustice creates divisions and hatreds
- and fighting, and justice imparts harmony and friendship;
- is not that true, Thrasymachus?
-
- I agree, he said, because I do not wish to quarrel with you.
-
- How good of you, I said; but I should like to know also whether injustice,
- having this tendency to arouse hatred, wherever existing,
- among slaves or among freemen, will not make them hate one another
- and set them at variance and render them incapable of common action?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And even if injustice be found in two only, will they not quarrel
- and fight, and become enemies to one another and to the just
-
- They will.
-
- And suppose injustice abiding in a single person, would your wisdom
- say that she loses or that she retains her natural power?
-
- Let us assume that she retains her power.
-
- Yet is not the power which injustice exercises of such a nature
- that wherever she takes up her abode, whether in a city,
- in an army, in a family, or in any other body, that body is,
- to begin with, rendered incapable of united action by reason
- of sedition and distraction; and does it not become its own enemy
- and at variance with all that opposes it, and with the just?
- Is not this the case?
-
- Yes, certainly.
-
- And is not injustice equally fatal when existing in a single person;
- in the first place rendering him incapable of action because he
- is not at unity with himself, and in the second place making him
- an enemy to himself and the just? Is not that true, Thrasymachus?
-
- Yes.
-
- And O my friend, I said, surely the gods are just?
-
- Granted that they are.
-
- But if so, the unjust will be the enemy of the gods, and the just
- will be their friend?
-
- Feast away in triumph, and take your fill of the argument;
- I will not oppose you, lest I should displease the company.
-
- Well then, proceed with your answers, and let me have the remainder
- of my repast. For we have already shown that the just are clearly
- wiser and better and abler than the unjust, and that the unjust
- are incapable of common action; nay ing at more, that to speak as we
- did of men who are evil acting at any time vigorously together,
- is not strictly true, for if they had been perfectly evil, they would
- have laid hands upon one another; but it is evident that there must
- have been some remnant of justice in them, which enabled them to combine;
- if there had not been they would have injured one another as well
- as their victims; they were but half--villains in their enterprises;
- for had they been whole villains, and utterly unjust, they would
- have been utterly incapable of action. That, as I believe,
- is the truth of the matter, and not what you said at first.
- But whether the just have a better and happier life than the unjust
- is a further question which we also proposed to consider. I think
- that they have, and for the reasons which to have given; but still
- I should like to examine further, for no light matter is at stake,
- nothing less than the rule of human life.
-
- Proceed.
-
- I will proceed by asking a question: Would you not say that a horse
- has some end?
-
- I should.
-
- And the end or use of a horse or of anything would be that which could
- not be accomplished, or not so well accomplished, by any other thing?
-
- I do not understand, he said.
-
- Let me explain: Can you see, except with the eye?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Or hear, except with the ear?
-
- No.
-
- These then may be truly said to be the ends of these organs?
-
- They may.
-
- But you can cut off a vine-branch with a dagger or with a chisel,
- and in many other ways?
-
- Of course.
-
- And yet not so well as with a pruning-hook made for the purpose?
-
- True.
-
- May we not say that this is the end of a pruning-hook?
-
- We may.
-
- Then now I think you will have no difficulty in understanding my
- meaning when I asked the question whether the end of anything would
- be that which could not be accomplished, or not so well accomplished,
- by any other thing?
-
- I understand your meaning, he said, and assent.
-
- And that to which an end is appointed has also an excellence?
- Need I ask again whether the eye has an end?
-
- It has.
-
- And has not the eye an excellence?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the ear has an end and an excellence also?
-
- True.
-
- And the same is true of all other things; they have each of them
- an end and a special excellence?
-
- That is so.
-
- Well, and can the eyes fulfil their end if they are wanting
- in their own proper excellence and have a defect instead?
-
- How can they, he said, if they are blind and cannot see?
-
- You mean to say, if they have lost their proper excellence,
- which is sight; but I have not arrived at that point yet.
- I would rather ask the question more generally, and only enquire
- whether the things which fulfil their ends fulfil them by their own
- proper excellence, and fall of fulfilling them by their own defect?
-
- Certainly, he replied.
-
- I might say the same of the ears; when deprived of their own proper
- excellence they cannot fulfil their end?
-
- True.
-
- And the same observation will apply to all other things?
-
- I agree.
-
- Well; and has not the soul an end which nothing else can fulfil?
- for example, to superintend and command and deliberate and the like.
- Are not these functions proper to the soul, and can they rightly be
- assigned to any other?
-
- To no other.
-
- And is not life to be reckoned among the ends of the soul?
-
- Assuredly, he said.
-
- And has not the soul an excellence also?
-
- Yes.
-
- And can she or can she not fulfil her own ends when deprived
- of that excellence?
-
- She cannot.
-
- Then an evil soul must necessarily be an evil ruler and superintendent,
- and the good soul a good ruler?
-
- Yes, necessarily.
-
- And we have admitted that justice is the excellence of the soul,
- and injustice the defect of the soul?
-
- That has been admitted.
-
- Then the just soul and the just man will live well, and the unjust
- man will live ill?
-
- That is what your argument proves.
-
- And he who lives well is blessed and happy, and he who lives ill
- the reverse of happy?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then the just is happy, and the unjust miserable?
-
- So be it.
-
- But happiness and not misery is profitable.
-
- Of course.
-
- Then, my blessed Thrasymachus, injustice can never be more profitable
- than justice.
-
- Let this, Socrates, he said, be your entertainment at the Bendidea.
-
- For which I am indebted to you, I said, now that you have grown
- gentle towards me and have left off scolding. Nevertheless, I have
- not been well entertained; but that was my own fault and not yours.
- As an epicure snatches a taste of every dish which is successively
- brought to table, he not having allowed himself time to enjoy
- the one before, so have I gone from one subject to another without
- having discovered what I sought at first, the nature of justice.
- I left that enquiry and turned away to consider whether justice is
- virtue and wisdom or evil and folly; and when there arose a further
- question about the comparative advantages of justice and injustice,
- I could not refrain from passing on to that. And the result
- of the whole discussion has been that I know nothing at all.
- For I know not what justice is, and therefore I am not likely to know
- whether it is or is not a virtue, nor can I say whether the just man
- is happy or unhappy.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK II
-
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- WITH these words I was thinking that I had made an end of the discussion;
- but the end, in truth, proved to be only a beginning. For Glaucon,
- who is always the most pugnacious of men, was dissatisfied
- at Thrasymachus' retirement; he wanted to have the battle out.
- So he said to me: Socrates, do you wish really to persuade us,
- or only to seem to have persuaded us, that to be just is always better
- than to be unjust?
-
- I should wish really to persuade you, I replied, if I could.
-
- Then you certainly have not succeeded. Let me ask you now:--How would
- you arrange goods--are there not some which we welcome for their
- own sakes, and independently of their consequences, as, for example,
- harmless pleasures and enjoyments, which delight us at the time,
- although nothing follows from them?
-
- I agree in thinking that there is such a class, I replied.
-
- Is there not also a second class of goods, such as knowledge,
- sight, health, which are desirable not only in themselves,
- but also for their results?
-
- Certainly, I said.
-
- And would you not recognize a third class, such as gymnastic,
- and the care of the sick, and the physician's art; also the various ways
- of money-making--these do us good but we regard them as disagreeable;
- and no one would choose them for their own sakes, but only for the sake
- of some reward or result which flows from them?
-
- There is, I said, this third class also. But why do you ask?
-
- Because I want to know in which of the three classes you would
- place justice?
-
- In the highest class, I replied,--among those goods which he
- who would be happy desires both for their own sake and for the sake
- of their results.
-
- Then the many are of another mind; they think that justice
- is to be reckoned in the troublesome class, among goods which
- are to be pursued for the sake of rewards and of reputation,
- but in themselves are disagreeable and rather to be avoided.
-
- I know, I said, that this is their manner of thinking, and that
- this was the thesis which Thrasymachus was maintaining just now,
- when he censured justice and praised injustice. But I am too stupid
- to be convinced by him.
-
- I wish, he said, that you would hear me as well as him, and then I shall
- see whether you and I agree. For Thrasymachus seems to me, like a snake,
- to have been charmed by your voice sooner than he ought to have been;
- but to my mind the nature of justice and injustice have not yet been
- made clear. Setting aside their rewards and results, I want to know
- what they are in themselves, and how they inwardly work in the soul.
- If you, please, then, I will revive the argument of Thrasymachus.
- And first I will speak of the nature and origin of justice according
- to the common view of them. Secondly, I will show that all men
- who practise justice do so against their will, of necessity,
- but not as a good. And thirdly, I will argue that there is reason
- in this view, for the life of the unjust is after all better far
- than the life of the just--if what they say is true, Socrates,
- since I myself am not of their opinion. But still I acknowledge
- that I am perplexed when I hear the voices of Thrasymachus
- and myriads of others dinning in my ears; and, on the other hand,
- I have never yet heard the superiority of justice to injustice
- maintained by any one in a satisfactory way. I want to hear justice
- praised in respect of itself; then I shall be satisfied, and you
- are the person from whom I think that I am most likely to hear this;
- and therefore I will praise the unjust life to the utmost of my power,
- and my manner of speaking will indicate the manner in which I
- desire to hear you too praising justice and censuring injustice.
- Will you say whether you approve of my proposal?
-
- Indeed I do; nor can I imagine any theme about which a man of sense
- would oftener wish to converse.
-
- I am delighted, he replied, to hear you say so, and shall begin
- by speaking, as I proposed, of the nature and origin of justice.
-
- GLAUCON
-
- They say that to do injustice is, by nature, good; to suffer
- injustice, evil; but that the evil is greater than the good.
- And so when men have both done and suffered injustice and have had
- experience of both, not being able to avoid the one and obtain
- the other, they think that they had better agree among themselves
- to have neither; hence there arise laws and mutual covenants;
- and that which is ordained by law is termed by them lawful and just.
- This they affirm to be the origin and nature of justice;--it is a mean
- or compromise, between the best of all, which is to do injustice
- and not be punished, and the worst of all, which is to suffer injustice
- without the power of retaliation; and justice, being at a middle point
- between the two, is tolerated not as a good, but as the lesser evil,
- and honoured by reason of the inability of men to do injustice.
- For no man who is worthy to be called a man would ever submit to such
- an agreement if he were able to resist; he would be mad if he did.
- Such is the received account, Socrates, of the nature and origin
- of justice.
-
- Now that those who practise justice do so involuntarily and because
- they have not the power to be unjust will best appear if we
- imagine something of this kind: having given both to the just
- and the unjust power to do what they will, let us watch and see
- whither desire will lead them; then we shall discover in the very
- act the just and unjust man to be proceeding along the same road,
- following their interest, which all natures deem to be their good,
- and are only diverted into the path of justice by the force of law.
- The liberty which we are supposing may be most completely
- given to them in the form of such a power as is said to have
- been possessed by Gyges the ancestor of Croesus the Lydian.
- According to the tradition, Gyges was a shepherd in the service
- of the king of Lydia; there was a great storm, and an earthquake made
- an opening in the earth at the place where he was feeding his flock.
- Amazed at the sight, he descended into the opening, where,
- among other marvels, he beheld a hollow brazen horse, having doors,
- at which he stooping and looking in saw a dead body of stature,
- as appeared to him, more than human, and having nothing on but a
- gold ring; this he took from the finger of the dead and reascended.
- Now the shepherds met together, according to custom, that they
- might send their monthly report about the flocks to the king;
- into their assembly he came having the ring on his finger, and as he
- was sitting among them he chanced to turn the collet of the ring inside
- his hand, when instantly he became invisible to the rest of the company
- and they began to speak of him as if he were no longer present.
- He was astonished at this, and again touching the ring he turned
- the collet outwards and reappeared; he made several trials of the ring,
- and always with the same result-when he turned the collet inwards he
- became invisible, when outwards he reappeared. Whereupon he contrived
- to be chosen one of the messengers who were sent to the court;
- where as soon as he arrived he seduced the queen, and with her help
- conspired against the king and slew him, and took the kingdom.
- Suppose now that there were two such magic rings, and the just put
- on one of them and the unjust the other;,no man can be imagined
- to be of such an iron nature that he would stand fast in justice.
- No man would keep his hands off what was not his own when he could
- safely take what he liked out of the market, or go into houses
- and lie with any one at his pleasure, or kill or release from prison
- whom he would, and in all respects be like a God among men.
- Then the actions of the just would be as the actions of the unjust;
- they would both come at last to the same point. And this we may
- truly affirm to be a great proof that a man is just, not willingly
- or because he thinks that justice is any good to him individually,
- but of necessity, for wherever any one thinks that he can safely
- be unjust, there he is unjust. For all men believe in their hearts
- that injustice is far more profitable to the individual than justice,
- and he who argues as I have been supposing, will say that they are right.
- If you could imagine any one obtaining this power of becoming invisible,
- and never doing any wrong or touching what was another's, he would
- be thought by the lookers-on to be a most wretched idiot, although they
- would praise him to one another's faces, and keep up appearances
- with one another from a fear that they too might suffer injustice.
- Enough of this.
-
- Now, if we are to form a real judgment of the life of the just and unjust,
- we must isolate them; there is no other way; and how is the isolation
- to be effected? I answer: Let the unjust man be entirely unjust,
- and the just man entirely just; nothing is to be taken away from
- either of them, and both are to be perfectly furnished for the work
- of their respective lives. First, let the unjust be like other
- distinguished masters of craft; like the skilful pilot or physician,
- who knows intuitively his own powers and keeps within their limits,
- and who, if he fails at any point, is able to recover himself.
- So let the unjust make his unjust attempts in the right way,
- and lie hidden if he means to be great in his injustice (he who is
- found out is nobody): for the highest reach of injustice is:
- to be deemed just when you are not. Therefore I say that in
- the perfectly unjust man we must assume the most perfect injustice;
- there is to be no deduction, but we must allow him, while doing the most
- unjust acts, to have acquired the greatest reputation for justice.
- If he have taken a false step he must be able to recover himself;
- he must be one who can speak with effect, if any of his deeds
- come to light, and who can force his way where force is required
- his courage and strength, and command of money and friends.
- And at his side let us place the just man in his nobleness
- and simplicity, wishing, as Aeschylus says, to be and not to seem good.
- There must be no seeming, for if he seem to be just he will be
- honoured and rewarded, and then we shall not know whether he is just
- for the sake of justice or for the sake of honours and rewards;
- therefore, let him be clothed in justice only, and have no other covering;
- and he must be imagined in a state of life the opposite of the former.
- Let him be the best of men, and let him be thought the worst;
- then he will have been put to the proof; and we shall see whether
- he will be affected by the fear of infamy and its consequences.
- And let him continue thus to the hour of death; being just and
- seeming to be unjust. When both have reached the uttermost extreme,
- the one of justice and the other of injustice, let judgment be given
- which of them is the happier of the two.
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- Heavens! my dear Glaucon, I said, how energetically you polish
- them up for the decision, first one and then the other, as if they
- were two statues.
-
- I do my best, he said. And now that we know what they are
- like there is no difficulty in tracing out the sort of life
- which awaits either of them. This I will proceed to describe;
- but as you may think the description a little too coarse, I ask you
- to suppose, Socrates, that the words which follow are not mine.--
- Let me put them into the mouths of the eulogists of injustice:
- They will tell you that the just man who is thought unjust will
- be scourged, racked, bound--will have his eyes burnt out; and, at last,
- after suffering every kind of evil, he will be impaled: Then he
- will understand that he ought to seem only, and not to be, just;
- the words of Aeschylus may be more truly spoken of the unjust
- than of the just. For the unjust is pursuing a reality; he does
- not live with a view to appearances--he wants to be really unjust
- and not to seem only:--
-
- His mind has a soil deep and fertile,
- Out of which spring his prudent counsels.
-
- In the first place, he is thought just, and therefore bears rule
- in the city; he can marry whom he will, and give in marriage
- to whom he will; also he can trade and deal where he likes,
- and always to his own advantage, because he has no misgivings
- about injustice and at every contest, whether in public or private,
- he gets the better of his antagonists, and gains at their expense,
- and is rich, and out of his gains he can benefit his friends,
- and harm his enemies; moreover, he can offer sacrifices, and dedicate
- gifts to the gods abundantly and magnificently, and can honour the gods
- or any man whom he wants to honour in a far better style than the just,
- and therefore he is likely to be dearer than they are to the gods.
- And thus, Socrates, gods and men are said to unite in making the life
- of the unjust better than the life of the just.
-
- ADEIMANTUS -SOCRATES
-
- I was going to say something in answer to Glaucon, when Adeimantus,
- his brother, interposed: Socrates, he said, you do not suppose
- that there is nothing more to be urged?
-
- Why, what else is there? I answered.
-
- The strongest point of all has not been even mentioned, he replied.
-
- Well, then, according to the proverb, `Let brother help brother'--
- if he fails in any part do you assist him; although I must confess
- that Glaucon has already said quite enough to lay me in the dust,
- and take from me the power of helping justice.
-
- ADEIMANTUS
-
- Nonsense, he replied. But let me add something more: There is
- another side to Glaucon's argument about the praise and censure
- of justice and injustice, which is equally required in order to bring
- out what I believe to be his meaning. Parents and tutors are always
- telling their sons and their wards that they are to be just;
- but why? not for the sake of justice, but for the sake of character
- and reputation; in the hope of obtaining for him who is reputed
- just some of those offices, marriages, and the like which Glaucon
- has enumerated among the advantages accruing to the unjust from
- the reputation of justice. More, however, is made of appearances
- by this class of persons than by the others; for they throw
- in the good opinion of the gods, and will tell you of a shower
- of benefits which the heavens, as they say, rain upon the pious;
- and this accords with the testimony of the noble Hesiod and Homer,
- the first of whom says, that the gods make the oaks of the just--
-
- To hear acorns at their summit, and bees I the middle;
- And the sheep the bowed down bowed the with the their fleeces.
-
- and many other blessings of a like kind are provided for them.
- And Homer has a very similar strain; for he speaks of one whose
- fame is--
-
- As the fame of some blameless king who, like a god,
- Maintains justice to whom the black earth brings forth
- Wheat and barley, whose trees are bowed with fruit,
- And his sheep never fail to bear, and the sea gives him fish.
-
- Still grander are the gifts of heaven which Musaeus and his son
- vouchsafe to the just; they take them down into the world below,
- where they have the saints lying on couches at a feast,
- everlastingly drunk, crowned with garlands; their idea seems to be
- that an immortality of drunkenness is the highest meed of virtue.
- Some extend their rewards yet further; the posterity, as they say,
- of the faithful and just shall survive to the third and fourth generation.
- This is the style in which they praise justice. But about the wicked
- there is another strain; they bury them in a slough in Hades, and make
- them carry water in a sieve; also while they are yet living they bring
- them to infamy, and inflict upon them the punishments which Glaucon
- described as the portion of the just who are reputed to be unjust;
- nothing else does their invention supply. Such is their manner of
- praising the one and censuring the other.
-
- Once more, Socrates, I will ask you to consider another way of speaking
- about justice and injustice, which is not confined to the poets,
- but is found in prose writers. The universal voice of mankind
- is always declaring that justice and virtue are honourable,
- but grievous and toilsome; and that the pleasures of vice and injustice
- are easy of attainment, and are only censured by law and opinion.
- They say also that honesty is for the most part less profitable
- than dishonesty; and they are quite ready to call wicked men happy,
- and to honour them both in public and private when they are rich
- or in any other way influential, while they despise and overlook
- those who may be weak and poor, even though acknowledging
- them to be better than the others. But most extraordinary
- of all is their mode of speaking about virtue and the gods:
- they say that the gods apportion calamity and misery to many good men,
- and good and happiness to the wicked. And mendicant prophets go
- to rich men's doors and persuade them that they have a power committed
- to them by the gods of making an atonement for a man's own or his
- ancestor's sins by sacrifices or charms, with rejoicings and feasts;
- and they promise to harm an enemy, whether just or unjust,
- at a small cost; with magic arts and incantations binding heaven,
- as they say, to execute their will. And the poets are the authorities
- to whom they appeal, now smoothing the path of vice with the words
- of Hesiod;--
-
- Vice may be had in abundance without trouble; the way is smooth
- and her dwelling-place is near. But before virtue the gods have
- set toil,
-
- and a tedious and uphill road: then citing Homer as a witness
- that the gods may be influenced by men; for he also says:
-
- The gods, too, may he turned from their purpose; and men pray to
- them and avert their wrath by sacrifices and soothing entreaties,
- and by libations and the odour of fat, when they have sinned and
- transgressed.
-
- And they produce a host of books written by Musaeus and Orpheus,
- who were children of the Moon and the Muses--that is what they say--
- according to which they perform their ritual, and persuade not
- only individuals, but whole cities, that expiations and atonements for
- sin may be made by sacrifices and amusements which fill a vacant hour,
- and are equally at the service of the living and the dead; the latter
- sort they call mysteries, and they redeem us from the pains of hell,
- but if we neglect them no one knows what awaits us.
-
- He proceeded: And now when the young hear all this said about
- virtue and vice, and the way in which gods and men regard them,
- how are their minds likely to be affected, my dear Socrates,--
- those of them, I mean, who are quickwitted, and, like bees on the wing,
- light on every flower, and from all that they hear are prone to draw
- conclusions as to what manner of persons they should be and in
- what way they should walk if they would make the best of life?
- Probably the youth will say to himself in the words of Pindar--
-
- Can I by justice or by crooked ways of deceit ascend a loftier
- tower which may he a fortress to me all my days?
-
- For what men say is that, if I am really just and am not also thought
- just profit there is none, but the pain and loss on the other hand
- are unmistakable. But if, though unjust, I acquire the reputation
- of justice, a heavenly life is promised to me. Since then,
- as philosophers prove, appearance tyrannizes over truth and is lord
- of happiness, to appearance I must devote myself. I will describe
- around me a picture and shadow of virtue to be the vestibule and
- exterior of my house; behind I will trail the subtle and crafty fox,
- as Archilochus, greatest of sages, recommends. But I hear some one
- exclaiming that the concealment of wickedness is often difficult;
- to which I answer, Nothing great is easy. Nevertheless, the argument
- indicates this, if we would be happy, to be the path along which we
- should proceed. With a view to concealment we will establish
- secret brotherhoods and political clubs. And there are professors
- of rhetoric who teach the art of persuading courts and assemblies;
- and so, partly by persuasion and partly by force, I shall make
- unlawful gains and not be punished. Still I hear a voice saying
- that the gods cannot be deceived, neither can they be compelled.
- But what if there are no gods? or, suppose them to have no care
- of human things--why in either case should we mind about concealment?
- And even if there are gods, and they do care about us, yet we know
- of them only from tradition and the genealogies of the poets;
- and these are the very persons who say that they may be influenced
- and turned by `sacrifices and soothing entreaties and by offerings.'
- Let us be consistent then, and believe both or neither.
- If the poets speak truly, why then we had better be unjust,
- and offer of the fruits of injustice; for if we are just,
- although we may escape the vengeance of heaven, we shall lose
- the gains of injustice; but, if we are unjust, we shall keep
- the gains, and by our sinning and praying, and praying and sinning,
- the gods will be propitiated, and we shall not be punished.
- `But there is a world below in which either we or our posterity
- will suffer for our unjust deeds.' Yes, my friend, will be
- the reflection, but there are mysteries and atoning deities,
- and these have great power. That is what mighty cities declare;
- and the children of the gods, who were their poets and prophets, bear a
- like testimony.
-
- On what principle, then, shall we any longer choose justice
- rather than the worst injustice? when, if we only unite
- the latter with a deceitful regard to appearances, we shall fare
- to our mind both with gods and men, in life and after death,
- as the most numerous and the highest authorities tell us.
- Knowing all this, Socrates, how can a man who has any superiority
- of mind or person or rank or wealth, be willing to honour justice;
- or indeed to refrain from laughing when he hears justice praised?
- And even if there should be some one who is able to disprove
- the truth of my words, and who is satisfied that justice is best,
- still he is not angry with the unjust, but is very ready
- to forgive them, because he also knows that men are not just of
- their own free will; unless, peradventure, there be some one whom
- the divinity within him may have inspired with a hatred of injustice,
- or who has attained knowledge of the truth--but no other man.
- He only blames injustice who, owing to cowardice or age or some weakness,
- has not the power of being unjust. And this is proved by the fact
- that when he obtains the power, he immediately becomes unjust as far
- as he can be.
-
- The cause of all this, Socrates, was indicated by us at the beginning
- of the argument, when my brother and I told you how astonished we
- were to find that of all the professing panegyrists of justice--
- beginning with the ancient heroes of whom any memorial has
- been preserved to us, and ending with the men of our own time--
- no one has ever blamed injustice or praised justice except with a
- view to the glories, honours, and benefits which flow from them.
- No one has ever adequately described either in verse or prose
- the true essential nature of either of them abiding in the soul,
- and invisible to any human or divine eye; or shown that of
- all the things of a man's soul which he has within him,
- justice is the greatest good, and injustice the greatest evil.
- Had this been the universal strain, had you sought to persuade us
- of this from our youth upwards, we should not have been on the watch
- to keep one another from doing wrong, but every one would have been
- his own watchman, because afraid, if he did wrong, of harbouring
- in himself the greatest of evils. I dare say that Thrasymachus
- and others would seriously hold the language which I have been
- merely repeating, and words even stronger than these about justice
- and injustice, grossly, as I conceive, perverting their true nature.
- But I speak in this vehement manner, as I must frankly confess to you,
- because I want to hear from you the opposite side; and I would ask you
- to show not only the superiority which justice has over injustice,
- but what effect they have on the possessor of them which makes
- the one to be a good and the other an evil to him. And please,
- as Glaucon requested of you, to exclude reputations; for unless you
- take away from each of them his true reputation and add on the false,
- we shall say that you do not praise justice, but the appearance of it;
- we shall think that you are only exhorting us to keep injustice dark,
- and that you really agree with Thrasymachus in thinking that justice
- is another's good and the interest of the stronger, and that injustice
- is a man's own profit and interest, though injurious to the weaker.
- Now as you have admitted that justice is one of that highest class
- of goods which are desired indeed for their results, but in a far greater
- degree for their own sakes--like sight or hearing or knowledge or health,
- or any other real and natural and not merely conventional good--
- I would ask you in your praise of justice to regard one point only:
- I mean the essential good and evil which justice and injustice work in
- the possessors of them. Let others praise justice and censure injustice,
- magnifying the rewards and honours of the one and abusing the other;
- that is a manner of arguing which, coming from them, I am ready to tolerate,
- but from you who have spent your whole life in the consideration
- of this question, unless I hear the contrary from your own lips,
- I expect something better. And therefore, I say, not only prove
- to us that justice is better than injustice, but show what they
- either of them do to the possessor of them, which makes the one
- to be a good and the other an evil, whether seen or unseen by gods
- and men.
-
- SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
-
- I had always admired the genius of Glaucon and Adeimantus,
- but on hearing these words I was quite delighted, and said:
- Sons of an illustrious father, that was not a bad beginning of
- the Elegiac verses which the admirer of Glaucon made in honour of you
- after you had distinguished yourselves at the battle of Megara:--
-
- `Sons of Ariston,' he sang, `divine offspring of an
- illustrious hero.'
-
- The epithet is very appropriate, for there is something truly
- divine in being able to argue as you have done for the superiority
- of injustice, and remaining unconvinced by your own arguments.
- And I do believe that you are not convinced--this I infer from your
- general character, for had I judged only from your speeches I should
- have mistrusted you. But now, the greater my confidence in you,
- the greater is my difficulty in knowing what to say. For I am in a strait
- between two; on the one hand I feel that I am unequal to the task;
- and my inability is brought home to me by the fact that you were not
- satisfied with the answer which I made to Thrasymachus, proving,
- as I thought, the superiority which justice has over injustice.
- And yet I cannot refuse to help, while breath and speech remain to me;
- I am afraid that there would be an impiety in being present when
- justice is evil spoken of and not lifting up a hand in her defence.
- And therefore I had best give such help as I can.
-
- Glaucon and the rest entreated me by all means not to let the question drop,
- but to proceed in the investigation. They wanted to arrive
- at the truth, first, about the nature of justice and injustice,
- and secondly, about their relative advantages. I told them, what I--
- really thought, that the enquiry would be of a serious nature,
- and would require very good eyes. Seeing then, I said, that we
- are no great wits, I think that we had better adopt a method
- which I may illustrate thus; suppose that a short-sighted person
- had been asked by some one to read small letters from a distance;
- and it occurred to some one else that they might be found in another
- place which was larger and in which the letters were larger--
- if they were the same and he could read the larger letters first,
- and then proceed to the lesser--this would have been thought a rare piece
- of good fortune.
-
- Very true, said Adeimantus; but how does the illustration apply
- to our enquiry?
-
- I will tell you, I replied; justice, which is the subject of
- our enquiry, is, as you know, sometimes spoken of as the virtue
- of an individual, and sometimes as the virtue of a State.
-
- True, he replied.
-
- And is not a State larger than an individual?
-
- It is.
-
- Then in the larger the quantity of justice is likely to be larger
- and more easily discernible. I propose therefore that we enquire
- into the nature of justice and injustice, first as they appear
- in the State, and secondly in the individual, proceeding from
- the greater to the lesser and comparing them.
-
- That, he said, is an excellent proposal.
-
- And if we imagine the State in process of creation, we shall see
- the justice and injustice of the State in process of creation also.
-
- I dare say.
-
- When the State is completed there may be a hope that the object
- of our search will be more easily discovered.
-
- Yes, far more easily.
-
- But ought we to attempt to construct one? I said; for to do so,
- as I am inclined to think, will be a very serious task.
- Reflect therefore.
-
- I have reflected, said Adeimantus, and am anxious that you
- should proceed.
-
- A State, I said, arises, as I conceive, out of the needs of mankind;
- no one is self-sufficing, but all of us have many wants. Can any
- other origin of a State be imagined?
-
- There can I be no other.
-
- Then, as we have many wants, and many persons are needed to supply them,
- one takes a helper for one purpose and another for another;
- and when these partners and helpers are gathered together in one
- habitation the body of inhabitants is termed a State.
-
- True, he said.
-
- And they exchange with one another, and one gives, and another receives,
- under the idea that the exchange will be for their good.
-
- Very true.
-
- Then, I said, let us begin and create in idea a State; and yet
- the true creator is necessity, who is the mother of our invention.
-
- Of course, he replied.
-
- Now the first and greatest of necessities is food, which is
- the condition of life and existence.
-
- Certainly.
-
- The second is a dwelling, and the third clothing and the like.
-
- True.
-
- And now let us see how our city will be able to supply this great demand:
- We may suppose that one man is a husbandman, another a builder,
- some one else a weaver--shall we add to them a shoemaker, or perhaps
- some other purveyor to our bodily wants?
-
- Quite right.
-
- The barest notion of a State must include four or five men.
-
- Clearly.
-
- And how will they proceed? Will each bring the result of his labours
- into a common stock?--the individual husbandman, for example,
- producing for four, and labouring four times as long and as much
- as he need in the provision of food with which he supplies others
- as well as himself; or will he have nothing to do with others
- and not be at the trouble of producing for them, but provide
- for himself alone a fourth of the food in a fourth of the time,
- and in the remaining three-fourths of his time be employed in making
- a house or a coat or a pair of shoes, having no partnership with others,
- but supplying himself all his own wants?
-
- Adeimantus thought that he should aim at producing food only
- and not at producing everything.
-
- Probably, I replied, that would be the better way; and when I hear
- you say this, I am myself reminded that we are not all alike;
- there are diversities of natures among us which are adapted to
- different occupations.
-
- Very true.
-
- And will you have a work better done when the workman has
- many occupations, or when he has only one?
-
- When he has only one.
-
- Further, there can be no doubt that a work is spoilt when not done
- at the right time?
-
- No doubt.
-
- For business is not disposed to wait until the doer of the business
- is at leisure; but the doer must follow up what he is doing,
- and make the business his first object.
-
- He must.
-
- And if so, we must infer that all things are produced more
- plentifully and easily and of a better quality when one man does
- one thing which is natural to him and does it at the right time,
- and leaves other things.
-
- Undoubtedly..
-
- Then more than four citizens will be required; for the husbandman
- will not make his own plough or mattock, or other implements
- of agriculture, if they are to be good for anything.
- Neither will the builder make his tools--and he too needs many;
- and in like manner the weaver and shoemaker.
-
- True.
-
- Then carpenters, and smiths, and many other artisans, will be
- sharers in our little State, which is already beginning to grow?
-
- True.
-
- Yet even if we add neatherds, shepherds, and other herdsmen,
- in order that our husbandmen may have oxen to plough with,
- and builders as well as husbandmen may have draught cattle,
- and curriers and weavers fleeces and hides,--still our State will
- not be very large.
-
- That is true; yet neither will it be a very small State which
- contains all these.
-
- Then, again, there is the situation of the city--to find a place
- where nothing need be imported is well-nigh impossible.
-
- Impossible.
-
- Then there must be another class of citizens who will bring
- the required supply from another city?
-
- There must.
-
- But if the trader goes empty-handed, having nothing which they
- require who would supply his need, he will come back empty-handed.
-
- That is certain.
-
- And therefore what they produce at home must be not only
- enough for themselves, but such both in quantity and quality
- as to accommodate those from whom their wants are supplied.
-
- Very true.
-
- Then more husbandmen and more artisans will be required?
-
- They will.
-
- Not to mention the importers and exporters, who are called merchants?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then we shall want merchants?
-
- We shall.
-
- And if merchandise is to be carried over the sea, skilful sailors
- will also be needed, and in considerable numbers?
-
- Yes, in considerable numbers.
-
- Then, again, within the city, how will they exchange their productions?
- To secure such an exchange was, as you will remember, one of our
- principal objects when we formed them into a society and constituted
- a State.
-
- Clearly they will buy and sell.
-
- Then they will need a market-place, and a money-token for purposes
- of exchange.
-
- Certainly.
-
- Suppose now that a husbandman, or an artisan, brings some production
- to market, and he comes at a time when there is no one to exchange
- with him,--is he to leave his calling and sit idle in the market-place?
-
- Not at all; he will find people there who, seeing the want,
- undertake the office of salesmen. In well-ordered States they are
- commonly those who are the weakest in bodily strength, and therefore
- of little use for any other purpose; their duty is to be in the market,
- and to give money in exchange for goods to those who desire to sell
- and to take money from those who desire to buy.
-
- This want, then, creates a class of retail-traders in our State.
- Is not `retailer' the term which is applied to those who sit in
- the market-place engaged in buying and selling, while those who wander
- from one city to another are called merchants?
-
- Yes, he said.
-
- And there is another class of servants, who are intellectually hardly
- on the level of companionship; still they have plenty of bodily
- strength for labour, which accordingly they sell, and are called,
- if I do not mistake, hirelings, hire being the name which is given
- to the price of their labour.
-
- True.
-
- Then hirelings will help to make up our population?
-
- Yes.
-
- And now, Adeimantus, is our State matured and perfected?
-
- I think so.
-
- Where, then, is justice, and where is injustice, and in what part
- of the State did they spring up?
-
- Probably in the dealings of these citizens with one another.
- cannot imagine that they are more likely to be found anywhere else.
-
- I dare say that you are right in your suggestion, I said;
- we had better think the matter out, and not shrink from the enquiry.
-
- Let us then consider, first of all, what will be their way of life,
- now that we have thus established them. Will they not produce corn,
- and wine, and clothes, and shoes, and build houses for themselves?
- And when they are housed, they will work, in summer, commonly,
- stripped and barefoot, but in winter substantially clothed
- and shod. They will feed on barley-meal and flour of wheat,
- baking and kneading them, making noble cakes and loaves;
- these they will serve up on a mat of reeds or on clean leaves,
- themselves reclining the while upon beds strewn with yew or myrtle.
- And they and their children will feast, drinking of the wine
- which they have made, wearing garlands on their heads, and hymning
- the praises of the gods, in happy converse with one another.
- And they will take care that their families do not exceed their means;
- having an eye to poverty or war.
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- But, said Glaucon, interposing, you have not given them a relish
- to their meal.
-
- True, I replied, I had forgotten; of course they must have a relish-salt,
- and olives, and cheese, and they will boil roots and herbs such
- as country people prepare; for a dessert we shall give them figs,
- and peas, and beans; and they will roast myrtle-berries and acorns
- at the fire, drinking in moderation. And with such a diet they
- may be expected to live in peace and health to a good old age,
- and bequeath a similar life to their children after them.
-
- Yes, Socrates, he said, and if you were providing for a city of pigs,
- how else would you feed the beasts?
-
- But what would you have, Glaucon? I replied.
-
- Why, he said, you should give them the ordinary conveniences of life.
- People who are to be comfortable are accustomed to lie on sofas,
- and dine off tables, and they should have sauces and sweets in the
- modern style.
-
- Yes, I said, now I understand: the question which you would have me
- consider is, not only how a State, but how a luxurious State is created;
- and possibly there is no harm in this, for in such a State we
- shall be more likely to see how justice and injustice originate.
- In my opinion the true and healthy constitution of the State is
- the one which I have described. But if you wish also to see a State
- at fever heat, I have no objection. For I suspect that many will not
- be satisfied with the simpler way of way They will be for adding sofas,
- and tables, and other furniture; also dainties, and perfumes,
- and incense, and courtesans, and cakes, all these not of one sort only,
- but in every variety; we must go beyond the necessaries of which I
- was at first speaking, such as houses, and clothes, and shoes:
- the arts of the painter and the embroiderer will have to be set
- in motion, and gold and ivory and all sorts of materials must
- be procured.
-
- True, he said.
-
- Then we must enlarge our borders; for the original healthy
- State is no longer sufficient. Now will the city have to fill
- and swell with a multitude of callings which are not required
- by any natural want; such as the whole tribe of hunters and actors,
- of whom one large class have to do with forms and colours;
- another will be the votaries of music--poets and their attendant train
- of rhapsodists, players, dancers, contractors; also makers of divers
- kinds of articles, including women's dresses. And we shall want
- more servants. Will not tutors be also in request, and nurses wet
- and dry, tirewomen and barbers, as well as confectioners and cooks;
- and swineherds, too, who were not needed and therefore had no place
- in the former edition of our State, but are needed now? They must
- not be forgotten: and there will be animals of many other kinds,
- if people eat them.
-
- Certainly.
-
- And living in this way we shall have much greater need of physicians
- than before?
-
- Much greater.
-
- And the country which was enough to support the original inhabitants
- will be too small now, and not enough?
-
- Quite true.
-
- Then a slice of our neighbours' land will be wanted by us for pasture
- and tillage, and they will want a slice of ours, if, like ourselves,
- they exceed the limit of necessity, and give themselves up
- to the unlimited accumulation of wealth?
-
- That, Socrates, will be inevitable.
-
- And so we shall go to war, Glaucon. Shall we not?
-
- Most certainly, he replied.
-
- Then without determining as yet whether war does good or harm,
- thus much we may affirm, that now we have discovered war to be derived
- from causes which are also the causes of almost all the evils in States,
- private as well as public.
-
- Undoubtedly.
-
- And our State must once more enlarge; and this time the will be
- nothing short of a whole army, which will have to go out and fight
- with the invaders for all that we have, as well as for the things
- and persons whom we were describing above.
-
- Why? he said; are they not capable of defending themselves?
-
- No, I said; not if we were right in the principle which was
- acknowledged by all of us when we were framing the State:
- the principle, as you will remember, was that one man cannot
- practise many arts with success.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- But is not war an art?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And an art requiring as much attention as shoemaking?
-
- Quite true.
-
- And the shoemaker was not allowed by us to be husbandman, or a weaver,
- a builder--in order that we might have our shoes well made;
- but to him and to every other worker was assigned one work
- for which he was by nature fitted, and at that he was to continue
- working all his life long and at no other; he was not to let
- opportunities slip, and then he would become a good workman.
- Now nothing can be more important than that the work of a soldier
- should be well done. But is war an art so easily acquired that
- a man may be a warrior who is also a husbandman, or shoemaker,
- or other artisan; although no one in the world would be a good dice
- or draught player who merely took up the game as a recreation,
- and had not from his earliest years devoted himself to this and
- nothing else?
-
- No tools will make a man a skilled workman, or master of defence,
- nor be of any use to him who has not learned how to handle them,
- and has never bestowed any attention upon them. How then will he
- who takes up a shield or other implement of war become a good
- fighter all in a day, whether with heavy-armed or any other kind
- of troops?
-
- Yes, he said, the tools which would teach men their own use would
- be beyond price.
-
- And the higher the duties of the guardian, I said, the more time,
- and skill, and art, and application will be needed by him?
-
- No doubt, he replied.
-
- Will he not also require natural aptitude for his calling?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then it will be our duty to select, if we can, natures which are
- fitted for the task of guarding the city?
-
- It will.
-
- And the selection will be no easy matter, I said; but we must
- be brave and do our best.
-
- We must.
-
- Is not the noble youth very like a well-bred dog in respect
- of guarding and watching?
-
- What do you mean?
-
- I mean that both of them ought to be quick to see, and swift
- to overtake the enemy when they see him; and strong too if,
- when they have caught him, they have to fight with him.
-
- All these qualities, he replied, will certainly be required by them.
-
- Well, and your guardian must be brave if he is to fight well?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And is he likely to be brave who has no spirit, whether horse
- or dog or any other animal? Have you never observed how invincible
- and unconquerable is spirit and how the presence of it makes
- the soul of any creature to be absolutely fearless and indomitable?
-
- I have.
-
- Then now we have a clear notion of the bodily qualities which are
- required in the guardian.
-
- True.
-
- And also of the mental ones; his soul is to be full of spirit?
-
- Yes.
-
- But are not these spirited natures apt to be savage with one another,
- and with everybody else?
-
- A difficulty by no means easy to overcome, he replied.
-
- Whereas, I said, they ought to be dangerous to their enemies,
- and gentle to their friends; if not, they will destroy themselves
- without waiting for their enemies to destroy them.
-
- True, he said.
-
- What is to be done then? I said; how shall we find a gentle nature
- which has also a great spirit, for the one is the contradiction
- of the other?
-
- True.
-
- He will not be a good guardian who is wanting in either of these
- two qualities; and yet the combination of them appears to be impossible;
- and hence we must infer that to be a good guardian is impossible.
-
- I am afraid that what you say is true, he replied.
-
- Here feeling perplexed I began to think over what had preceded.
- My friend, I said, no wonder that we are in a perplexity; for we have
- lost sight of the image which we had before us.
-
- What do you mean? he said.
-
- I mean to say that there do exist natures gifted with those
- opposite qualities.
-
- And where do you find them?
-
- Many animals, I replied, furnish examples of them; our friend the dog
- is a very good one: you know that well-bred dogs are perfectly gentle
- to their familiars and acquaintances, and the reverse to strangers.
-
- Yes, I know.
-
- Then there is nothing impossible or out of the order of nature
- in our finding a guardian who has a similar combination of qualities?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Would not he who is fitted to be a guardian, besides the spirited nature,
- need to have the qualities of a philosopher?
-
- I do not apprehend your meaning.
-
- The trait of which I am speaking, I replied, may be also seen
- in the dog, and is remarkable in the animal.
-
- What trait?
-
- Why, a dog, whenever he sees a stranger, is angry; when an acquaintance,
- he welcomes him, although the one has never done him any harm,
- nor the other any good. Did this never strike you as curious?
-
- The matter never struck me before; but I quite recognise the truth
- of your remark.
-
- And surely this instinct of the dog is very charming;--your dog
- is a true philosopher.
-
- Why?
-
- Why, because he distinguishes the face of a friend and of
- an enemy only by the criterion of knowing and not knowing.
- And must not an animal be a lover of learning who determines
- what he likes and dislikes by the test of knowledge and ignorance?
-
- Most assuredly.
-
- And is not the love of learning the love of wisdom, which is philosophy?
-
- They are the same, he replied.
-
- And may we not say confidently of man also, that he who is likely
- to be gentle to his friends and acquaintances, must by nature
- be a lover of wisdom and knowledge?
-
- That we may safely affirm.
-
- Then he who is to be a really good and noble guardian of the State
- will require to unite in himself philosophy and spirit and swiftness
- and strength?
-
- Undoubtedly.
-
- Then we have found the desired natures; and now that we
- have found them, how are they to be reared and educated?
- Is not this enquiry which may be expected to throw light
- on the greater enquiry which is our final end--How do justice
- and injustice grow up in States? for we do not want either to omit
- what is to the point or to draw out the argument to an inconvenient length.
-
- SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
-
- Adeimantus thought that the enquiry would be of great service to us.
-
- Then, I said, my dear friend, the task must not be given up,
- even if somewhat long.
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Come then, and let us pass a leisure hour in story-telling,
- and our story shall be the education of our heroes.
-
- By all means.
-
- And what shall be their education? Can we find a better than
- the traditional sort?--and this has two divisions, gymnastic for
- the body, and music for the soul.
-
- True.
-
- Shall we begin education with music, and go on to gymnastic afterwards?
-
- By all means.
-
- And when you speak of music, do you include literature or not?
-
- I do.
-
- And literature may be either true or false?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the young should be trained in both kinds, and we begin
- with the false?
-
- I do not understand your meaning, he said.
-
- You know, I said, that we begin by telling children stories which,
- though not wholly destitute of truth, are in the main fictitious;
- and these stories are told them when they are not of an age to
- learn gymnastics.
-
- Very true.
-
- That was my meaning when I said that we must teach music before gymnastics.
-
- Quite right, he said.
-
- You know also that the beginning is the most important part
- of any work, especially in the case of a young and tender thing;
- for that is the time at which the character is being formed and
- the desired impression is more readily taken.
-
- Quite true.
-
- And shall we just carelessly allow children to hear any casual tales
- which may be devised by casual persons, and to receive into their
- minds ideas for the most part the very opposite of those which we
- should wish them to have when they are grown up?
-
- We cannot.
-
- Then the first thing will be to establish a censorship of the writers
- of fiction, and let the censors receive any tale of fiction which
- is good, and reject the bad; and we will desire mothers and nurses
- to tell their children the authorised ones only. Let them fashion
- the mind with such tales, even more fondly than they mould the body
- with their hands; but most of those which are now in use must be discarded.
-
- Of what tales are you speaking? he said.
-
- You may find a model of the lesser in the greater, I said;
- for they are necessarily of the same type, and there is the same
- spirit in both of them.
-
- Very likely, he replied; but I do not as yet know what you would
- term the greater.
-
- Those, I said, which are narrated by Homer and Hesiod, and the rest
- of the poets, who have ever been the great story-tellers of mankind.
-
- But which stories do you mean, he said; and what fault do you find
- with them?
-
- A fault which is most serious, I said; the fault of telling
- a lie, and, what is more, a bad lie.
-
- But when is this fault committed?
-
- Whenever an erroneous representation is made of the nature of gods
- and heroes,--as when a painter paints a portrait not having
- the shadow of a likeness to the original.
-
- Yes, he said, that sort of thing is certainly very blamable;
- but what are the stories which you mean?
-
- First of all, I said, there was that greatest of all lies, in high places,
- which the poet told about Uranus, and which was a bad lie too,--
- I mean what Hesiod says that Uranus did, and how Cronus retaliated
- on him. The doings of Cronus, and the sufferings which in turn
- his son inflicted upon him, even if they were true, ought certainly
- not to be lightly told to young and thoughtless persons; if possible,
- they had better be buried in silence. But if there is an absolute
- necessity for their mention, a chosen few might hear them in a mystery,
- and they should sacrifice not a common [Eleusinian] pig, but some
- huge and unprocurable victim; and then the number of the hearers
- will be very few indeed.
-
- Why, yes, said he, those stories are extremely objectionable.
-
- Yes, Adeimantus, they are stories not to be repeated in our State;
- the young man should not be told that in committing the worst
- of crimes he is far from doing anything outrageous; and that even
- if he chastises his father when does wrong, in whatever manner,
- he will only be following the example of the first and greatest among
- the gods.
-
- I entirely agree with you, he said; in my opinion those stories
- are quite unfit to be repeated.
-
- Neither, if we mean our future guardians to regard the habit
- of quarrelling among themselves as of all things the basest,
- should any word be said to them of the wars in heaven,
- and of the plots and fightings of the gods against one another,
- for they are not true. No, we shall never mention the battles
- of the giants, or let them be embroidered on garments; and we shall
- be silent about the innumerable other quarrels of gods and heroes
- with their friends and relatives. If they would only believe us
- we would tell them that quarrelling is unholy, and that never
- up to this time has there been any, quarrel between citizens;
- this is what old men and old women should begin by telling children;
- and when they grow up, the poets also should be told to compose
- for them in a similar spirit. But the narrative of Hephaestus binding
- Here his mother, or how on another occasion Zeus sent him flying
- for taking her part when she was being beaten, and all the battles
- of the gods in Homer--these tales must not be admitted into our State,
- whether they are supposed to have an allegorical meaning or not.
- For a young person cannot judge what is allegorical and what is literal;
- anything that he receives into his mind at that age is likely to
- become indelible and unalterable; and therefore it is most important
- that the tales which the young first hear should be models of
- virtuous thoughts.
-
- There you are right, he replied; but if any one asks where are
- such models to be found and of what tales are you speaking--
- how shall we answer him?
-
- I said to him, You and I, Adeimantus, at this moment are not poets,
- but founders of a State: now the founders of a State ought
- to know the general forms in which poets should cast their tales,
- and the limits which must be observed by them, but to make the tales
- is not their business.
-
- Very true, he said; but what are these forms of theology which you mean?
-
- Something of this kind, I replied:--God is always to be represented
- as he truly is, whatever be the sort of poetry, epic, lyric or tragic,
- in which the representation is given.
-
- Right.
-
- And is he not truly good? and must he not be represented as such?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And no good thing is hurtful?
-
- No, indeed.
-
- And that which is not hurtful hurts not?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- And that which hurts not does no evil?
-
- No.
-
- And can that which does no evil be a cause of evil?
-
- Impossible.
-
- And the good is advantageous?
-
- Yes.
-
- And therefore the cause of well-being?
-
- Yes.
-
- It follows therefore that the good is not the cause of all things,
- but of the good only?
-
- Assuredly.
-
- Then God, if he be good, is not the author of all things,
- as the many assert, but he is the cause of a few things only,
- and not of most things that occur to men. For few are the goods
- of human life, and many are the evils, and the good is to be attributed
- to God alone; of the evils the causes are to be sought elsewhere,
- and not in him.
-
- That appears to me to be most true, he said.
-
- Then we must not listen to Homer or to any other poet who is guilty
- of the folly of saying that two casks
-
- Lie at the threshold of Zeus, full of lots, one of good,
- the other of evil lots,
-
- and that he to whom Zeus gives a mixture of the two
-
- Sometimes meets with evil fortune, at other times with good;
-
- but that he to whom is given the cup of unmingled ill,
-
- Him wild hunger drives o'er the beauteous earth.
-
- And again
-
- Zeus, who is the dispenser of good and evil to us.
-
- And if any one asserts that the violation of oaths and treaties,
- which was really the work of Pandarus, was brought about by Athene
- and Zeus, or that the strife and contention of the gods was
- instigated by Themis and Zeus, he shall not have our approval;
- neither will we allow our young men to hear the words of Aeschylus,
- that
-
- God plants guilt among men when he desires utterly to
- destroy a house.
-
- And if a poet writes of the sufferings of Niobe--the subject
- of the tragedy in which these iambic verses occur--or of the house
- of Pelops, or of the Trojan war or on any similar theme, either we
- must not permit him to say that these are the works of God,
- or if they are of God, he must devise some explanation of them such
- as we are seeking; he must say that God did what was just and right,
- and they were the better for being punished; but that those who are
- punished are miserable, and that God is the author of their misery--
- the poet is not to be permitted to say; though he may say that
- the wicked are miserable because they require to be punished,
- and are benefited by receiving punishment from God; but that God being
- good is the author of evil to any one is to be strenuously denied,
- and not to be said or sung or heard in verse or prose by any
- one whether old or young in any well-ordered commonwealth.
- Such a fiction is suicidal, ruinous, impious.
-
- I agree with you, he replied, and am ready to give my assent
- to the law.
-
- Let this then be one of our rules and principles concerning the gods,
- to which our poets and reciters will be expected to conform--
- that God is not the author of all things, but of good only.
-
- That will do, he said.
-
- And what do you think of a second principle? Shall I ask you whether God
- is a magician, and of a nature to appear insidiously now in one shape,
- and now in another--sometimes himself changing and passing into many forms,
- sometimes deceiving us with the semblance of such transformations;
- or is he one and the same immutably fixed in his own proper image?
-
- I cannot answer you, he said, without more thought.
-
- Well, I said; but if we suppose a change in anything, that change
- must be effected either by the thing itself, or by some other thing?
-
- Most certainly.
-
- And things which are at their best are also least liable to be
- altered or discomposed; for example, when healthiest and strongest,
- the human frame is least liable to be affected by meats and drinks,
- and the plant which is in the fullest vigour also suffers least from
- winds or the heat of the sun or any similar causes.
-
- Of course.
-
- And will not the bravest and wisest soul be least confused
- or deranged by any external influence?
-
- True.
-
- And the same principle, as I should suppose, applies to all
- composite things--furniture, houses, garments; when good and well made,
- they are least altered by time and circumstances.
-
- Very true.
-
- Then everything which is good, whether made by art or nature, or both,
- is least liable to suffer change from without?
-
- True.
-
- But surely God and the things of God are in every way perfect?
-
- Of course they are.
-
- Then he can hardly be compelled by external influence to take
- many shapes?
-
- He cannot.
-
- But may he not change and transform himself?
-
- Clearly, he said, that must be the case if he is changed at all.
-
- And will he then change himself for the better and fairer,
- or for the worse and more unsightly?
-
- If he change at all he can only change for the worse, for we cannot
- suppose him to be deficient either in virtue or beauty.
-
- Very true, Adeimantus; but then, would any one, whether God or man,
- desire to make himself worse?
-
- Impossible.
-
- Then it is impossible that God should ever be willing to change;
- being, as is supposed, the fairest and best that is conceivable,
- every god remains absolutely and for ever in his own form.
-
- That necessarily follows, he said, in my judgment.
-
- Then, I said, my dear friend, let none of the poets tell us that
-
- The gods, taking the disguise of strangers from other lands,
- walk up and down cities in all sorts of forms;
-
- and let no one slander Proteus and Thetis, neither let any one,
- either in tragedy or in any other kind of poetry, introduce Here
- disguised in the likeness of a priestess asking an alms
-
- For the life-giving daughters of Inachus the river of Argos;
-
- --let us have no more lies of that sort. Neither must we have mothers
- under the influence of the poets scaring their children with a bad
- version of these myths--telling how certain gods, as they say, `Go about
- by night in the likeness of so many strangers and in divers forms';
- but let them take heed lest they make cowards of their children,
- and at the same time speak blasphemy against the gods.
-
- Heaven forbid, he said.
-
- But although the gods are themselves unchangeable, still by witchcraft
- and deception they may make us think that they appear in various forms?
-
- Perhaps, he replied.
-
- Well, but can you imagine that God will be willing to lie,
- whether in word or deed, or to put forth a phantom of himself?
-
- I cannot say, he replied.
-
- Do you not know, I said, that the true lie, if such an expression
- may be allowed, is hated of gods and men?
-
- What do you mean? he said.
-
- I mean that no one is willingly deceived in that which is the truest
- and highest part of himself, or about the truest and highest matters;
- there, above all, he is most afraid of a lie having possession of him.
-
- Still, he said, I do not comprehend you.
-
- The reason is, I replied, that you attribute some profound meaning
- to my words; but I am only saying that deception, or being deceived
- or uninformed about the highest realities in the highest part
- of themselves, which is the soul, and in that part of them to have
- and to hold the lie, is what mankind least like;--that, I say,
- is what they utterly detest.
-
- There is nothing more hateful to them.
-
- And, as I was just now remarking, this ignorance in the soul of him
- who is deceived may be called the true lie; for the lie in words
- is only a kind of imitation and shadowy image of a previous affection
- of the soul, not pure unadulterated falsehood. Am I not right?
-
- Perfectly right.
-
- The true lie is hated not only by the gods, but also by men?
-
- Yes.
-
- Whereas the lie in words is in certain cases useful and not hateful;
- in dealing with enemies--that would be an instance; or again,
- when those whom we call our friends in a fit of madness or illusion
- are going to do some harm, then it is useful and is a sort of medicine
- or preventive; also in the tales of mythology, of which we were just
- now speaking--because we do not know the truth about ancient times,
- we make falsehood as much like truth as we can, and so turn it
- to account.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- But can any of these reasons apply to God? Can we suppose that he
- is ignorant of antiquity, and therefore has recourse to invention?
-
- That would be ridiculous, he said.
-
- Then the lying poet has no place in our idea of God?
-
- I should say not.
-
- Or perhaps he may tell a lie because he is afraid of enemies?
-
- That is inconceivable.
-
- But he may have friends who are senseless or mad?
-
- But no mad or senseless person can be a friend of God.
-
- Then no motive can be imagined why God should lie?
-
- None whatever.
-
- Then the superhuman and divine is absolutely incapable of falsehood?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then is God perfectly simple and true both in word and deed;
- he changes not; he deceives not, either by sign or word, by dream
- or waking vision.
-
- Your thoughts, he said, are the reflection of my own.
-
- You agree with me then, I said, that this is the second type
- or form in which we should write and speak about divine things.
- The gods are not magicians who transform themselves, neither do they
- deceive mankind in any way.
-
- I grant that.
-
- Then, although we are admirers of Homer, we do not admire the lying
- dream which Zeus sends to Agamemnon; neither will we praise the verses
- of Aeschylus in which Thetis says that Apollo at her nuptials
-
- Was celebrating in song her fair progeny whose days were
- to he long, and to know no sickness. And when he had
- spoken of my lot as in all things blessed of heaven he
- raised a note of triumph and cheered my soul. And I
- thought that the word of Phoebus being divine and full
- of prophecy, would not fail. And now he himself who
- uttered the strain, he who was present at the banquet,
- and who said this--he it is who has slain my son.
-
- These are the kind of sentiments about the gods which will arouse
- our anger; and he who utters them shall be refused a chorus;
- neither shall we allow teachers to make use of them in the instruction
- of the young, meaning, as we do, that our guardians, as far as men
- can be, should be true worshippers of the gods and like them.
-
- I entirely agree, be said, in these principles, and promise to make
- them my laws.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK III
-
-
- SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
-
- SUCH then, I said, are our principles of theology--some tales are
- to be told, and others are not to be told to our disciples from their
- youth upwards, if we mean them to honour the gods and their parents,
- and to value friendship with one another.
-
- Yes; and I think that our principles are right, he said.
-
- But if they are to be courageous, must they not learn other lessons
- besides these, and lessons of such a kind as will take away the fear
- of death? Can any man be courageous who has the fear of death
- in him?
-
- Certainly not, he said.
-
- And can he be fearless of death, or will he choose death in battle
- rather than defeat and slavery, who believes the world below
- to be real and terrible?
-
- Impossible.
-
- Then we must assume a control over the narrators of this class
- of tales as well as over the others, and beg them not simply
- to but rather to commend the world below, intimating to them that
- their descriptions are untrue, and will do harm to our future warriors.
-
- That will be our duty, he said.
-
- Then, I said, we shall have to obliterate many obnoxious passages,
- beginning with the verses,
-
- I would rather he a serf on the land of a poor and portionless man
- than rule over all the dead who have come to nought.
-
- We must also expunge the verse, which tells us how Pluto feared,
-
- Lest the mansions grim and squalid which the gods abhor should he
- seen both of mortals and immortals.
-
- And again:
-
- O heavens! verily in the house of Hades there is soul and ghostly
- form but no mind at all!
-
- Again of Tiresias:--
-
- [To him even after death did Persephone grant mind,] that he alone
- should be wise; but the other souls are flitting shades.
-
- Again:--
-
- The soul flying from the limbs had gone to Hades, lamentng her fate,
- leaving manhood and youth.
-
- Again:--
-
- And the soul, with shrilling cry, passed like smoke beneath the
- earth.
-
- And,--
-
- As bats in hollow of mystic cavern, whenever any of the has
- dropped out of the string and falls from the rock, fly shrilling and
- cling to one another, so did they with shrilling cry hold together
- as they moved.
-
- And we must beg Homer and the other poets not to be angry if we strike
- out these and similar passages, not because they are unpoetical,
- or unattractive to the popular ear, but because the greater the poetical
- charm of them, the less are they meet for the ears of boys and men
- who are meant to be free, and who should fear slavery more than death.
-
- Undoubtedly.
-
- Also we shall have to reject all the terrible and appalling names
- describe the world below--Cocytus and Styx, ghosts under the earth,
- and sapless shades, and any similar words of which the very mention
- causes a shudder to pass through the inmost soul of him who hears them.
- I do not say that these horrible stories may not have a use of some kind;
- but there is a danger that the nerves of our guardians may be rendered
- too excitable and effeminate by them.
-
- There is a real danger, he said.
-
- Then we must have no more of them.
-
- True.
-
- Another and a nobler strain must be composed and sung by us.
-
- Clearly.
-
- And shall we proceed to get rid of the weepings and wailings
- of famous men?
-
- They will go with the rest.
-
- But shall we be right in getting rid of them? Reflect: our principle
- is that the good man will not consider death terrible to any
- other good man who is his comrade.
-
- Yes; that is our principle.
-
- And therefore he will not sorrow for his departed friend as though
- he had suffered anything terrible?
-
- He will not.
-
- Such an one, as we further maintain, is sufficient for himself
- and his own happiness, and therefore is least in need of other men.
-
- True, he said.
-
- And for this reason the loss of a son or brother, or the deprivation
- of fortune, is to him of all men least terrible.
-
- Assuredly.
-
- And therefore he will be least likely to lament, and will bear with
- the greatest equanimity any misfortune of this sort which may befall him.
-
- Yes, he will feel such a misfortune far less than another.
-
- Then we shall be right in getting rid of the lamentations of famous men,
- and making them over to women (and not even to women who are good
- for anything), or to men of a baser sort, that those who are being
- educated by us to be the defenders of their country may scorn
- to do the like.
-
- That will be very right.
-
- Then we will once more entreat Homer and the other poets not to
- depict Achilles, who is the son of a goddess, first lying on his side,
- then on his back, and then on his face; then starting up and sailing
- in a frenzy along the shores of the barren sea; now taking the sooty
- ashes in both his hands and pouring them over his head, or weeping
- and wailing in the various modes which Homer has delineated.
- Nor should he describe Priam the kinsman of the gods as praying
- and beseeching,
-
- Rolling in the dirt, calling each man loudly by his name.
-
- Still more earnestly will we beg of him at all events not to introduce
- the gods lamenting and saying,
-
- Alas! my misery! Alas! that I bore the harvest to my sorrow.
-
- But if he must introduce the gods, at any rate let him not dare
- so completely to misrepresent the greatest of the gods, as to make
- him say--
-
- O heavens! with my eyes verily I behold a dear friend of mine chased
- round and round the city, and my heart is sorrowful.
-
- Or again:--
-
- Woe is me that I am fated to have Sarpedon, dearest of men to me,
- subdued at the hands of Patroclus the son of Menoetius.
-
- For if, my sweet Adeimantus, our youth seriously listen to such unworthy
- representations of the gods, instead of laughing at them as they ought,
- hardly will any of them deem that he himself, being but a man,
- can be dishonoured by similar actions; neither will he rebuke any
- inclination which may arise in his mind to say and do the like.
- And instead of having any shame or self-control, he will be always
- whining and lamenting on slight occasions.
-
- Yes, he said, that is most true.
-
- Yes, I replied; but that surely is what ought not to be,
- as the argument has just proved to us; and by that proof
- we must abide until it is disproved by a better.
-
- It ought not to be.
-
- Neither ought our guardians to be given to laughter. For a fit
- of laughter which has been indulged to excess almost always produces
- a violent reaction.
-
- So I believe.
-
- Then persons of worth, even if only mortal men, must not be represented
- as overcome by laughter, and still less must such a representation
- of the gods be allowed.
-
- Still less of the gods, as you say, he replied.
-
- Then we shall not suffer such an expression to be used about the gods
- as that of Homer when he describes how
-
- Inextinguishable laughter arose among the blessed gods, when they
- saw Hephaestus bustling about the mansion.
-
- On your views, we must not admit them.
-
- On my views, if you like to father them on me; that we must
- not admit them is certain.
-
- Again, truth should be highly valued; if, as we were saying,
- a lie is useless to the gods, and useful only as a medicine to men,
- then the use of such medicines should be restricted to physicians;
- private individuals have no business with them.
-
- Clearly not, he said.
-
- Then if any one at all is to have the privilege of lying,
- the rulers of the State should be the persons; and they,
- in their dealings either with enemies or with their own citizens,
- may be allowed to lie for the public good. But nobody else
- should meddle with anything of the kind; and although the rulers
- have this privilege, for a private man to lie to them in return is
- to be deemed a more heinous fault than for the patient or the pupil
- of a gymnasium not to speak the truth about his own bodily illnesses
- to the physician or to the trainer, or for a sailor not to tell
- the captain what is happening about the ship and the rest of the crew,
- and how things are going with himself or his fellow sailors.
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- If, then, the ruler catches anybody beside himself lying in the State,
-
- Any of the craftsmen, whether he priest or physician or carpenter.
-
- he will punish him for introducing a practice which is equally
- subversive and destructive of ship or State.
-
- Most certainly, he said, if our idea of the State is ever carried out.
-
- In the next place our youth must be temperate?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Are not the chief elements of temperance, speaking generally,
- obedience to commanders and self-control in sensual pleasures?
-
- True.
-
- Then we shall approve such language as that of Diomede in Homer,
-
- Friend, sit still and obey my word,
-
- and the verses which follow,
-
- The Greeks marched breathing prowess,
- ...in silent awe of their leaders,
-
- and other sentiments of the same kind.
-
- We shall.
-
- What of this line,
-
- O heavy with wine, who hast the eyes of a dog and the heart of a
- stag,
-
- and of the words which follow? Would you say that these, or any
- similar impertinences which private individuals are supposed to address
- to their rulers, whether in verse or prose, are well or ill spoken?
-
- They are ill spoken.
-
- They may very possibly afford some amusement, but they do not
- conduce to temperance. And therefore they are likely to do harm
- to our young men--you would agree with me there?
-
- Yes.
-
- And then, again, to make the wisest of men say that nothing in his
- opinion is more glorious than
-
- When the tables are full of bread and meat, and the cup-bearer
- carries round wine which he draws from the bowl and pours into the
- cups,
-
- is it fit or conducive to temperance for a young man to hear such words?
- Or the verse
-
- The saddest of fates is to die and meet destiny from hunger?
-
- What would you say again to the tale of Zeus, who, while other
- gods and men were asleep and he the only person awake,
- lay devising plans, but forgot them all in a moment through his lust,
- and was so completely overcome at the sight of Here that he would
- not even go into the hut, but wanted to lie with her on the ground,
- declaring that he had never been in such a state of rapture before,
- even when they first met one another
-
- Without the knowledge of their parents;
-
- or that other tale of how Hephaestus, because of similar goings on,
- cast a chain around Ares and Aphrodite?
-
- Indeed, he said, I am strongly of opinion that they ought not
- to hear that sort of thing.
-
- But any deeds of endurance which are done or told by famous men,
- these they ought to see and hear; as, for example, what is said
- in the verses,
-
- He smote his breast, and thus reproached his heart,
- Endure, my heart; far worse hast thou endured!
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- In the next place, we must not let them be receivers of gifts
- or lovers of money.
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Neither must we sing to them of
-
- Gifts persuading gods, and persuading reverend kings.
-
- Neither is Phoenix, the tutor of Achilles, to be approved
- or deemed to have given his pupil good counsel when he told him
- that he should take the gifts of the Greeks and assist them;
- but that without a gift he should not lay aside his anger.
- Neither will we believe or acknowledge Achilles himself to have
- been such a lover of money that he took Agamemnon's or that when
- he had received payment he restored the dead body of Hector,
- but that without payment he was unwilling to do so.
-
- Undoubtedly, he said, these are not sentiments which can be approved.
-
- Loving Homer as I do, I hardly like to say that in attributing
- these feelings to Achilles, or in believing that they are truly
- to him, he is guilty of downright impiety. As little can I believe
- the narrative of his insolence to Apollo, where he says,
-
- Thou hast wronged me, O far-darter, most abominable of deities.
- Verily I would he even with thee, if I had only the power,
-
- or his insubordination to the river-god, on whose divinity he is ready
- to lay hands; or his offering to the dead Patroclus of his own hair,
- which had been previously dedicated to the other river-god Spercheius,
- and that he actually performed this vow; or that he dragged Hector
- round the tomb of Patroclus, and slaughtered the captives at the pyre;
- of all this I cannot believe that he was guilty, any more than I can
- allow our citizens to believe that he, the wise Cheiron's pupil,
- the son of a goddess and of Peleus who was the gentlest of men
- and third in descent from Zeus, was so disordered in his wits as to
- be at one time the slave of two seemingly inconsistent passions,
- meanness, not untainted by avarice, combined with overweening
- contempt of gods and men.
-
- You are quite right, he replied.
-
- And let us equally refuse to believe, or allow to be repeated,
- the tale of Theseus son of Poseidon, or of Peirithous son
- of Zeus, going forth as they did to perpetrate a horrid rape;
- or of any other hero or son of a god daring to do such impious
- and dreadful things as they falsely ascribe to them in our day:
- and let us further compel the poets to declare either that these acts
- were not done by them, or that they were not the sons of gods;--
- both in the same breath they shall not be permitted to affirm.
- We will not have them trying to persuade our youth that the gods
- are the authors of evil, and that heroes are no better than
- men-sentiments which, as we were saying, are neither pious
- nor true, for we have already proved that evil cannot come from
- the gods.
-
- Assuredly not.
-
- And further they are likely to have a bad effect on those who hear them;
- for everybody will begin to excuse his own vices when he is convinced
- that similar wickednesses are always being perpetrated by--
-
- The kindred of the gods, the relatives of Zeus, whose ancestral
- altar, the attar of Zeus, is aloft in air on the peak of Ida,
-
- and who have
-
- the blood of deities yet flowing in their veins.
-
- And therefore let us put an end to such tales, lest they engender
- laxity of morals among the young.
-
- By all means, he replied.
-
- But now that we are determining what classes of subjects are or are
- not to be spoken of, let us see whether any have been omitted by us.
- The manner in which gods and demigods and heroes and the world below
- should be treated has been already laid down.
-
- Very true.
-
- And what shall we say about men? That is clearly the remaining
- portion of our subject.
-
- Clearly so.
-
- But we are not in a condition to answer this question at present,
- my friend.
-
- Why not?
-
- Because, if I am not mistaken, we shall have to say that about men
- poets and story-tellers are guilty of making the gravest misstatements
- when they tell us that wicked men are often happy, and the good miserable;
- and that injustice is profitable when undetected, but that justice
- is a man's own loss and another's gain--these things we shall
- forbid them to utter, and command them to sing and say the opposite.
-
- To be sure we shall, he replied.
-
- But if you admit that I am right in this, then I shall maintain that you
- have implied the principle for which we have been all along contending.
-
- I grant the truth of your inference.
-
- That such things are or are not to be said about men is a question
- which we cannot determine until we have discovered what justice is,
- and how naturally advantageous to the possessor, whether he seems
- to be just or not.
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- Enough of the subjects of poetry: let us now speak of the style;
- and when this has been considered, both matter and manner will have
- been completely treated.
-
- I do not understand what you mean, said Adeimantus.
-
- Then I must make you understand; and perhaps I may be more
- intelligible if I put the matter in this way. You are aware,
- I suppose, that all mythology and poetry is a narration of events,
- either past, present, or to come?
-
- Certainly, he replied.
-
- And narration may be either simple narration, or imitation,
- or a union of the two?
-
- That again, he said, I do not quite understand.
-
- I fear that I must be a ridiculous teacher when I have so much difficulty
- in making myself apprehended. Like a bad speaker, therefore, I will
- not take the whole of the subject, but will break a piece off in
- illustration of my meaning. You know the first lines of the Iliad,
- in which the poet says that Chryses prayed Agamemnon to release
- his daughter, and that Agamemnon flew into a passion with him;
- whereupon Chryses, failing of his object, invoked the anger
- of the God against the Achaeans. Now as far as these lines,
-
- And he prayed all the Greeks, but especially the two sons of Atreus,
- the chiefs of the people,
-
- the poet is speaking in his own person; he never leads us to suppose
- that he is any one else. But in what follows he takes the person
- of Chryses, and then he does all that he can to make us believe
- that the speaker is not Homer, but the aged priest himself.
- And in this double form he has cast the entire narrative of the events
- which occurred at Troy and in Ithaca and throughout the Odyssey.
-
- Yes.
-
- And a narrative it remains both in the speeches which the poet
- recites from time to time and in the intermediate passages?
-
- Quite true.
-
- But when the poet speaks in the person of another, may we not
- say that he assimilates his style to that of the person who,
- as he informs you, is going to speak?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And this assimilation of himself to another, either by the use
- of voice or gesture, is the imitation of the person whose character
- he assumes?
-
- Of course.
-
- Then in this case the narrative of the poet may be said to proceed
- by way of imitation?
-
- Very true.
-
- Or, if the poet everywhere appears and never conceals himself,
- then again the imitation is dropped, and his poetry becomes
- simple narration. However, in order that I may make my meaning
- quite clear, and that you may no more say, I don't understand,'
- I will show how the change might be effected. If Homer had said,
- `The priest came, having his daughter's ransom in his hands,
- supplicating the Achaeans, and above all the kings;' and then if,
- instead of speaking in the person of Chryses, he had continued
- in his own person, the words would have been, not imitation,
- but simple narration. The passage would have run as follows
- (I am no poet, and therefore I drop the metre), `The priest came
- and prayed the gods on behalf of the Greeks that they might capture
- Troy and return safely home, but begged that they would give him back
- his daughter, and take the ransom which he brought, and respect the God.
- Thus he spoke, and the other Greeks revered the priest and assented.
- But Agamemnon was wroth, and bade him depart and not come again,
- lest the staff and chaplets of the God should be of no avail to him--
- the daughter of Chryses should not be released, he said--
- she should grow old with him in Argos. And then he told him to go
- away and not to provoke him, if he intended to get home unscathed.
- And the old man went away in fear and silence, and, when he
- had left the camp, he called upon Apollo by his many names,
- reminding him of everything which he had done pleasing to him,
- whether in building his temples, or in offering sacrifice, and praying
- that his good deeds might be returned to him, and that the Achaeans
- might expiate his tears by the arrows of the god,'--and so on.
- In this way the whole becomes simple narrative.
-
- I understand, he said.
-
- Or you may suppose the opposite case--that the intermediate passages
- are omitted, and the dialogue only left.
-
- That also, he said, I understand; you mean, for example, as in tragedy.
-
- You have conceived my meaning perfectly; and if I mistake not,
- what you failed to apprehend before is now made clear to you,
- that poetry and mythology are, in some cases, wholly imitative--
- instances of this are supplied by tragedy and comedy; there is
- likewise the opposite style, in which the my poet is the only speaker--
- of this the dithyramb affords the best example; and the combination
- of both is found in epic, and in several other styles of poetry. Do I
- take you with me?
-
- Yes, he said; I see now what you meant.
-
- I will ask you to remember also what I began by saying, that we
- had done with the subject and might proceed to the style.
-
- Yes, I remember.
-
- In saying this, I intended to imply that we must come to an
- understanding about the mimetic art,--whether the poets, in narrating
- their stories, are to be allowed by us to imitate, and if so,
- whether in whole or in part, and if the latter, in what parts;
- or should all imitation be prohibited?
-
- You mean, I suspect, to ask whether tragedy and comedy shall
- be admitted into our State?
-
- Yes, I said; but there may be more than this in question:
- I really do not know as yet, but whither the argument may blow,
- thither we go.
-
- And go we will, he said.
-
- Then, Adeimantus, let me ask you whether our guardians ought to be imitators;
- or rather, has not this question been decided by the rule already
- laid down that one man can only do one thing well, and not many;
- and that if he attempt many, he will altogether fall of gaining
- much reputation in any?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And this is equally true of imitation; no one man can imitate
- many things as well as he would imitate a single one?
-
- He cannot.
-
- Then the same person will hardly be able to play a serious part in life,
- and at the same time to be an imitator and imitate many other parts
- as well; for even when two species of imitation are nearly allied,
- the same persons cannot succeed in both, as, for example, the writers
- of tragedy and comedy--did you not just now call them imitations?
-
- Yes, I did; and you are right in thinking that the same persons
- cannot succeed in both.
-
- Any more than they can be rhapsodists and actors at once?
-
- True.
-
- Neither are comic and tragic actors the same; yet all these things
- are but imitations.
-
- They are so.
-
- And human nature, Adeimantus, appears to have been coined into yet
- smaller pieces, and to be as incapable of imitating many things well,
- as of performing well the actions of which the imitations are copies.
-
- Quite true, he replied.
-
- If then we adhere to our original notion and bear in mind that
- our guardians, setting aside every other business, are to dedicate
- themselves wholly to the maintenance of freedom in the State,
- making this their craft, and engaging in no work which does not bear
- on this end, they ought not to practise or imitate anything else;
- if they imitate at all, they should imitate from youth upward
- only those characters which are suitable to their profession--
- the courageous, temperate, holy, free, and the like; but they should not
- depict or be skilful at imitating any kind of illiberality or baseness,
- lest from imitation they should come to be what they imitate.
- Did you never observe how imitations, beginning in early youth
- and continuing far into life, at length grow into habits and become a
- second nature, affecting body, voice, and mind?
-
- Yes, certainly, he said.
-
- Then, I said, we will not allow those for whom we profess a care
- and of whom we say that they ought to be good men, to imitate
- a woman, whether young or old, quarrelling with her husband,
- or striving and vaunting against the gods in conceit of her happiness,
- or when she is in affliction, or sorrow, or weeping; and certainly
- not one who is in sickness, love, or labour.
-
- Very right, he said.
-
- Neither must they represent slaves, male or female,
- performing the offices of slaves?
-
- They must not.
-
- And surely not bad men, whether cowards or any others, who do
- the reverse of what we have just been prescribing, who scold or mock
- or revile one another in drink or out of in drink or, or who in any
- other manner sin against themselves and their neighbours in word
- or deed, as the manner of such is. Neither should they be trained
- to imitate the action or speech of men or women who are mad or bad;
- for madness, like vice, is to be known but not to be practised
- or imitated.
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- Neither may they imitate smiths or other artificers, or oarsmen,
- or boatswains, or the like?
-
- How can they, he said, when they are not allowed to apply their
- minds to the callings of any of these?
-
- Nor may they imitate the neighing of horses, the bellowing of bulls,
- the murmur of rivers and roll of the ocean, thunder, and all that sort
- of thing?
-
- Nay, he said, if madness be forbidden, neither may they copy
- the behaviour of madmen.
-
- You mean, I said, if I understand you aright, that there is one
- sort of narrative style which may be employed by a truly good man
- when he has anything to say, and that another sort will be used
- by a man of an opposite character and education.
-
- And which are these two sorts? he asked.
-
- Suppose, I answered, that a just and good man in the course of a
- narration comes on some saying or action of another good man,--
- I should imagine that he will like to personate him, and will not be
- ashamed of this sort of imitation: he will be most ready to play
- the part of the good man when he is acting firmly and wisely;
- in a less degree when he is overtaken by illness or love or drink,
- or has met with any other disaster. But when he comes to a character
- which is unworthy of him, he will not make a study of that;
- he will disdain such a person, and will assume his likeness,
- if at all, for a moment only when he is performing some good action;
- at other times he will be ashamed to play a part which he has
- never practised, nor will he like to fashion and frame himself
- after the baser models; he feels the employment of such an art,
- unless in jest, to be beneath him, and his mind revolts
- at it.
-
- So I should expect, he replied.
-
- Then he will adopt a mode of narration such as we have illustrated
- out of Homer, that is to say, his style will be both imitative
- and narrative; but there will be very little of the former,
- and a great deal of the latter. Do you agree?
-
- Certainly, he said; that is the model which such a speaker must
- necessarily take.
-
- But there is another sort of character who will narrate anything,
- and, the worse lie is, the more unscrupulous he will be; nothing will
- be too bad for him: and he will be ready to imitate anything,
- not as a joke, but in right good earnest, and before a large company.
- As I was just now saying, he will attempt to represent the roll
- of thunder, the noise of wind and hall, or the creaking of wheels,
- and pulleys, and the various sounds of flutes; pipes, trumpets, and all
- sorts of instruments: he will bark like a dog, bleat like a sheep,
- or crow like a cock; his entire art will consist in imitation of voice
- and gesture, and there will be very little narration.
-
- That, he said, will be his mode of speaking.
-
- These, then, are the two kinds of style?
-
- Yes.
-
- And you would agree with me in saying that one of them is simple
- and has but slight changes; and if the harmony and rhythm are
- also chosen for their simplicity, the result is that the speaker,
- if hc speaks correctly, is always pretty much the same in style,
- and he will keep within the limits of a single harmony (for the changes
- are not great), and in like manner he will make use of nearly
- the same rhythm?
-
- That is quite true, he said.
-
- Whereas the other requires all sorts of harmonies and all sorts
- of rhythms, if the music and the style are to correspond,
- because the style has all sorts of changes.
-
- That is also perfectly true, he replied.
-
- And do not the two styles, or the mixture of the two,
- comprehend all poetry, and every form of expression in words?
- No one can say anything except in one or other of them or in both together.
-
- They include all, he said.
-
- And shall we receive into our State all the three styles, or one
- only of the two unmixed styles? or would you include the mixed?
-
- I should prefer only to admit the pure imitator of virtue.
-
- Yes, I said, Adeimantus, but the mixed style is also very charming:
- and indeed the pantomimic, which is the opposite of the one chosen
- by you, is the most popular style with children and their attendants,
- and with the world in general.
-
- I do not deny it.
-
- But I suppose you would argue that such a style is unsuitable
- to our State, in which human nature is not twofold or manifold,
- for one man plays one part only?
-
- Yes; quite unsuitable.
-
- And this is the reason why in our State, and in our State only,
- we shall find a shoemaker to be a shoemaker and not a pilot also,
- and a husbandman to be a husbandman and not a dicast also, and a soldier
- a soldier and not a trader also, and the same throughout?
-
- True, he said.
-
- And therefore when any one of these pantomimic gentlemen,
- who are so clever that they can imitate anything, comes to us,
- and makes a proposal to exhibit himself and his poetry, we will
- fall down and worship him as a sweet and holy and wonderful being;
- but we must also inform him that in our State such as he
- are not permitted to exist; the law will not allow them.
- And so when we have anointed him with myrrh, and set a garland
- of wool upon his head, we shall send him away to another city.
- For we mean to employ for our souls' health the rougher and severer
- poet or story-teller, who will imitate the style of the virtuous only,
- and will follow those models which we prescribed at first when we
- began the education of our soldiers.
-
- We certainly will, he said, if we have the power.
-
- Then now, my friend, I said, that part of music or literary education
- which relates to the story or myth may be considered to be finished;
- for the matter and manner have both been discussed.
-
- I think so too, he said.
-
- Next in order will follow melody and song.
-
- That is obvious.
-
- Every one can see already what we ought to say about them, if we
- are to be consistent with ourselves.
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- I fear, said Glaucon, laughing, that the words `every one'
- hardly includes me, for I cannot at the moment say what they should be;
- though I may guess.
-
- At any rate you can tell that a song or ode has three parts--
- the words, the melody, and the rhythm; that degree of knowledge I
- may presuppose?
-
- Yes, he said; so much as that you may.
-
- And as for the words, there surely be no difference words between
- words which are and which are not set to music; both will conform
- to the same laws, and these have been already determined by us?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the melody and rhythm will depend upon the words?
-
- Certainly.
-
- We were saying, when we spoke of the subject-matter, that we
- had no need of lamentations and strains of sorrow?
-
- True.
-
- And which are the harmonies expressive of sorrow? You are musical,
- and can tell me.
-
- The harmonies which you mean are the mixed or tenor Lydian,
- and the full-toned or bass Lydian, and such like.
-
- These then, I said, must be banished; even to women who have a character
- to maintain they are of no use, and much less to men. Certainly.
-
- In the next place, drunkenness and softness and indolence are
- utterly unbecoming the character of our guardians.
-
- Utterly unbecoming.
-
- And which are the soft or drinking harmonies?
-
- The Ionian, he replied, and the Lydian; they are termed `relaxed.'
-
- Well, and are these of any military use?
-
- Quite the reverse, he replied; and if so the Dorian and the Phrygian
- are the only ones which you have left.
-
- I answered: Of the harmonies I know nothing, but I want to have
- one warlike, to sound the note or accent which a brave man utters
- in the hour of danger and stern resolve, or when his cause is failing,
- and he is going to wounds or death or is overtaken by some other evil,
- and at every such crisis meets the blows of fortune with firm step
- and a determination to endure; and another to be used by him in times
- of peace and freedom of action, when there is no pressure of necessity,
- and he is seeking to persuade God by prayer, or man by instruction
- and admonition, or on the other hand, when he is expressing his
- willingness to yield to persuasion or entreaty or admonition,
- and which represents him when by prudent conduct he has attained
- his end, not carried away by his success, but acting moderately
- and wisely under the circumstances, and acquiescing in the event.
- These two harmonies I ask you to leave; the strain of necessity and
- the strain of freedom, the strain of the unfortunate and the strain
- of the fortunate, the strain of courage, and the strain of temperance;
- these, I say, leave.
-
- And these, he replied, are the Dorian and Phrygian harmonies
- of which I was just now speaking.
-
- Then, I said, if these and these only are to be used in our songs
- and melodies, we shall not want multiplicity of notes or a panharmonic scale?
-
- I suppose not.
-
- Then we shall not maintain the artificers of lyres with three corners
- and complex scales, or the makers of any other many-stringed
- curiously-harmonised instruments?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- But what do you say to flute-makers and flute-players? Would you admit
- them into our State when you reflect that in this composite use of harmony
- the flute is worse than all the stringed instruments put together;
- even the panharmonic music is only an imitation of the flute?
-
- Clearly not.
-
- There remain then only the lyre and the harp for use in the city,
- and the shepherds may have a pipe in the country.
-
- That is surely the conclusion to be drawn from the argument.
-
- The preferring of Apollo and his instruments to Marsyas and his
- instruments is not at all strange, I said.
-
- Not at all, he replied.
-
- And so, by the dog of Egypt, we have been unconsciously purging
- the State, which not long ago we termed luxurious.
-
- And we have done wisely, he replied.
-
- Then let us now finish the purgation, I said. Next in order
- to harmonies, rhythms will naturally follow, and they should be
- subject to the same rules, for we ought not to seek out complex
- systems of metre, or metres of every kind, but rather to discover
- what rhythms are the expressions of a courageous and harmonious life;
- and when we have found them, we shall adapt the foot and the melody
- to words having a like spirit, not the words to the foot and melody.
- To say what these rhythms are will be your duty--you must teach me them,
- as you have already taught me the harmonies.
-
- But, indeed, he replied, I cannot tell you. I only know that there
- are some three principles of rhythm out of which metrical systems
- are framed, just as in sounds there are four notes out of which all
- the harmonies are composed; that is an observation which I have made.
- But of what sort of lives they are severally the imitations I am
- unable to say.
-
- Then, I said, we must take Damon into our counsels; and he will tell
- us what rhythms are expressive of meanness, or insolence, or fury,
- or other unworthiness, and what are to be reserved for the expression
- of opposite feelings. And I think that I have an indistinct recollection
- of his mentioning a complex Cretic rhythm; also a dactylic or heroic,
- and he arranged them in some manner which I do not quite understand,
- making the rhythms equal in the rise and fall of the foot,
- long and short alternating; and, unless I am mistaken, he spoke
- of an iambic as well as of a trochaic rhythm, and assigned to them
- short and long quantities. Also in some cases he appeared to praise
- or censure the movement of the foot quite as much as the rhythm;
- or perhaps a combination of the two; for I am not certain what he meant.
- These matters, however, as I was saying, had better be referred
- to Damon himself, for the analysis of the subject would be difficult,
- you know.
-
- Rather so, I should say.
-
- But there is no difficulty in seeing that grace or the absence
- of grace is an effect of good or bad rhythm.
-
- None at all.
-
- And also that good and bad rhythm naturally assimilate to a good and
- bad style; and that harmony and discord in like manner follow style;
- for our principle is that rhythm and harmony are regulated by the words,
- and not the words by them.
-
- Just so, he said, they should follow the words.
-
- And will not the words and the character of the style depend
- on the temper of the soul?
-
- Yes.
-
- And everything else on the style?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then beauty of style and harmony and grace and good rhythm depend
- on simplicity,--I mean the true simplicity of a rightly and nobly
- ordered mind and character, not that other simplicity which is
- only an euphemism for folly?
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- And if our youth are to do their work in life, must they not make
- these graces and harmonies their perpetual aim?
-
- They must.
-
- And surely the art of the painter and every other creative and
- constructive art are full of them,--weaving, embroidery, architecture,
- and every kind of manufacture; also nature, animal and vegetable,--
- in all of them there is grace or the absence of grace.
- And ugliness and discord and inharmonious motion are nearly allied
- to ill words and ill nature, as grace and harmony are the twin
- sisters of goodness and virtue and bear their likeness.
-
- That is quite true, he said.
-
- But shall our superintendence go no further, and are the poets only
- to be required by us to express the image of the good in their works,
- on pain, if they do anything else, of expulsion from our State?
- Or is the same control to be extended to other artists, and are
- they also to be prohibited from exhibiting the opposite forms
- of vice and intemperance and meanness and indecency in sculpture
- and building and the other creative arts; and is he who cannot
- conform to this rule of ours to be prevented from practising his art
- in our State, lest the taste of our citizens be corrupted by him?
- We would not have our guardians grow up amid images of moral deformity,
- as in some noxious pasture, and there browse and feed upon many
- a baneful herb and flower day by day, little by little, until they
- silently gather a festering mass of corruption in their own soul.
- Let our artists rather be those who are gifted to discern the true
- nature of the beautiful and graceful; then will our youth dwell
- in a land of health, amid fair sights and sounds, and receive the good
- in everything; and beauty, the effluence of fair works, shall flow
- into the eye and ear, like a health-giving breeze from a purer region,
- and insensibly draw the soul from earliest years into likeness and
- sympathy with the beauty of reason.
-
- There can be no nobler training than that, he replied.
-
- And therefore, I said, Glaucon, musical training is a more potent
- instrument than any other, because rhythm and harmony find their way
- into the inward places of the soul, on which they mightily fasten,
- imparting grace, and making the soul of him who is rightly
- educated graceful, or of him who is ill-educated ungraceful;
- and also because he who has received this true education of the inner
- being will most shrewdly perceive omissions or faults in art
- and nature, and with a true taste, while he praises and rejoices
- over and receives into his soul the good, and becomes noble and good,
- he will justly blame and hate the bad, now in the days of his youth,
- even before he is able to know the reason why; and when reason comes
- he will recognise and salute the friend with whom his education has
- made him long familiar.
-
- Yes, he said, I quite agree with you in thinking that our youth
- should be trained in music and on the grounds which you mention.
-
- Just as in learning to read, I said, we were satisfied when we knew
- the letters of the alphabet, which are very few, in all their recurring
- sizes and combinations; not slighting them as unimportant whether they
- occupy a space large or small, but everywhere eager to make them out;
- and not thinking ourselves perfect in the art of reading until we
- recognise them wherever they are found:
-
- True--
-
- Or, as we recognise the reflection of letters in the water,
- or in a mirror, only when we know the letters themselves;
- the same art and study giving us the knowledge of both:
-
- Exactly--
-
- Even so, as I maintain, neither we nor our guardians, whom we have to educate,
- can ever become musical until we and they know the essential forms,
- in all their combinations, and can recognise them and their images
- wherever they are found, not slighting them either in small things
- or great, but believing them all to be within the sphere of one art and study.
-
- Most assuredly.
-
- And when a beautiful soul harmonises with a beautiful form,
- and the two are cast in one mould, that will be the fairest of sights
- to him who has an eye to see it?
-
- The fairest indeed.
-
- And the fairest is also the loveliest?
-
- That may be assumed.
-
- And the man who has the spirit of harmony will be most in love with
- the loveliest; but he will not love him who is of an inharmonious soul?
-
- That is true, he replied, if the deficiency be in his soul;
- but if there be any merely bodily defect in another he will be patient
- of it, and will love all the same.
-
- I perceive, I said, that you have or have had experiences of
- this sort, and I agree. But let me ask you another question:
- Has excess of pleasure any affinity to temperance?
-
- How can that be? he replied; pleasure deprives a man of the use
- of his faculties quite as much as pain.
-
- Or any affinity to virtue in general?
-
- None whatever.
-
- Any affinity to wantonness and intemperance?
-
- Yes, the greatest.
-
- And is there any greater or keener pleasure than that of sensual love?
-
- No, nor a madder.
-
- Whereas true love is a love of beauty and order--temperate and harmonious?
-
- Quite true, he said.
-
- Then no intemperance or madness should be allowed to approach
- true love?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Then mad or intemperate pleasure must never be allowed to come
- near the lover and his beloved; neither of them can have any part
- in it if their love is of the right sort?
-
- No, indeed, Socrates, it must never come near them.
-
- Then I suppose that in the city which we are founding you would make
- a law to the effect that a friend should use no other familiarity
- to his love than a father would use to his son, and then only
- for a noble purpose, and he must first have the other's consent;
- and this rule is to limit him in all his intercourse, and he is never
- to be seen going further, or, if he exceeds, he is to be deemed
- guilty of coarseness and bad taste.
-
- I quite agree, he said.
-
- Thus much of music, which makes a fair ending; for what should
- be the end of music if not the love of beauty?
-
- I agree, he said.
-
- After music comes gymnastic, in which our youth are next to be trained.
-
- Certainly.
-
- Gymnastic as well as music should begin in early years; the training
- in it should be careful and should continue through life.
- Now my belief is,--and this is a matter upon which I should like to
- have your opinion in confirmation of my own, but my own belief is,--
- not that the good body by any bodily excellence improves the soul,
- but, on the contrary, that the good soul, by her own excellence,
- improves the body as far as this may be possible. What do you say?
-
- Yes, I agree.
-
- Then, to the mind when adequately trained, we shall be right in handing
- over the more particular care of the body; and in order to avoid
- prolixity we will now only give the general outlines of the subject.
-
- Very good.
-
- That they must abstain from intoxication has been already remarked by us;
- for of all persons a guardian should be the last to get drunk
- and not know where in the world he is.
-
- Yes, he said; that a guardian should require another guardian
- to take care of him is ridiculous indeed.
-
- But next, what shall we say of their food; for the men
- are in training for the great contest of all--are they not?
-
- Yes, he said.
-
- And will the habit of body of our ordinary athletes be suited
- to them?
-
- Why not?
-
- I am afraid, I said, that a habit of body such as they have is
- but a sleepy sort of thing, and rather perilous to health.
- Do you not observe that these athletes sleep away their lives,
- and are liable to most dangerous illnesses if they depart, in ever
- so slight a degree, from their customary regimen?
-
- Yes, I do.
-
- Then, I said, a finer sort of training will be required for our
- warrior athletes, who are to be like wakeful dogs, and to see and hear
- with the utmost keenness; amid the many changes of water and also of food,
- of summer heat and winter cold, which they will have to endure
- when on a campaign, they must not be liable to break down in health.
-
- That is my view.
-
- The really excellent gymnastic is twin sister of that simple music
- which we were just now describing.
-
- How so?
-
- Why, I conceive that there is a gymnastic which, like our music,
- is simple and good; and especially the military gymnastic.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- My meaning may be learned from Homer; he, you know, feeds his heroes
- at their feasts, when they are campaigning, on soldiers' fare; they have
- no fish, although they are on the shores of the Hellespont, and they
- are not allowed boiled meats but only roast, which is the food
- most convenient for soldiers, requiring only that they should light
- a fire, and not involving the trouble of carrying about pots and pans.
-
- True.
-
- And I can hardly be mistaken in saying that sweet sauces are nowhere
- mentioned in Homer. In proscribing them, however, he is not singular;
- all professional athletes are well aware that a man who is to be
- in good condition should take nothing of the kind.
-
- Yes, he said; and knowing this, they are quite right in not taking them.
-
- Then you would not approve of Syracusan dinners, and the refinements
- of Sicilian cookery?
-
- I think not.
-
- Nor, if a man is to be in condition, would you allow him to have
- a Corinthian girl as his fair friend?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Neither would you approve of the delicacies, as they are thought,
- of Athenian confectionery?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- All such feeding and living may be rightly compared by us to melody
- and song composed in the panharmonic style, and in all the rhythms. Exactly.
-
- There complexity engendered license, and here disease;
- whereas simplicity in music was the parent of temperance in the soul;
- and simplicity in gymnastic of health in the body.
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- But when intemperance and disease multiply in a State, halls of justice
- and medicine are always being opened; and the arts of the doctor
- and the lawyer give themselves airs, finding how keen is the interest
- which not only the slaves but the freemen of a city take about them.
-
- Of course.
-
- And yet what greater proof can there be of a bad and disgraceful
- state of education than this, that not only artisans and the meaner
- sort of people need the skill of first-rate physicians and judges,
- but also those who would profess to have had a liberal education?
- Is it not disgraceful, and a great sign of want of good-breeding,
- that a man should have to go abroad for his law and physic because
- he has none of his own at home, and must therefore surrender
- himself into the hands of other men whom he makes lords and judges
- over him?
-
- Of all things, he said, the most disgraceful.
-
- Would you say `most,' I replied, when you consider that there is a further
- stage of the evil in which a man is not only a life-long litigant,
- passing all his days in the courts, either as plaintiff or defendant,
- but is actually led by his bad taste to pride himself on
- his litigiousness; he imagines that he is a master in dishonesty;
- able to take every crooked turn, and wriggle into and out of every hole,
- bending like a withy and getting out of the way of justice:
- and all for what?--in order to gain small points not worth mentioning,
- he not knowing that so to order his life as to be able to do
- without a napping judge is a far higher and nobler sort of thing.
- Is not that still more disgraceful?
-
- Yes, he said, that is still more disgraceful.
-
- Well, I said, and to require the help of medicine, not when a wound
- has to be cured, or on occasion of an epidemic, but just because,
- by indolence and a habit of life such as we have been describing,
- men fill themselves with waters and winds, as if their bodies
- were a marsh, compelling the ingenious sons of Asclepius to find
- more names for diseases, such as flatulence and catarrh;
- is not this, too, a disgrace?
-
- Yes, he said, they do certainly give very strange and newfangled
- names to diseases.
-
- Yes, I said, and I do not believe that there were any such diseases
- in the days of Asclepius; and this I infer from the circumstance
- that the hero Eurypylus, after he has been wounded in Homer,
- drinks a posset of Pramnian wine well besprinkled with barley-meal
- and grated cheese, which are certainly inflammatory, and yet the sons
- of Asclepius who were at the Trojan war do not blame the damsel
- who gives him the drink, or rebuke Patroclus, who is treating
- his case.
-
- Well, he said, that was surely an extraordinary drink to be given
- to a person in his condition.
-
- Not so extraordinary, I replied, if you bear in mind that in
- former days, as is commonly said, before the time of Herodicus,
- the guild of Asclepius did not practise our present system of medicine,
- which may be said to educate diseases. But Herodicus, being a trainer,
- and himself of a sickly constitution, by a combination of training
- and doctoring found out a way of torturing first and chiefly himself,
- and secondly the rest of the world.
-
- How was that? he said.
-
- By the invention of lingering death; for he had a mortal disease
- which he perpetually tended, and as recovery was out of the question,
- he passed his entire life as a valetudinarian; he could do nothing
- but attend upon himself, and he was in constant torment whenever
- he departed in anything from his usual regimen, and so dying hard,
- by the help of science he struggled on to old age.
-
- A rare reward of his skill!
-
- Yes, I said; a reward which a man might fairly expect who never
- understood that, if Asclepius did not instruct his descendants in
- valetudinarian arts, the omission arose, not from ignorance or inexperience
- of such a branch of medicine, but because he knew that in all well-ordered
- states every individual has an occupation to which he must attend,
- and has therefore no leisure to spend in continually being ill.
- This we remark in the case of the artisan, but, ludicrously enough,
- do not apply the same rule to people of the richer sort.
-
- How do you mean? he said.
-
- I mean this: When a carpenter is ill he asks the physician for a rough
- and ready cure; an emetic or a purge or a cautery or the knife,--
- these are his remedies. And if some one prescribes for him a course
- of dietetics, and tells him that he must swathe and swaddle his head,
- and all that sort of thing, he replies at once that he has no time
- to be ill, and that he sees no good in a life which is spent
- in nursing his disease to the neglect of his customary employment;
- and therefore bidding good-bye to this sort of physician, he resumes
- his ordinary habits, and either gets well and lives and does
- his business, or, if his constitution falls, he dies and has no
- more trouble.
-
- Yes, he said, and a man in his condition of life ought to use
- the art of medicine thus far only.
-
- Has he not, I said, an occupation; and what profit would there
- be in his life if he were deprived of his occupation?
-
- Quite true, he said.
-
- But with the rich man this is otherwise; of him we do not say
- that he has any specially appointed work which he must perform,
- if he would live.
-
- He is generally supposed to have nothing to do.
-
- Then you never heard of the saying of Phocylides, that as soon
- as a man has a livelihood he should practise virtue?
-
- Nay, he said, I think that he had better begin somewhat sooner.
-
- Let us not have a dispute with him about this, I said; but rather
- ask ourselves: Is the practice of virtue obligatory on the rich man,
- or can he live without it? And if obligatory on him, then let us raise
- a further question, whether this dieting of disorders which is an impediment
- to the application of the mind t in carpentering and the mechanical
- arts, does not equally stand in the way of the sentiment of Phocylides?
-
- Of that, he replied, there can be no doubt; such excessive
- care of the body, when carried beyond the rules of gymnastic,
- is most inimical to the practice of virtue.
-
- Yes, indeed, I replied, and equally incompatible with the management
- of a house, an army, or an office of state; and, what is
- most important of all, irreconcilable with any kind of study
- or thought or self-reflection--there is a constant suspicion
- that headache and giddiness are to be ascribed to philosophy,
- and hence all practising or making trial of virtue in the higher
- sense is absolutely stopped; for a man is always fancying that
- he is being made ill, and is in constant anxiety about the state of his body.
-
- Yes, likely enough.
-
- And therefore our politic Asclepius may be supposed to have
- exhibited the power of his art only to persons who, being generally
- of healthy constitution and habits of life, had a definite ailment;
- such as these he cured by purges and operations, and bade them
- live as usual, herein consulting the interests of the State;
- but bodies which disease had penetrated through and through he
- would not have attempted to cure by gradual processes of evacuation
- and infusion: he did not want to lengthen out good-for-nothing lives,
- or to have weak fathers begetting weaker sons;--if a man was not
- able to live in the ordinary way he had no business to cure him;
- for such a cure would have been of no use either to himself, or to
- the State.
-
- Then, he said, you regard Asclepius as a statesman.
-
- Clearly; and his character is further illustrated by his sons.
- Note that they were heroes in the days of old and practised the medicines
- of which I am speaking at the siege of Troy: You will remember how,
- when Pandarus wounded Menelaus, they
-
- Sucked the blood out of the wound, and sprinkled soothing remedies,
-
- but they never prescribed what the patient was afterwards to eat or
- drink in the case of Menelaus, any more than in the case of Eurypylus;
- the remedies, as they conceived, were enough to heal any man
- who before he was wounded was healthy and regular in habits;
- and even though he did happen to drink a posset of Pramnian wine,
- he might get well all the same. But they would have nothing to do
- with unhealthy and intemperate subjects, whose lives were of no use
- either to themselves or others; the art of medicine was not designed
- for their good, and though they were as rich as Midas, the sons
- of Asclepius would have declined to attend them.
-
- They were very acute persons, those sons of Asclepius.
-
- Naturally so, I replied. Nevertheless, the tragedians and Pindar
- disobeying our behests, although they acknowledge that Asclepius
- was the son of Apollo, say also that he was bribed into healing
- a rich man who was at the point of death, and for this reason he
- was struck by lightning. But we, in accordance with the principle
- already affirmed by us, will not believe them when they tell us both;--
- if he was the son of a god, we maintain that hd was not avaricious;
- or, if he was avaricious he was not the son of a god.
-
- All that, Socrates, is excellent; but I should like to put a
- question to you: Ought there not to be good physicians in a State,
- and are not the best those who have treated the greatest number
- of constitutions good and bad? and are not the best judges
- in like manner those who are acquainted with all sorts of moral natures?
-
- Yes, I said, I too would have good judges and good physicians.
- But do you know whom I think good?
-
- Will you tell me?
-
- I will, if I can. Let me however note that in the same question
- you join two things which are not the same.
-
- How so? he asked.
-
- Why, I said, you join physicians and judges. Now the most skilful
- physicians are those who, from their youth upwards, have combined
- with the knowledge of their art the greatest experience of disease;
- they had better not be robust in health, and should have had
- all manner of diseases in their own persons. For the body,
- as I conceive, is not the instrument with which they cure the body;
- in that case we could not allow them ever to be or to have been sickly;
- but they cure the body with the mind, and the mind which has become and
- is sick can cure nothing.
-
- That is very true, he said.
-
- But with the judge it is otherwise; since he governs mind by mind;
- he ought not therefore to have been trained among vicious minds,
- and to have associated with them from youth upwards, and to have
- gone through the whole calendar of crime, only in order that he
- may quickly infer the crimes of others as he might their bodily
- diseases from his own self-consciousness; the honourable mind
- which is to form a healthy judgment should have had no experience
- or contamination of evil habits when young. And this is the reason
- why in youth good men often appear to be simple, and are easily
- practised upon by the dishonest, because they have no examples
- of what evil is in their own souls.
-
- Yes, he said, they are far too apt to be deceived.
-
- Therefore, I said, the judge should not be young; he should
- have learned to know evil, not from his own soul, but from
- late and long observation of the nature of evil in others:
- knowledge should be his guide, not personal experience.
-
- Yes, he said, that is the ideal of a judge.
-
- Yes, I replied, and he will be a good man (which is my answer to
- your question); for he is good who has a good soul. But the cunning
- and suspicious nature of which we spoke,--he who has committed
- many crimes, and fancies himself to be a master in wickedness,
- when he is amongst his fellows, is wonderful in the precautions
- which he takes, because he judges of them by himself: but when he gets
- into the company of men of virtue, who have the experience of age,
- he appears to be a fool again, owing to his unseasonable suspicions;
- he cannot recognise an honest man, because he has no pattern of
- honesty in himself; at the same time, as the bad are more numerous
- than the good, and he meets with them oftener, he thinks himself,
- and is by others thought to be, rather wise than foolish.
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- Then the good and wise judge whom we are seeking is not this man,
- but the other; for vice cannot know virtue too, but a virtuous nature,
- educated by time, will acquire a knowledge both of virtue and vice:
- the virtuous, and not the vicious, man has wisdom--in my opinion.
-
- And in mine also.
-
- This is the sort of medicine, and this is the sort of law, which you
- sanction in your State. They will minister to better natures,
- giving health both of soul and of body; but those who are diseased
- in their bodies they will leave to die, and the corrupt and incurable
- souls they will put an end to themselves.
-
- That is clearly the best thing both for the patients and for the State.
-
- And thus our youth, having been educated only in that simple music which,
- as we said, inspires temperance, will be reluctant to go to law.
-
- Clearly.
-
- And the musician, who, keeping to the same track,
- is content to practise the simple gymnastic,
- will have nothing to do with medicine unless in some extreme case.
-
- That I quite believe.
-
- The very exercises and tolls which he undergoes are intended to
- stimulate the spirited element of his nature, and not to increase
- his strength; he will not, like common athletes, use exercise
- and regimen to develop his muscles.
-
- Very right, he said.
-
- Neither are the two arts of music and gymnastic really designed,
- as is often supposed, the one for the training of the soul,
- the other fir the training of the body.
-
- What then is the real object of them?
-
- I believe, I said, that the teachers of both have in view chiefly
- the improvement of the soul.
-
- How can that be? he asked.
-
- Did you never observe, I said, the effect on the mind itself
- of exclusive devotion to gymnastic, or the opposite effect
- of an exclusive devotion to music?
-
- In what way shown? he said.
-
- The one producing a temper of hardness and ferocity, the other
- of softness and effeminacy, I replied.
-
- Yes, he said, I am quite aware that the mere athlete becomes too
- much of a savage, and that the mere musician is melted and softened
- beyond what is good for him.
-
- Yet surely, I said, this ferocity only comes from spirit, which,
- if rightly educated, would give courage, but, if too much intensified,
- is liable to become hard and brutal.
-
- That I quite think.
-
- On the other hand the philosopher will have the quality of gentleness.
- And this also, when too much indulged, will turn to softness, but,
- if educated rightly, will be gentle and moderate.
-
- True.
-
- And in our opinion the guardians ought to have both these qualities?
-
- Assuredly.
-
- And both should be in harmony?
-
- Beyond question.
-
- And the harmonious soul is both temperate and courageous?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the inharmonious is cowardly and boorish?
-
- Very true.
-
- And, when a man allows music to play upon him and to pour
- into his soul through the funnel of his ears those sweet and
- soft and melancholy airs of which we were just now speaking,
- and his whole life is passed in warbling and the delights of song;
- in the first stage of the process the passion or spirit which is
- in him is tempered like iron, and made useful, instead of brittle
- and useless. But, if he carries on the softening and soothing process,
- in the next stage he begins to melt and waste, until he has
- wasted away his spirit and cut out the sinews of his soul;
- and he becomes a feeble warrior.
-
- Very true.
-
- If the element of spirit is naturally weak in him the change is
- speedily accomplished, but if he have a good deal, then the power
- of music weakening the spirit renders him excitable;--on the least
- provocation he flames up at once, and is speedily extinguished;
- instead of having spirit he grows irritable and passionate and is
- quite impracticable.
-
- Exactly.
-
- And so in gymnastics, if a man takes violent exercise and is
- a great feeder, and the reverse of a great student of music
- and philosophy, at first the high condition of his body fills
- him with pride and spirit, and lie becomes twice the man that he was.
-
- Certainly.
-
- And what happens? if he do nothing else, and holds no con-a verse
- with the Muses, does not even that intelligence which there may be
- in him, having no taste of any sort of learning or enquiry or thought
- or culture, grow feeble and dull and blind, his mind never waking up
- or receiving nourishment, and his senses not being purged of their mists?
-
- True, he said.
-
- And he ends by becoming a hater of philosophy, uncivilized,
- never using the weapon of persuasion,--he is like a wild beast,
- all violence and fierceness, and knows no other way of dealing;
- and he lives in all ignorance and evil conditions, and has no sense
- of propriety and grace.
-
- That is quite true, he said.
-
- And as there are two principles of human nature, one the spirited
- and the other the philosophical, some God, as I should say,
- has given mankind two arts answering to them (and only indirectly
- to the soul and body), in order that these two principles
- (like the strings of an instrument) may be relaxed or drawn tighter
- until they are duly harmonised.
-
- That appears to be the intention.
-
- And he who mingles music with gymnastic in the fairest proportions,
- and best attempers them to the soul, may be rightly called the true
- musician and harmonist in a far higher sense than the tuner
- of the strings.
-
- You are quite right, Socrates.
-
- And such a presiding genius will be always required in our State
- if the government is to last.
-
- Yes, he will be absolutely necessary.
-
- Such, then, are our principles of nurture and education:
- Where would be the use of going into further details about the dances
- of our citizens, or about their hunting and coursing, their gymnastic
- and equestrian contests? For these all follow the general principle,
- and having found that, we shall have no difficulty in discovering them.
-
- I dare say that there will be no difficulty.
-
- Very good, I said; then what is the next question? Must we not ask
- who are to be rulers and who subjects?
-
- Certainly.
-
- There can be no doubt that the elder must rule the younger.
-
- Clearly.
-
- And that the best of these must rule.
-
- That is also clear.
-
- Now, are not the best husbandmen those who are most devoted
- to husbandry?
-
- Yes.
-
- And as we are to have the best of guardians for our city, must they
- not be those who have most the character of guardians?
-
- Yes.
-
- And to this end they ought to be wise and efficient, and to have
- a special care of the State?
-
- True.
-
- And a man will be most likely to care about that which he loves?
-
- To be sure.
-
- And he will be most likely to love that which he regards as having
- the same interests with himself, and that of which the good or evil
- fortune is supposed by him at any time most to affect his own?
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- Then there must be a selection. Let us note among the guardians
- those who in their whole life show the greatest eagerness to do
- what is for the good of their country, and the greatest repugnance
- to do what is against her interests.
-
- Those are the right men.
-
- And they will have to be watched at every age, in order that we
- may see whether they preserve their resolution, and never,
- under the influence either of force or enchantment, forget or cast
- off their sense of duty to the State.
-
- How cast off? he said.
-
- I will explain to you, I replied. A resolution may go out
- of a man's mind either with his will or against his will;
- with his will when he gets rid of a falsehood and learns better,
- against his will whenever he is deprived of a truth.
-
- I understand, he said, the willing loss of a resolution;
- the meaning of the unwilling I have yet to learn.
-
- Why, I said, do you not see that men are unwillingly deprived of good,
- and willingly of evil? Is not to have lost the truth an evil,
- and to possess the truth a good? and you would agree that to conceive
- things as they are is to possess the truth?
-
- Yes, he replied; I agree with you in thinking that mankind are
- deprived of truth against their will.
-
- And is not this involuntary deprivation caused either by theft,
- or force, or enchantment?
-
- Still, he replied, I do not understand you.
-
- I fear that I must have been talking darkly, like the tragedians.
- I only mean that some men are changed by persuasion and that others forget;
- argument steals away the hearts of one class, and time of the other;
- and this I call theft. Now you understand me?
-
- Yes.
-
- Those again who are forced are those whom the violence of some pain
- or grief compels to change their opinion.
-
- I understand, he said, and you are quite right.
-
- And you would also acknowledge that the enchanted are those who
- change their minds either under the softer influence of pleasure,
- or the sterner influence of fear?
-
- Yes, he said; everything that deceives may be said to enchant.
-
- Therefore, as I was just now saying, we must enquire who are
- the best guardians of their own conviction that what they think
- the interest of the State is to be the rule of their lives.
- We must watch them from their youth upwards, and make them perform
- actions in which they are most likely to forget or to be deceived,
- and he who remembers and is not deceived is to be selected,
- and he who falls in the trial is to be rejected. That will be
- the way?
-
- Yes.
-
- And there should also be toils and pains and conflicts prescribed
- for them, in which they will be made to give further proof
- of the same qualities.
-
- Very right, he replied.
-
- And then, I said, we must try them with enchantments that is
- the third sort of test--and see what will be their behaviour:
- like those who take colts amid noise and tumult to see if they are
- of a timid nature, so must we take our youth amid terrors of some kind,
- and again pass them into pleasures, and prove them more thoroughly
- than gold is proved in the furnace, that we may discover whether they
- are armed against all enchantments, and of a noble bearing always,
- good guardians of themselves and of the music which they have learned,
- and retaining under all circumstances a rhythmical and harmonious nature,
- such as will be most serviceable to the individual and to the State.
- And he who at every age, as boy and youth and in mature life,
- has come out of the trial victorious and pure, shall be appointed
- a ruler and guardian of the State; he shall be honoured in life
- and death, and shall receive sepulture and other memorials of honour,
- the greatest that we have to give. But him who fails, we must reject.
- I am inclined to think that this is the sort of way in which our rulers
- and guardians should be chosen and appointed. I speak generally,
- and not with any pretension to exactness.
-
- And, speaking generally, I agree with you, he said.
-
- And perhaps the word `guardian' in the fullest sense ought to be
- applied to this higher class only who preserve us against foreign
- enemies and maintain peace among our citizens at home, that the one
- may not have the will, or the others the power, to harm us.
- The young men whom we before called guardians may be more properly
- designated auxiliaries and supporters of the principles of the rulers.
-
- I agree with you, he said.
-
- How then may we devise one of those needful falsehoods of which we
- lately spoke--just one royal lie which may deceive the rulers,
- if that be possible, and at any rate the rest of the city?
-
- What sort of lie? he said.
-
- Nothing new, I replied; only an old Phoenician tale of what has
- often occurred before now in other places, (as the poets say,
- and have made the world believe,) though not in our time,
- and I do not know whether such an event could ever happen again,
- or could now even be made probable, if it did.
-
- How your words seem to hesitate on your lips!
-
- You will not wonder, I replied, at my hesitation when you have heard.
-
- Speak, he said, and fear not.
-
- Well then, I will speak, although I really know not how to look
- you in the face, or in what words to utter the audacious fiction,
- which I propose to communicate gradually, first to the rulers,
- then to the soldiers, and lastly to the people. They are to be
- told that their youth was a dream, and the education and training
- which they received from us, an appearance only; in reality during
- all that time they were being formed and fed in the womb of the earth,
- where they themselves and their arms and appurtenances were manufactured;
- when they were completed, the earth, their mother, sent them up;
- and so, their country being their mother and also their nurse,
- they are bound to advise for her good, and to defend her against attacks,
- and her citizens they are to regard as children of the earth and their
- own brothers.
-
- You had good reason, he said, to be ashamed of the lie which you
- were going to tell.
-
- True, I replied, but there is more coming; I have only told you half.
- Citizens, we shall say to them in our tale, you are brothers,
- yet God has framed you differently. Some of you have the power
- of command, and in the composition of these he has mingled gold,
- wherefore also they have the greatest honour; others he has
- made of silver, to be auxillaries; others again who are to be
- husbandmen and craftsmen he has composed of brass and iron;
- and the species will generally be preserved in the children.
- But as all are of the same original stock, a golden parent will
- sometimes have a silver son, or a silver parent a golden son.
- And God proclaims as a first principle to the rulers, and above all else,
- that there is nothing which should so anxiously guard, or of which
- they are to be such good guardians, as of the purity of the race.
- They should observe what elements mingle in their off spring;
- for if the son of a golden or silver parent has an admixture
- of brass and iron, then nature orders a transposition of ranks,
- and the eye of the ruler must not be pitiful towards the child
- because he has to descend in the scale and become a husbandman
- or artisan, just as there may be sons of artisans who having
- an admixture of gold or silver in them are raised to honour,
- and become guardians or auxiliaries. For an oracle says that when
- a man of brass or iron guards the State, it will be destroyed.
- Such is the tale; is there any possibility of making our citizens believe
- in it?
-
- Not in the present generation, he replied; there is no way of
- accomplishing this; but their sons may be made to believe in the tale,
- and their sons' sons, and posterity after them.
-
- I see the difficulty, I replied; yet the fostering of such a belief
- will make them care more for the city and for one another.
- Enough, however, of the fiction, which may now fly abroad upon
- the wings of rumour, while we arm our earth-born heroes, and lead
- them forth under the command of their rulers. Let them look round
- and select a spot whence they can best suppress insurrection,
- if any prove refractory within, and also defend themselves
- against enemies, who like wolves may come down on the fold
- from without; there let them encamp, and when they have encamped,
- let them sacrifice to the proper Gods and prepare their dwellings.
-
- Just so, he said.
-
- And their dwellings must be such as will shield them against the cold
- of winter and the heat of summer.
-
- I suppose that you mean houses, he replied.
-
- Yes, I said; but they must be the houses of soldiers, and not
- of shop-keepers.
-
- What is the difference? he said.
-
- That I will endeavour to explain, I replied. To keep watchdogs,
- who, from want of discipline or hunger, or some evil habit,
- or evil habit or other, would turn upon the sheep and worry them,
- and behave not like dogs but wolves, would be a foul and monstrous
- thing in a shepherd?
-
- Truly monstrous, he said.
-
- And therefore every care must be taken that our auxiliaries,
- being stronger than our citizens, may not grow to be too much
- for them and become savage tyrants instead of friends and allies?
-
- Yes, great care should be taken.
-
- And would not a really good education furnish the best safeguard?
-
- But they are well-educated already, he replied.
-
- I cannot be so confident, my dear Glaucon, I said; I am much certain
- that they ought to be, and that true education, whatever that may be,
- will have the greatest tendency to civilize and humanize them
- in their relations to one another, and to those who are under
- their protection.
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- And not only their education, but their habitations, and all that
- belongs to them, should be such as will neither impair their virtue
- as guardians, nor tempt them to prey upon the other citizens.
- Any man of sense must acknowledge that.
-
- He must.
-
- Then let us consider what will be their way of life, if they are
- to realize our idea of them. In the first place, none of them should
- have any property of his own beyond what is absolutely necessary;
- neither should they have a private house or store closed against any one
- who has a mind to enter; their provisions should be only such as are
- required by trained warriors, who are men of temperance and courage;
- they should agree to receive from the citizens a fixed rate of pay,
- enough to meet the expenses of the year and no more; and they will go
- and live together like soldiers in a camp. Gold and silver we will
- tell them that they have from God; the diviner metal is within them,
- and they have therefore no need of the dross which is current among men,
- and ought not to pollute the divine by any such earthly admixture;
- for that commoner metal has been the source of many unholy deeds,
- but their own is undefiled. And they alone of all the citizens
- may not touch or handle silver or gold, or be under the same roof
- with them, or wear them, or drink from them. And this will be
- their salvation, and they will be the saviours of the State.
- But should they ever acquire homes or lands or moneys of their own,
- they will become housekeepers and husbandmen instead of guardians,
- enemies and tyrants instead of allies of the other citizens;
- hating and being hated, plotting and being plotted against,
- they will pass their whole life in much greater terror
- of internal than of external enemies, and the hour of ruin,
- both to themselves and to the rest of the State, will be at hand.
- For all which reasons may we not say that thus shall our State
- be ordered, and that these shall be the regulations appointed
- by us for guardians concerning their houses and all other matters?
- other
-
- Yes, said Glaucon.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK IV
-
-
- ADEIMANTUS - SOCRATES
-
- HERE Adeimantus interposed a question: How would you answer,
- Socrates, said he, if a person were to say that you are making these
- people miserable, and that they are the cause of their own unhappiness;
- the city in fact belongs to them, but they are none the better for it;
- whereas other men acquire lands, and build large and handsome houses,
- and have everything handsome about them, offering sacrifices
- to the gods on their own account, and practising hospitality;
- moreover, as you were saying just now, they have gold and silver,
- and all that is usual among the favourites of fortune; but our poor
- citizens are no better than mercenaries who are quartered in the city
- and are always mounting guard?
-
- Yes, I said; and you may add that they are only fed, and not paid
- in addition to their food, like other men; and therefore they cannot,
- if they would, take a journey of pleasure; they have no money to spend
- on a mistress or any other luxurious fancy, which, as the world goes,
- is thought to be happiness; and many other accusations of the same
- nature might be added.
-
- But, said he, let us suppose all this to be included in the charge.
-
- You mean to ask, I said, what will be our answer?
-
- Yes.
-
- If we proceed along the old path, my belief, I said, is that we
- shall find the answer. And our answer will be that, even as
- they are, our guardians may very likely be the happiest of men;
- but that our aim in founding the State was not the disproportionate
- happiness of any one class, but the greatest happiness of the whole;
- we thought that in a State which is ordered with a view to
- the good of the whole we should be most likely to find Justice,
- and in the ill-ordered State injustice: and, having found them,
- we might then decide which of the two is the happier. At present,
- I take it, we are fashioning the happy State, not piecemeal,
- or with a view of making a few happy citizens, but as a whole;
- and by-and-by we will proceed to view the opposite kind of State.
- Suppose that we were painting a statue, and some one came up to us
- and said, Why do you not put the most beautiful colours on the most
- beautiful parts of the body--the eyes ought to be purple, but you
- have made them black--to him we might fairly answer, Sir, you would
- not surely have us beautify the eyes to such a degree that they
- are no longer eyes; consider rather whether, by giving this and
- the other features their due proportion, we make the whole beautiful.
- And so I say to you, do not compel us to assign to the guardians
- a sort of happiness which will make them anything but guardians;
- for we too can clothe our husbandmen in royal apparel, and set
- crowns of gold on their heads, and bid them till the ground as much
- as they like, and no more. Our potters also might be allowed to repose
- on couches, and feast by the fireside, passing round the winecup,
- while their wheel is conveniently at hand, and working at pottery
- only as much as they like; in this way we might make every class
- happy-and then, as you imagine, the whole State would be happy.
- But do not put this idea into our heads; for, if we listen to you,
- the husbandman will be no longer a husbandman, the potter will cease
- to be a potter, and no one will have the character of any distinct
- class in the State. Now this is not of much consequence where
- the corruption of society, and pretension to be what you are not,
- is confined to cobblers; but when the guardians of the laws
- and of the government are only seemingly and not real guardians,
- then see how they turn the State upside down; and on the other hand
- they alone have the power of giving order and happiness to the State.
- We mean our guardians to be true saviours and not the destroyers of
- the State, whereas our opponent is thinking of peasants at a festival,
- who are enjoying a life of revelry, not of citizens who are doing
- their duty to the State. But, if so, we mean different things,
- and he is speaking of something which is not a State. And therefore
- we must consider whether in appointing our guardians we would look
- to their greatest happiness individually, or whether this principle
- of happiness does not rather reside in the State as a whole.
- But the latter be the truth, then the guardians and auxillaries,
- and all others equally with them, must be compelled or induced
- to do their own work in the best way. And thus the whole
- State will grow up in a noble order, and the several classes
- will receive the proportion of happiness which nature assigns to
- them.
-
- I think that you are quite right.
-
- I wonder whether you will agree with another remark which occurs
- to me.
-
- What may that be?
-
- There seem to be two causes of the deterioration of the arts.
-
- What are they?
-
- Wealth, I said, and poverty.
-
- How do they act?
-
- The process is as follows: When a potter becomes rich, will he,
- think you, any longer take the same pains with his art?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- He will grow more and more indolent and careless?
-
- Very true.
-
- And the result will be that he becomes a worse potter?
-
- Yes; he greatly deteriorates.
-
- But, on the other hand, if he has no money, and cannot provide
- himself tools or instruments, he will not work equally well himself,
- nor will he teach his sons or apprentices to work equally well.
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Then, under the influence either of poverty or of wealth,
- workmen and their work are equally liable to degenerate?
-
- That is evident.
-
- Here, then, is a discovery of new evils, I said, against which the
- guardians will have to watch, or they will creep into the city unobserved.
-
- What evils?
-
- Wealth, I said, and poverty; the one is the parent of luxury and indolence,
- and the other of meanness and viciousness, and both of discontent.
-
- That is very true, he replied; but still I should like to know,
- Socrates, how our city will be able to go to war, especially against
- an enemy who is rich and powerful, if deprived of the sinews of war.
-
- There would certainly be a difficulty, I replied, in going to war
- with one such enemy; but there is no difficulty where there
- are two of them.
-
- How so? he asked.
-
- In the first place, I said, if we have to fight, our side will
- be trained warriors fighting against an army of rich men.
-
- That is true, he said.
-
- And do you not suppose, Adeimantus, that a
- single boxer who was perfect in his art would
- easily be a match for two stout and well-to-do gentlemen who were not boxers?
-
- Hardly, if they came upon him at once.
-
- What, not, I said, if he were able to run away and then turn and strike
- at the one who first came up? And supposing he were to do this
- several times under the heat of a scorching sun, might he not,
- being an expert, overturn more than one stout personage?
-
- Certainly, he said, there would be nothing wonderful in that.
-
- And yet rich men probably have a greater superiority in the science
- and practice of boxing than they have in military qualities.
-
- Likely enough.
-
- Then we may assume that our athletes will be able to fight
- with two or three times their own number?
-
- I agree with you, for I think you right.
-
- And suppose that, before engaging, our citizens send an embassy
- to one of the two cities, telling them what is the truth:
- Silver and gold we neither have nor are permitted to have, but you may;
- do you therefore come and help us in war, of and take the spoils
- of the other city: Who, on hearing these words, would choose to fight
- against lean wiry dogs, rather th than, with the dogs on their side,
- against fat and tender sheep?
-
- That is not likely; and yet there might be a danger to the poor
- State if the wealth of many States were to be gathered into one.
-
- But how simple of you to use the term State at all of any but our own!
-
- Why so?
-
- You ought to speak of other States in the plural number;
- not one of them is a city, but many cities, as they say in the game.
- For indeed any city, however small, is in fact divided into two,
- one the city of the poor, the other of the rich; these are at war
- with one another; and in either there are many smaller divisions,
- and you would be altogether beside the mark if you treated them
- all as a single State. But if you deal with them as many,
- and give the wealth or power or persons of the one to the others,
- you will always have a great many friends and not many enemies.
- And your State, while the wise order which has now been prescribed
- continues to prevail in her, will be the greatest of States,
- I do not mean to say in reputation or appearance, but in deed
- and truth, though she number not more than a thousand defenders.
- A single State which is her equal you will hardly find, either among
- Hellenes or barbarians, though many that appear to be as great and many
- times greater.
-
- That is most true, he said.
-
- And what, I said, will be the best limit for our rulers to fix
- when they are considering the size of the State and the amount
- of territory which they are to include, and beyond which they will not go?
-
- What limit would you propose?
-
- I would allow the State to increase so far as is consistent
- with unity; that, I think, is the proper limit.
-
- Very good, he said.
-
- Here then, I said, is another order which will have to be conveyed
- to our guardians: Let our city be accounted neither large nor small,
- but one and self-sufficing.
-
- And surely, said he, this is not a very severe order which we
- impose upon them.
-
- And the other, said I, of which we were speaking before is lighter still,
- -I mean the duty of degrading the offspring of the guardians
- when inferior, and of elevating into the rank of guardians
- the offspring of the lower classes, when naturally superior.
- The intention was, that, in the case of the citizens generally,
- each individual should be put to the use for which nature which
- nature intended him, one to one work, and then every man would
- do his own business, and be one and not many; and so the whole
- city would be one and not many.
-
- Yes, he said; that is not so difficult.
-
- The regulations which we are prescribing, my good Adeimantus, are not,
- as might be supposed, a number of great principles, but trifles all,
- if care be taken, as the saying is, of the one great thing,--
- a thing, however, which I would rather call, not great, but sufficient
- for our purpose.
-
- What may that be? he asked.
-
- Education, I said, and nurture: If our citizens are well educated,
- and grow into sensible men, they will easily see their way through
- all these, as well as other matters which I omit; such, for example,
- as marriage, the possession of women and the procreation of children,
- which will all follow the general principle that friends have all things
- in common, as the proverb says.
-
- That will be the best way of settling them.
-
- Also, I said, the State, if once started well, moves with accumulating
- force like a wheel. For good nurture and education implant
- good constitutions, and these good constitutions taking root
- in a good education improve more and more, and this improvement
- affects the breed in man as in other animals.
-
- Very possibly, he said.
-
- Then to sum up: This is the point to which, above all, the attention
- of our rulers should be directed,--that music and gymnastic
- be preserved in their original form, and no innovation made.
- They must do their utmost to maintain them intact. And when any
- one says that mankind most regard
-
- The newest song which the singers have,
-
- they will be afraid that he may be praising, not new songs,
- but a new kind of song; and this ought not to be praised,
- or conceived to be the meaning of the poet; for any musical innovation
- is full of danger to the whole State, and ought to be prohibited.
- So Damon tells me, and I can quite believe him;-he says that when modes
- of music change, of the State always change with them.
-
- Yes, said Adeimantus; and you may add my suffrage to Damon's
- and your own.
-
- Then, I said, our guardians must lay the foundations of their
- fortress in music?
-
- Yes, he said; the lawlessness of which you speak too easily steals in.
-
- Yes, I replied, in the form of amusement; and at first sight it
- appears harmless.
-
- Why, yes, he said, and there is no harm; were it not that little by
- little this spirit of licence, finding a home, imperceptibly penetrates
- into manners and customs; whence, issuing with greater force,
- it invades contracts between man and man, and from contracts goes
- on to laws and constitutions, in utter recklessness, ending at last,
- Socrates, by an overthrow of all rights, private as well as public.
-
- Is that true? I said.
-
- That is my belief, he replied.
-
- Then, as I was saying, our youth should be trained
- from the first in a stricter system, for if amusements
- become lawless, and the youths themselves become lawless,
- they can never grow up into well-conducted and virtuous citizens.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- And when they have made a good beginning in play, and by the help
- of music have gained the habit of good order, then this habit of order,
- in a manner how unlike the lawless play of the others! will accompany
- them in all their actions and be a principle of growth to them,
- and if there be any fallen places a principle in the State will raise
- them up again.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Thus educated, they will invent for themselves any lesser rules
- which their predecessors have altogether neglected.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- I mean such things as these:--when the young are to be silent
- before their elders; how they are to show respect to them
- by standing and making them sit; what honour is due to parents;
- what garments or shoes are to be worn; the mode of dressing the hair;
- deportment and manners in general. You would agree with me?
-
- Yes.
-
- But there is, I think, small wisdom in legislating about such matters,--
- I doubt if it is ever done; nor are any precise written enactments
- about them likely to be lasting.
-
- Impossible.
-
- It would seem, Adeimantus, that the direction in which education
- starts a man, will determine his future life. Does not like always
- attract like?
-
- To be sure.
-
- Until some one rare and grand result is reached which may be good,
- and may be the reverse of good?
-
- That is not to be denied.
-
- And for this reason, I said, I shall not attempt to legislate
- further about them.
-
- Naturally enough, he replied.
-
- Well, and about the business of the agora, dealings and the ordinary
- dealings between man and man, or again about agreements with the
- commencement with artisans; about insult and injury, of the commencement
- of actions, and the appointment of juries, what would you say? there
- may also arise questions about any impositions and extractions
- of market and harbour dues which may be required, and in general
- about the regulations of markets, police, harbours, and the like.
- But, oh heavens! shall we condescend to legislate on any of these particulars?
-
- I think, he said, that there is no need to impose laws about them
- on good men; what regulations are necessary they will find out soon
- enough for themselves.
-
- Yes, I said, my friend, if God will only preserve to them the laws
- which we have given them.
-
- And without divine help, said Adeimantus, they will go on for
- ever making and mending their laws and their lives in the hope
- of attaining perfection.
-
- You would compare them, I said, to those invalids who, having no
- self-restraint, will not leave off their habits of intemperance?
-
- Exactly.
-
- Yes, I said; and what a delightful life they lead! they are always
- doctoring and increasing and complicating their disorders,
- and always fancying that they will be cured by any nostrum
- which anybody advises them to try.
-
- Such cases are very common, he said, with invalids of this sort.
-
- Yes, I replied; and the charming thing is that they deem him
- their worst enemy who tells them the truth, which is simply that,
- unless they give up eating and drinking and wenching and idling,
- neither drug nor cautery nor spell nor amulet nor any other remedy
- will avail.
-
- Charming! he replied. I see nothing charming in going into a passion
- with a man who tells you what is right.
-
- These gentlemen, I said, do not seem to be in your good graces.
-
- Assuredly not.
-
- Nor would you praise the behaviour of States which act like the men whom
- I was just now describing. For are there not ill-ordered States in which
- the citizens are forbidden under pain of death to alter the constitution;
- and yet he who most sweetly courts those who live under this regime
- and indulges them and fawns upon them and is skilful in anticipating
- and gratifying their humours is held to be a great and good statesman--
- do not these States resemble the persons whom I was describing?
-
- Yes, he said; the States are as bad as the men; and I am very far
- from praising them.
-
- But do you not admire, I said, the coolness and dexterity
- of these ready ministers of political corruption?
-
- Yes, he said, I do; but not of all of them, for there are some whom
- the applause of the multitude has deluded into the belief that they
- are really statesmen, and these are not much to be admired.
-
- What do you mean? I said; you should have more feeling for them.
- When a man cannot measure, and a great many others who cannot measure
- declare that he is four cubits high, can he help believing what
- they say?
-
- Nay, he said, certainly not in that case.
-
- Well, then, do not be angry with them; for are they not as good as
- a play, trying their hand at paltry reforms such as I was describing;
- they are always fancying that by legislation they will make
- an end of frauds in contracts, and the other rascalities which I
- was mentioning, not knowing that they are in reality cutting off
- the heads of a hydra?
-
- Yes, he said; that is just what they are doing.
-
- I conceive, I said, that the true legislator will not trouble
- himself with this class of enactments whether concerning laws or
- the constitution either in an ill-ordered or in a well-ordered State;
- for in the former they are quite useless, and in the latter
- there will be no difficulty in devising them; and many of them
- will naturally flow out of our previous regulations.
-
- What, then, he said, is still remaining to us of the work of legislation?
-
- Nothing to us, I replied; but to Apollo, the God of Delphi,
- there remains the ordering of the greatest and noblest and chiefest
- things of all.
-
- Which are they? he said.
-
- The institution of temples and sacrifices, and the entire service
- of gods, demigods, and heroes; also the ordering of the repositories
- of the dead, and the rites which have to be observed by him who would
- propitiate the inhabitants of the world below. These are matters
- of which we are ignorant ourselves, and as founders of a city we should
- be unwise in trusting them to any interpreter but our ancestral deity.
- He is the god who sits in the center, on the navel of the earth,
- and he is the interpreter of religion to all mankind.
-
- You are right, and we will do as you propose.
-
- But where, amid all this, is justice? son of Ariston, tell me where.
- Now that our city has been made habitable, light a candle and search,
- and get your brother and Polemarchus and the rest of our friends to help,
- and let us see where in it we can discover justice and where injustice,
- and in what they differ from one another, and which of them the man
- who would be happy should have for his portion, whether seen or unseen
- by gods and men.
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- Nonsense, said Glaucon: did you not promise to search yourself,
- saying that for you not to help justice in her need would be
- an impiety?
-
- I do not deny that I said so, and as you remind me, I will be
- as good as my word; but you must join.
-
- We will, he replied.
-
- Well, then, I hope to make the discovery in this way: I mean
- to begin with the assumption that our State, if rightly ordered,
- is perfect.
-
- That is most certain.
-
- And being perfect, is therefore wise and valiant and temperate
- and just.
-
- That is likewise clear.
-
- And whichever of these qualities we find in the State, the one
- which is not found will be the residue?
-
- Very good.
-
- If there were four things, and we were searching for one of them,
- wherever it might be, the one sought for might be known to us
- from the first, and there would be no further trouble; or we
- might know the other three first, and then the fourth would clearly
- be the one left.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- And is not a similar method to be pursued about the virtues,
- which are also four in number?
-
- Clearly.
-
- First among the virtues found in the State, wisdom comes into view,
- and in this I detect a certain peculiarity.
-
- What is that?
-
- The State which we have been describing is said to be wise as being
- good in counsel?
-
- Very true.
-
- And good counsel is clearly a kind of knowledge, for not by ignorance,
- but by knowledge, do men counsel well?
-
- Clearly.
-
- And the kinds of knowledge in a State are many and diverse?
-
- Of course.
-
- There is the knowledge of the carpenter; but is that the sort
- of knowledge which gives a city the title of wise and good in counsel?
-
- Certainly not; that would only give a city the reputation of skill
- in carpentering.
-
- Then a city is not to be called wise because possessing a knowledge
- which counsels for the best about wooden implements?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Nor by reason of a knowledge which advises about brazen pots, I said,
- nor as possessing any other similar knowledge?
-
- Not by reason of any of them, he said.
-
- Nor yet by reason of a knowledge which cultivates the earth;
- that would give the city the name of agricultural?
-
- Yes.
-
- Well, I said, and is there any knowledge in our recently founded
- State among any of the citizens which advises, not about any
- particular thing in the State, but about the whole, and considers
- how a State can best deal with itself and with other States?
-
- There certainly is.
-
- And what is knowledge, and among whom is it found? I asked.
-
- It is the knowledge of the guardians, he replied, and found among
- those whom we were just now describing as perfect guardians.
-
- And what is the name which the city derives from the possession
- of this sort of knowledge?
-
- The name of good in counsel and truly wise.
-
- And will there be in our city more of these true guardians
- or more smiths?
-
- The smiths, he replied, will be far more numerous.
-
- Will not the guardians be the smallest of all the classes who receive
- a name from the profession of some kind of knowledge?
-
- Much the smallest.
-
- And so by reason of the smallest part or class, and of the knowledge
- which resides in this presiding and ruling part of itself,
- the whole State, being thus constituted according to nature, will be wise;
- and this, which has the only knowledge worthy to be called wisdom,
- has been ordained by nature to be of all classes the least.
-
- Most true.
-
- Thus, then, I said, the nature and place in the State of one
- of the four virtues has somehow or other been discovered.
-
- And, in my humble opinion, very satisfactorily discovered,
- he replied.
-
- Again, I said, there is no difficulty in seeing the nature of courage;
- and in what part that quality resides which gives the name of
- courageous to the State.
-
- How do you mean?
-
- Why, I said, every one who calls any State courageous or cowardly,
- will be thinking of the part which fights and goes out to war on
- the State's behalf.
-
- No one, he replied, would ever think of any other.
-
- Certainly not.
-
- The rest of the citizens may be courageous or may be cowardly but
- their courage or cowardice will not, as I conceive, have the effect
- of making the city either the one or the other.
-
- The city will be courageous in virtue of a portion of herself
- which preserves under all circumstances that opinion about the nature
- of things to be feared and not to be feared in which our legislator
- educated them; and this is what you term courage.
-
- I should like to hear what you are saying once more, for I do not
- think that I perfectly understand you.
-
- I mean that courage is a kind of salvation.
-
- Salvation of what?
-
- Of the opinion respecting things to be feared, what they are
- and of what nature, which the law implants through education;
- and I mean by the words `under all circumstances' to intimate that
- in pleasure or in pain, or under the influence of desire or fear,
- a man preserves, and does not lose this opinion. Shall I give you
- an illustration?
-
- If you please.
-
- You know, I said, that dyers, when they want to dye wool for making
- the true sea-purple, begin by selecting their white colour first;
- this they prepare and dress with much care and pains, in order
- that the white ground may take the purple hue in full perfection.
- The dyeing then proceeds; and whatever is dyed in this manner becomes
- a fast colour, and no washing either with lyes or without them can
- take away the bloom. But, when the ground has not been duly prepared,
- you will have noticed how poor is the look either of purple or of any
- other colour.
-
- Yes, he said; I know that they have a washed-out and ridiculous appearance.
-
- Then now, I said, you will understand what our object was in
- selecting our soldiers, and educating them in music and gymnastic;
- we were contriving influences which would prepare them to take the dye
- of the laws in perfection, and the colour of their opinion about dangers
- and of every other opinion was to be indelibly fixed by their nurture
- and training, not to be washed away by such potent lyes as pleasure--
- mightier agent far in washing the soul than any soda or lye;
- or by sorrow, fear, and desire, the mightiest of all other solvents.
- And this sort of universal saving power of true opinion in conformity
- with law about real and false dangers I call and maintain to be courage,
- unless you disagree.
-
- But I agree, he replied; for I suppose that you mean to exclude mere
- uninstructed courage, such as that of a wild beast or of a slave--
- this, in your opinion, is not the courage which the law ordains,
- and ought to have another name.
-
- Most certainly.
-
- Then I may infer courage to be such as you describe?
-
- Why, yes, said I, you may, and if you add the words `of a citizen,'
- you will not be far wrong;--hereafter, if you like, we will carry
- the examination further, but at present we are we w seeking not
- for courage but justice; and for the purpose of our enquiry we have
- said enough.
-
- You are right, he replied.
-
- Two virtues remain to be discovered in the State-first temperance,
- and then justice which is the end of our search.
-
- Very true.
-
- Now, can we find justice without troubling ourselves about temperance?
-
- I do not know how that can be accomplished, he said, nor do I desire
- that justice should be brought to light and temperance lost sight of;
- and therefore I wish that you would do me the favour of considering
- temperance first.
-
- Certainly, I replied, I should not be justified in refusing
- your request.
-
- Then consider, he said.
-
- Yes, I replied; I will; and as far as I can at present see,
- the virtue of temperance has more of the nature of harmony
- and symphony than the preceding.
-
- How so? he asked.
-
- Temperance, I replied, is the ordering or controlling of certain
- pleasures and desires; this is curiously enough implied in the saying
- of `a man being his own master' and other traces of the same notion
- may be found in language.
-
- No doubt, he said.
-
- There is something ridiculous in the expression `master of himself';
- for the master is also the servant and the servant the master;
- and in all these modes of speaking the same person is denoted.
-
- Certainly.
-
- The meaning is, I believe, that in the human soul there is a better
- and also a worse principle; and when the better has the worse
- under control, then a man is said to be master of himself;
- and this is a term of praise: but when, owing to evil education
- or association, the better principle, which is also the smaller,
- is overwhelmed by the greater mass of the worse--in this case he is
- blamed and is called the slave of self and unprincipled.
-
- Yes, there is reason in that.
-
- And now, I said, look at our newly created State, and there you
- will find one of these two conditions realised; for the State,
- as you will acknowledge, may be justly called master of itself,
- if the words `temperance' and `self-mastery' truly express the rule
- of the better part over the worse.
-
- Yes, he said, I see that what you say is true.
-
- Let me further note that the manifold and complex pleasures
- and desires and pains are generally found in children and women
- and servants, and in the freemen so called who are of the lowest
- and more numerous class.
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- Whereas the simple and moderate desires which follow reason,
- and are under the guidance of mind and true opinion, are to be found
- only in a few, and those the best born and best educated.
-
- Very true. These two, as you may perceive, have a place in our State;
- and the meaner desires of the are held down by the virtuous desires
- and wisdom of the few.
-
- That I perceive, he said.
-
- Then if there be any city which may be described as master of its
- own pleasures and desires, and master of itself, ours may claim
- such a designation?
-
- Certainly, he replied.
-
- It may also be called temperate, and for the same reasons?
-
- Yes.
-
- And if there be any State in which rulers and subjects will be agreed
- as to the question who are to rule, that again will be our State?
-
- Undoubtedly.
-
- And the citizens being thus agreed among themselves, in which class
- will temperance be found--in the rulers or in the subjects?
-
- In both, as I should imagine, he replied.
-
- Do you observe that we were not far wrong in our guess that temperance
- was a sort of harmony?
-
- Why so?
-
- Why, because temperance is unlike courage and wisdom, each of
- which resides in a part only, the one making the State wise and
- the other valiant; not so temperance, which extends to the whole,
- and runs through all the notes of the scale, and produces a harmony
- of the weaker and the stronger and the middle class, whether you
- suppose them to be stronger or weaker in wisdom or power or numbers
- or wealth, or anything else. Most truly then may we deem temperance
- to be the agreement of the naturally superior and inferior,
- as to the right to rule of either, both in states and individuals.
-
- I entirely agree with you.
-
- And so, I said, we may consider three out of the four virtues
- to have been discovered in our State. The last of those qualities
- which make a state virtuous must be justice, if we only knew what that was.
-
- The inference is obvious.
-
- The time then has arrived, Glaucon, when, like huntsmen, we should
- surround the cover, and look sharp that justice does not steal away,
- and pass out of sight and escape us; for beyond a doubt she is somewhere
- in this country: watch therefore and strive to catch a sight of her,
- and if you see her first, let me know.
-
- Would that I could! but you should regard me rather as a follower
- who has just eyes enough to, see what you show him--that is about
- as much as I am good for.
-
- Offer up a prayer with me and follow.
-
- I will, but you must show me the way.
-
- Here is no path, I said, and the wood is dark and perplexing;
- still we must push on.
-
- Let us push on.
-
- Here I saw something: Halloo! I said, I begin to perceive a track,
- and I believe that the quarry will not escape.
-
- Good news, he said.
-
- Truly, I said, we are stupid fellows.
-
- Why so?
-
- Why, my good sir, at the beginning of our enquiry, ages ago,
- there was justice tumbling out at our feet, and we never saw her;
- nothing could be more ridiculous. Like people who go about looking
- for what they have in their hands--that was the way with us--we looked
- not at what we were seeking, but at what was far off in the distance;
- and therefore, I suppose, we missed her.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- I mean to say that in reality for a long time past we have been
- talking of justice, and have failed to recognise her.
-
- I grow impatient at the length of your exordium.
-
- Well then, tell me, I said, whether I am right or not:
- You remember the original principle which we were always laying
- down at the foundation of the State, that one man should practise
- one thing only, the thing to which his nature was best adapted;--
- now justice is this principle or a part of it.
-
- Yes, we often said that one man should do one thing only.
-
- Further, we affirmed that justice was doing one's own business,
- and not being a busybody; we said so again and again, and many others
- have said the same to us.
-
- Yes, we said so.
-
- Then to do one's own business in a certain way may be assumed
- to be justice. Can you tell me whence I derive this inference?
-
- I cannot, but I should like to be told.
-
- Because I think that this is the only virtue which remains
- in the State when the other virtues of temperance and courage
- and wisdom are abstracted; and, that this is the ultimate cause
- and condition of the existence of all of them, and while remaining
- in them is also their preservative; and we were saying that if
- the three were discovered by us, justice would be the fourth or remaining one.
-
- That follows of necessity.
-
- If we are asked to determine which of these four qualities
- by its presence contributes most to the excellence of the State,
- whether the agreement of rulers and subjects, or the preservation
- in the soldiers of the opinion which the law ordains about the true
- nature of dangers, or wisdom and watchfulness in the rulers, or whether
- this other which I am mentioning, and which is found in children
- and women, slave and freeman, artisan, ruler, subject,--the quality,
- I mean, of every one doing his own work, and not being a busybody,
- would claim the palm--the question is not so easily answered.
-
- Certainly, he replied, there would be a difficulty in saying which.
-
- Then the power of each individual in the State to do his own work appears
- to compete with the other political virtues, wisdom, temperance, courage.
-
- Yes, he said.
-
- And the virtue which enters into this competition is justice?
-
- Exactly.
-
- Let us look at the question from another point of view:
- Are not the rulers in a State those to whom you would entrust
- the office of determining suits at law?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And are suits decided on any other ground but that a man may neither
- take what is another's, nor be deprived of what is his own?
-
- Yes; that is their principle.
-
- Which is a just principle?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then on this view also justice will be admitted to be the having
- and doing what is a man's own, and belongs to him?
-
- Very true.
-
- Think, now, and say whether you agree with me or not. Suppose a carpenter
- to be doing the business of a cobbler, or a cobbler of a carpenter;
- and suppose them to exchange their implements or their duties,
- or the same person to be doing the work of both, or whatever be the change;
- do you think that any great harm would result to the State?
-
- Not much.
-
- But when the cobbler or any other man whom nature designed
- to be a trader, having his heart lifted up by wealth or strength
- or the number of his followers, or any like advantage,
- attempts to force his way into the class of warriors, or a warrior
- into that of legislators and guardians, for which he is unfitted,
- and either to take the implements or the duties of the other;
- or when one man is trader, legislator, and warrior all in one,
- then I think you will agree with me in saying that this interchange
- and this meddling of one with another is the ruin of the State.
-
- Most true.
-
- Seeing then, I said, that there are three distinct classes,
- any meddling of one with another, or the change of one into another,
- is the greatest harm to the State, and may be most justly termed
- evil-doing?
-
- Precisely.
-
- And the greatest degree of evil-doing to one's own city would
- be termed by you injustice?
-
- Certainly.
-
- This then is injustice; and on the other hand when the trader,
- the auxiliary, and the guardian each do their own business,
- that is justice, and will make the city just.
-
- I agree with you.
-
- We will not, I said, be over-positive as yet; but if, on trial,
- this conception of justice be verified in the individual as well
- as in the State, there will be no longer any room for doubt;
- if it be not verified, we must have a fresh enquiry. First let us
- complete the old investigation, which we began, as you remember,
- under the impression that, if we could previously examine justice
- on the larger scale, there would be less difficulty in discerning
- her in the individual. That larger example appeared to be the State,
- and accordingly we constructed as good a one as we could, knowing well
- that in the good State justice would be found. Let the discovery
- which we made be now applied to the individual--if they agree,
- we shall be satisfied; or, if there be a difference in the individual,
- we will come back to the State and have another trial of the theory.
- The friction of the two when rubbed together may possibly strike
- a light in which justice will shine forth, and the vision which is
- then revealed we will fix in our souls.
-
- That will be in regular course; let us do as you say.
-
- I proceeded to ask: When two things, a greater and less,
- are called by the same name, are they like or unlike in so far
- as they are called the same?
-
- Like, he replied.
-
- The just man then, if we regard the idea of justice only,
- will be like the just State?
-
- He will.
-
- And a State was thought by us to be just when the three classes
- in the State severally did their own business; and also thought
- to be temperate and valiant and wise by reason of certain other
- affections and qualities of these same classes?
-
- True, he said.
-
- And so of the individual; we may assume that he has the same
- three principles in his own soul which are found in the State;
- and he may be rightly described in the same terms, because he is
- affected in the same manner?
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- Once more then, O my friend, we have alighted upon an easy question--
- whether the soul has these three principles or not?
-
- An easy question! Nay, rather, Socrates, the proverb holds
- that hard is the good.
-
- Very true, I said; and I do not think that the method which we are
- employing is at all adequate to the accurate solution of this question;
- the true method is another and a longer one. Still we may arrive
- at a solution not below the level of the previous enquiry.
-
- May we not be satisfied with that? he said;--under the circumstances,
- I am quite content.
-
- I too, I replied, shall be extremely well satisfied.
-
- Then faint not in pursuing the speculation, he said.
-
- Must we not acknowledge, I said, that in each of us there are
- the same principles and habits which there are in the State;
- and that from the individual they pass into the State?--how else can
- they come there? Take the quality of passion or spirit;--it would
- be ridiculous to imagine that this quality, when found in States,
- is not derived from the individuals who are supposed to possess it,
- e.g. the Thracians, Scythians, and in general the northern nations;
- and the same may be said of the love of knowledge, which is the special
- characteristic of our part of the world, or of the love of money,
- which may, with equal truth, be attributed to the Phoenicians
- and Egyptians.
-
- Exactly so, he said.
-
- There is no difficulty in understanding this.
-
- None whatever.
-
- But the question is not quite so easy when we proceed to ask
- whether these principles are three or one; whether, that is to say,
- we learn with one part of our nature, are angry with another,
- and with a third part desire the satisfaction of our natural appetites;
- or whether the whole soul comes into play in each sort of action--
- to determine that is the difficulty.
-
- Yes, he said; there lies the difficulty.
-
- Then let us now try and determine whether they are the same or different.
-
- How can we? he asked.
-
- I replied as follows: The same thing clearly cannot act or be
- acted upon in the same part or in relation to the same thing
- at the same time, in contrary ways; and therefore whenever
- this contradiction occurs in things apparently the same,
- we know that they are really not the same, but different.
-
- Good.
-
- For example, I said, can the same thing be at rest and in motion
- at the same time in the same part?
-
- Impossible.
-
- Still, I said, let us have a more precise statement of terms,
- lest we should hereafter fall out by the way. Imagine the case
- of a man who is standing and also moving his hands and his head,
- and suppose a person to say that one and the same person is in motion
- and at rest at the same moment-to such a mode of speech we should object,
- and should rather say that one part of him is in motion while another
- is at rest.
-
- Very true.
-
- And suppose the objector to refine still further, and to draw
- the nice distinction that not only parts of tops, but whole tops,
- when they spin round with their pegs fixed on the spot, are at
- rest and in motion at the same time (and he may say the same
- of anything which revolves in the same spot), his objection would
- not be admitted by us, because in such cases things are not at rest
- and in motion in the same parts of themselves; we should rather say
- that they have both an axis and a circumference, and that the axis
- stands still, for there is no deviation from the perpendicular;
- and that the circumference goes round. But if, while revolving,
- the axis inclines either to the right or left, forwards or backwards,
- then in no point of view can they be at rest.
-
- That is the correct mode of describing them, he replied.
-
- Then none of these objections will confuse us, or incline us to believe
- that the same thing at the same time, in the same part or in relation
- to the same thing, can act or be acted upon in contrary ways.
-
- Certainly not, according to my way of thinking.
-
- Yet, I said, that we may not be compelled to examine all such objections,
- and prove at length that they are untrue, let us assume their absurdity,
- and go forward on the understanding that hereafter, if this assumption
- turn out to be untrue, all the consequences which follow shall be withdrawn.
-
- Yes, he said, that will be the best way.
-
- Well, I said, would you not allow that assent and dissent,
- desire and aversion, attraction and repulsion, are all of
- them opposites, whether they are regarded as active or passive
- (for that makes no difference in the fact of their opposition)?
-
- Yes, he said, they are opposites.
-
- Well, I said, and hunger and thirst, and the desires in general,
- and again willing and wishing,--all these you would refer to the classes
- already mentioned. You would say--would you not?--that the soul
- of him who desires is seeking after the object of his desires;
- or that he is drawing to himself the thing which he wishes to possess:
- or again, when a person wants anything to be given him, his mind,
- longing for the realisation of his desires, intimates his wish to have it
- by a nod of assent, as if he had been asked a question?
-
- Very true.
-
- And what would you say of unwillingness and dislike and the absence
- of desire; should not these be referred to the opposite class
- of repulsion and rejection?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Admitting this to be true of desire generally, let us suppose
- a particular class of desires, and out of these we will select hunger
- and thirst, as they are termed, which are the most obvious of them?
-
- Let us take that class, he said.
-
- The object of one is food, and of the other drink?
-
- Yes.
-
- And here comes the point: is not thirst the desire which the soul has
- of drink, and of drink only; not of drink qualified by anything else;
- for example, warm or cold, or much or little, or, in a word,
- drink of any particular sort: but if the thirst be accompanied by heat,
- then the desire is of cold drink; or, if accompanied by cold,
- then of warm drink; or, if the thirst be excessive, then the drink
- which is desired will be excessive; or, if not great, the quantity
- of drink will also be small: but thirst pure and simple will desire
- drink pure and simple, which is the natural satisfaction of thirst,
- as food is of hunger?
-
- Yes, he said; the simple desire is, as you say, in every case
- of the simple object, and the qualified desire of the qualified object.
-
- But here a confusion may arise; and I should wish to guard against
- an opponent starting up and saying that no man desires drink only,
- but good drink, or food only, but good food; for good is the universal
- object of desire, and thirst being a desire, will necessarily be
- thirst after good drink; and the same is true of every other desire.
-
- Yes, he replied, the opponent might have something to say.
-
- Nevertheless I should still maintain, that of relatives
- some have a quality attached to either term of the relation;
- others are simple and have their correlatives simple.
-
- I do not know what you mean.
-
- Well, you know of course that the greater is relative to the less?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And the much greater to the much less?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the sometime greater to the sometime less, and the greater
- that is to be to the less that is to be?
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- And so of more and less, and of other correlative terms, such as
- the double and the half, or again, the heavier and the lighter,
- the swifter and the slower; and of hot and cold, and of any
- other relatives;--is not this true of all of them?
-
- Yes.
-
- And does not the same principle hold in the sciences? The object
- of science is knowledge (assuming that to be the true definition),
- but the object of a particular science is a particular kind of knowledge;
- I mean, for example, that the science of house-building is a kind
- of knowledge which is defined and distinguished from other kinds
- and is therefore termed architecture.
-
- Certainly.
-
- Because it has a particular quality which no other has?
-
- Yes.
-
- And it has this particular quality because it has an object
- of a particular kind; and this is true of the other arts and sciences?
-
- Yes.
-
- Now, then, if I have made myself clear, you will understand my
- original meaning in what I said about relatives. My meaning was,
- that if one term of a relation is taken alone, the other is
- taken alone; if one term is qualified, the other is also qualified.
- I do not mean to say that relatives may not be disparate, or that
- the science of health is healthy, or of disease necessarily diseased,
- or that the sciences of good and evil are therefore good and evil;
- but only that, when the term science is no longer used absolutely,
- but has a qualified object which in this case is the nature of health
- and disease, it becomes defined, and is hence called not merely science,
- but the science of medicine.
-
- I quite understand, and I think as you do.
-
- Would you not say that thirst is one of these essentially relative terms,
- having clearly a relation--
-
- Yes, thirst is relative to drink.
-
- And a certain kind of thirst is relative to a certain kind of drink;
- but thirst taken alone is neither of much nor little, nor of good nor bad,
- nor of any particular kind of drink, but of drink only?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then the soul of the thirsty one, in so far as he is thirsty,
- desires only drink; for this he yearns and tries to obtain it?
-
- That is plain.
-
- And if you suppose something which pulls a thirsty soul away
- from drink, that must be different from the thirsty principle
- which draws him like a beast to drink; for, as we were saying,
- the same thing cannot at the same time with the same part of itself
- act in contrary ways about the same.
-
- Impossible.
-
- No more than you can say that the hands of the archer push and pull
- the bow at the same time, but what you say is that one hand pushes
- and the other pulls.
-
- Exactly so, he replied.
-
- And might a man be thirsty, and yet unwilling to drink?
-
- Yes, he said, it constantly happens.
-
- And in such a case what is one to say? Would you not say that there
- was something in the soul bidding a man to drink, and something
- else forbidding him, which is other and stronger than the principle
- which bids him?
-
- I should say so.
-
- And the forbidding principle is derived from reason, and that
- which bids and attracts proceeds from passion and disease?
-
- Clearly.
-
- Then we may fairly assume that they are two, and that they differ
- from one another; the one with which man reasons, we may call
- the rational principle of the soul, the other, with which he loves
- and hungers and thirsts and feels the flutterings of any other desire,
- may be termed the irrational or appetitive, the ally of sundry
- pleasures and satisfactions?
-
- Yes, he said, we may fairly assume them to be different.
-
- Then let us finally determine that there are two principles existing
- in the soul. And what of passion, or spirit? Is it a third,
- or akin to one of the preceding?
-
- I should be inclined to say--akin to desire.
-
- Well, I said, there is a story which I remember to have heard, and in
- which I put faith. The story is, that Leontius, the son of Aglaion,
- coming up one day from the Piraeus, under the north wall on the outside,
- observed some dead bodies lying on the ground at the place of execution.
- He felt a desire to see them, and also a dread and abhorrence of them;
- for a time he struggled and covered his eyes, but at length
- the desire got the better of him; and forcing them open, he ran
- up to the dead bodies, saying, Look, ye wretches, take your fill
- of the fair sight.
-
- I have heard the story myself, he said.
-
- The moral of the tale is, that anger at times goes to war with desire,
- as though they were two distinct things.
-
- Yes; that is the meaning, he said.
-
- And are there not many other cases in which we observe that when a
- man's desires violently prevail over his reason, he reviles himself,
- and is angry at the violence within him, and that in this struggle,
- which is like the struggle of factions in a State, his spirit
- is on the side of his reason;--but for the passionate or spirited
- element to take part with the desires when reason that she should not
- be opposed, is a sort of thing which thing which I believe that you
- never observed occurring in yourself, nor, as I should imagine,
- in any one else?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Suppose that a man thinks he has done a wrong to another, the nobler
- he is the less able is he to feel indignant at any suffering,
- such as hunger, or cold, or any other pain which the injured person
- may inflict upon him--these he deems to be just, and, as I say,
- his anger refuses to be excited by them.
-
- True, he said.
-
- But when he thinks that he is the sufferer of the wrong, then he boils
- and chafes, and is on the side of what he believes to be justice;
- and because he suffers hunger or cold or other pain he is only
- the more determined to persevere and conquer. His noble spirit
- will not be quelled until he either slays or is slain; or until he
- hears the voice of the shepherd, that is, reason, bidding his dog
- bark no more.
-
- The illustration is perfect, he replied; and in our State,
- as we were saying, the auxiliaries were to be dogs, and to hear
- the voice of the rulers, who are their shepherds.
-
- I perceive, I said, that you quite understand me; there is,
- however, a further point which I wish you to consider.
-
- What point?
-
- You remember that passion or spirit appeared at first sight
- to be a kind of desire, but now we should say quite the contrary;
- for in the conflict of the soul spirit is arrayed on the side
- of the rational principle.
-
- Most assuredly.
-
- But a further question arises: Is passion different from
- reason also, or only a kind of reason; in which latter case,
- instead of three principles in the soul, there will only be two,
- the rational and the concupiscent; or rather, as the State was composed
- of three classes, traders, auxiliaries, counsellors, so may there
- not be in the individual soul a third element which is passion
- or spirit, and when not corrupted by bad education is the natural
- auxiliary of reason
-
- Yes, he said, there must be a third.
-
- Yes, I replied, if passion, which has already been shown to be
- different from desire, turn out also to be different from reason.
-
- But that is easily proved:--We may observe even in young children
- that they are full of spirit almost as soon as they are born,
- whereas some of them never seem to attain to the use of reason,
- and most of them late enough.
-
- Excellent, I said, and you may see passion equally in brute animals,
- which is a further proof of the truth of what you are saying.
- And we may once more appeal to the words of Homer, which have been
- already quoted by us,
-
- He smote his breast, and thus rebuked his soul,
-
- for in this verse Homer has clearly supposed the power which reasons
- about the better and worse to be different from the unreasoning
- anger which is rebuked by it.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- And so, after much tossing, we have reached land, and are fairly
- agreed that the same principles which exist in the State exist
- also in the individual, and that they are three in number.
-
- Exactly.
-
- Must we not then infer that the individual is wise in the same way,
- and in virtue of the same quality which makes the State wise?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Also that the same quality which constitutes courage in the State
- constitutes courage in the individual, and that both the State
- and the individual bear the same relation to all the other virtues?
-
- Assuredly.
-
- And the individual will be acknowledged by us to be just in the same
- way in which the State is just?
-
- That follows, of course.
-
- We cannot but remember that the justice of the State consisted
- in each of the three classes doing the work of its own class?
-
- We are not very likely to have forgotten, he said.
-
- We must recollect that the individual in whom the several qualities
- of his nature do their own work will be just, and will do his own work?
-
- Yes, he said, we must remember that too.
-
- And ought not the rational principle, which is wise, and has
- the care of the whole soul, to rule, and the passionate or spirited
- principle to be the subject and ally?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And, as we were saying, the united influence of music and gymnastic
- will bring them into accord, nerving and sustaining the reason
- with noble words and lessons, and moderating and soothing
- and civilizing the wildness of passion by harmony and rhythm?
-
- Quite true, he said.
-
- And these two, thus nurtured and educated, and having learned truly
- to know their own functions, will rule over the concupiscent,
- which in each of us is the largest part of the soul and by nature
- most insatiable of gain; over this they will keep guard, lest,
- waxing great and strong with the fulness of bodily pleasures,
- as they are termed, the concupiscent soul, no longer confined
- to her own sphere, should attempt to enslave and rule those who are
- not her natural-born subjects, and overturn the whole life of man?
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Both together will they not be the best defenders of the whole soul
- and the whole body against attacks from without; the one counselling,
- and the other fighting under his leader, and courageously executing
- his commands and counsels?
-
- True.
-
- And he is to be deemed courageous whose spirit retains in pleasure
- and in pain the commands of reason about what he ought or ought
- not to fear?
-
- Right, he replied.
-
- And him we call wise who has in him that little part which rules,
- and which proclaims these commands; that part too being supposed
- to have a knowledge of what is for the interest of each of the three
- parts and of the whole?
-
- Assuredly.
-
- And would you not say that he is temperate who has these same elements
- in friendly harmony, in whom the one ruling principle of reason,
- and the two subject ones of spirit and desire are equally agreed
- that reason ought to rule, and do not rebel?
-
- Certainly, he said, that is the true account of temperance whether
- in the State or individual.
-
- And surely, I said, we have explained again and again how and
- by virtue of what quality a man will be just.
-
- That is very certain.
-
- And is justice dimmer in the individual, and is her form different,
- or is she the same which we found her to be in the State?
-
- There is no difference in my opinion, he said.
-
- Because, if any doubt is still lingering in our minds, a few
- commonplace instances will satisfy us of the truth of what I am saying.
-
- What sort of instances do you mean?
-
- If the case is put to us, must we not admit that the just State,
- or the man who is trained in the principles of such a State, will be less
- likely than the unjust to make away with a deposit of gold or silver?
- Would any one deny this?
-
- No one, he replied.
-
- Will the just man or citizen ever be guilty of sacrilege or theft,
- or treachery either to his friends or to his country?
-
- Never.
-
- Neither will he ever break faith where there have been oaths
- or agreements?
-
- Impossible.
-
- No one will be less likely to commit adultery, or to dishonour
- his father and mother, or to fall in his religious duties?
-
- No one.
-
- And the reason is that each part of him is doing its own business,
- whether in ruling or being ruled?
-
- Exactly so.
-
- Are you satisfied then that the quality which makes such men
- and such states is justice, or do you hope to discover some other?
-
- Not I, indeed.
-
- Then our dream has been realised; and the suspicion which we
- entertained at the beginning of our work of construction, that some
- divine power must have conducted us to a primary form of justice,
- has now been verified?
-
- Yes, certainly.
-
- And the division of labour which required the carpenter and the shoemaker
- and the rest of the citizens to be doing each his own business,
- and not another's, was a shadow of justice, and for that reason
- it was of use?
-
- Clearly.
-
- But in reality justice was such as we were describing,
- being concerned however, not with the outward man, but with the inward,
- which is the true self and concernment of man: for the just man
- does not permit the several elements within him to interfere
- with one another, or any of them to do the work of others,--he sets
- in order his own inner life, and is his own master and his own law,
- and at peace with himself; and when he has bound together the three
- principles within him, which may be compared to the higher, lower,
- and middle notes of the scale, and the intermediate intervals--
- when he has bound all these together, and is no longer many, but has
- become one entirely temperate and perfectly adjusted nature, then he
- proceeds to act, if he has to act, whether in a matter of property,
- or in the treatment of the body, or in some affair of politics
- or private business; always thinking and calling that which preserves
- and co-operates with this harmonious condition, just and good action,
- and the knowledge which presides over it, wisdom, and that which
- at any time impairs this condition, he will call unjust action,
- and the opinion which presides over it ignorance.
-
- You have said the exact truth, Socrates.
-
- Very good; and if we were to affirm that we had discovered the just
- man and the just State, and the nature of justice in each of them,
- we should not be telling a falsehood?
-
- Most certainly not.
-
- May we say so, then?
-
- Let us say so.
-
- And now, I said, injustice has to be considered.
-
- Clearly.
-
- Must not injustice be a strife which arises among the three principles--
- a meddlesomeness, and interference, and rising up of a part
- of the soul against the whole, an assertion of unlawful authority,
- which is made by a rebellious subject against a true prince,
- of whom he is the natural vassal,--what is all this confusion and
- delusion but injustice, and intemperance and cowardice and ignorance,
- and every form of vice?
-
- Exactly so.
-
- And if the nature of justice and injustice be known, then the meaning
- of acting unjustly and being unjust, or, again, of acting justly,
- will also be perfectly clear?
-
- What do you mean? he said.
-
- Why, I said, they are like disease and health; being in the soul
- just what disease and health are in the body.
-
- How so? he said.
-
- Why, I said, that which is healthy causes health, and that which
- is unhealthy causes disease.
-
- Yes.
-
- And just actions cause justice, and unjust actions cause injustice?
-
- That is certain.
-
- And the creation of health is the institution of a natural order
- and government of one by another in the parts of the body;
- and the creation of disease is the production of a state of things
- at variance with this natural order?
-
- True.
-
- And is not the creation of justice the institution of a natural
- order and government of one by another in the parts of the soul,
- and the creation of injustice the production of a state of things
- at variance with the natural order?
-
- Exactly so, he said.
-
- Then virtue is the health and beauty and well-being of the soul,
- and vice the disease and weakness and deformity of the same?
-
- True.
-
- And do not good practices lead to virtue, and evil practices to vice?
-
- Assuredly.
-
- Still our old question of the comparative advantage of justice
- and injustice has not been answered: Which is the more profitable,
- to be just and act justly and practise virtue, whether seen
- or unseen of gods and men, or to be unjust and act unjustly,
- if only unpunished and unreformed?
-
- In my judgment, Socrates, the question has now become ridiculous.
- We know that, when the bodily constitution is gone, life is no
- longer endurable, though pampered with all kinds of meats and drinks,
- and having all wealth and all power; and shall we be told that when
- the very essence of the vital principle is undermined and corrupted,
- life is still worth having to a man, if only he be allowed to do
- whatever he likes with the single exception that he is not to
- acquire justice and virtue, or to escape from injustice and vice;
- assuming them both to be such as we have described?
-
- Yes, I said, the question is, as you say, ridiculous. Still, as we
- are near the spot at which we may see the truth in the clearest
- manner with our own eyes, let us not faint by the way.
-
- Certainly not, he replied.
-
- Come up hither, I said, and behold the various forms of vice,
- those of them, I mean, which are worth looking at.
-
- I am following you, he replied: proceed.
-
- I said, The argument seems to have reached a height from which,
- as from some tower of speculation, a man may look down and see
- that virtue is one, but that the forms of vice are innumerable;
- there being four special ones which are deserving of note.
-
- What do you mean? he said.
-
- I mean, I replied, that there appear to be as many forms of the soul
- as there are distinct forms of the State.
-
- How many?
-
- There are five of the State, and five of the soul, I said.
-
- What are they?
-
- The first, I said, is that which we have been describing,
- and which may be said to have two names, monarchy and aristocracy,
- accordingly as rule is exercised by one distinguished man or by many.
-
- True, he replied.
-
- But I regard the two names as describing one form only;
- for whether the government is in the hands of one or many,
- if the governors have been trained in the manner which we have supposed,
- the fundamental laws of the State will be maintained.
-
- That is true, he replied.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK V
-
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON - ADEIMANTUS
-
- SUCH is the good and true City or State, and the good and man
- is of the same pattern; and if this is right every other is wrong;
- and the evil is one which affects not only the ordering of the State,
- but also the regulation of the individual soul, and is exhibited in
- four forms.
-
- What are they? he said.
-
- I was proceeding to tell the order in which the four evil forms appeared
- to me to succeed one another, when Pole marchus, who was sitting
- a little way off, just beyond Adeimantus, began to whisper to him:
- stretching forth his hand, he took hold of the upper part of his
- coat by the shoulder, and drew him towards him, leaning forward
- himself so as to be quite close and saying something in his ear,
- of which I only caught the words, `Shall we let him off, or what shall
- we do?'
-
- Certainly not, said Adeimantus, raising his voice.
-
- Who is it, I said, whom you are refusing to let off?
-
- You, he said.
-
- I repeated, Why am I especially not to be let off?
-
- Why, he said, we think that you are lazy, and mean to cheat us
- out of a whole chapter which is a very important part of the story;
- and you fancy that we shall not notice your airy way of proceeding;
- as if it were self-evident to everybody, that in the matter of women
- and children `friends have all things in common.'
-
- And was I not right, Adeimantus?
-
- Yes, he said; but what is right in this particular case,
- like everything else, requires to be explained; for community may be of
- many kinds. Please, therefore, to say what sort of community you mean.
- We have been long expecting that you would tell us something about
- the family life of your citizens--how they will bring children into
- the world, and rear them when they have arrived, and, in general,
- what is the nature of this community of women and children-for we
- are of opinion that the right or wrong management of such matters
- will have a great and paramount influence on the State for good
- or for evil. And now, since the question is still undetermined,
- and you are taking in hand another State, we have resolved,
- as you heard, not to let you go until you give an account of all this.
-
- To that resolution, said Glaucon, you may regard me as saying Agreed.
-
- SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS - GLAUCON - THRASYMACHUS
-
- And without more ado, said Thrasymachus, you may consider us
- all to be equally agreed.
-
- I said, You know not what you are doing in thus assailing me:
- What an argument are you raising about the State! Just as I
- thought that I had finished, and was only too glad that I had
- laid this question to sleep, and was reflecting how fortunate I
- was in your acceptance of what I then said, you ask me to begin
- again at the very foundation, ignorant of what a hornet's nest
- of words you are stirring. Now I foresaw this gathering trouble,
- and avoided it.
-
- For what purpose do you conceive that we have come here,
- said Thrasymachus,--to look for gold, or to hear discourse?
-
- Yes, but discourse should have a limit.
-
- Yes, Socrates, said Glaucon, and the whole of life is the only limit
- which wise men assign to the hearing of such discourses. But never mind
- about us; take heart yourself and answer the question in your own way:
- What sort of community of women and children is this which is
- to prevail among our guardians? and how shall we manage the period
- between birth and education, which seems to require the greatest care?
- Tell us how these things will be.
-
- Yes, my simple friend, but the answer is the reverse of easy;
- many more doubts arise about this than about our previous conclusions.
- For the practicability of what is said may be doubted; and looked at
- in another point of view, whether the scheme, if ever so practicable,
- would be for the best, is also doubtful. Hence I feel a reluctance
- to approach the subject, lest our aspiration, my dear friend,
- should turn out to be a dream only.
-
- Fear not, he replied, for your audience will not be hard upon you;
- they are not sceptical or hostile.
-
- I said: My good friend, I suppose that you mean to encourage me
- by these words.
-
- Yes, he said.
-
- Then let me tell you that you are doing just the reverse;
- the encouragement which you offer would have been all very well
- had I myself believed that I knew what I was talking about:
- to declare the truth about matters of high interest which a man
- honours and loves among wise men who love him need occasion no fear
- or faltering in his mind; but to carry on an argument when you
- are yourself only a hesitating enquirer, which is my condition,
- is a dangerous and slippery thing; and the danger is not that I
- shall be laughed at (of which the fear would be childish),
- but that I shall miss the truth where I have most need to be sure
- of my footing, and drag my friends after me in my fall. And I pray
- Nemesis not to visit upon me the words which I am going to utter.
- For I do indeed believe that to be an involuntary homicide is a less
- crime than to be a deceiver about beauty or goodness or justice
- in the matter of laws. And that is a risk which I would rather
- run among enemies than among friends, and therefore you do well to
- encourage me.
-
- Glaucon laughed and said: Well then, Socrates, in case you
- and your argument do us any serious injury you shall be acquitted
- beforehand of the and shall not be held to be a deceiver;
- take courage then and speak.
-
- Well, I said, the law says that when a man is acquitted he is free
- from guilt, and what holds at law may hold in argument.
-
- Then why should you mind?
-
- Well, I replied, I suppose that I must retrace my steps and say
- what I perhaps ought to have said before in the proper place.
- The part of the men has been played out, and now properly enough
- comes the turn of the women. Of them I will proceed to speak,
- and the more readily since I am invited by you.
-
- For men born and educated like our citizens, the only way, in my opinion,
- of arriving at a right conclusion about the possession and use of women
- and children is to follow the path on which we originally started,
- when we said that the men were to be the guardians and watchdogs
- of the herd.
-
- True.
-
- Let us further suppose the birth and education of our women to be
- subject to similar or nearly similar regulations; then we shall
- see whether the result accords with our design.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- What I mean may be put into the form of a question, I said:
- Are dogs divided into hes and shes, or do they both share equally
- in hunting and in keeping watch and in the other duties of dogs? or do
- we entrust to the males the entire and exclusive care of the flocks,
- while we leave the females at home, under the idea that the bearing
- and suckling their puppies is labour enough for them?
-
- No, he said, they share alike; the only difference between them
- is that the males are stronger and the females weaker.
-
- But can you use different animals for the same purpose, unless they
- are bred and fed in the same way?
-
- You cannot.
-
- Then, if women are to have the same duties as men, they must
- have the same nurture and education?
-
- Yes.
-
- The education which was assigned to the men was music and gymnastic. Yes.
-
- Then women must be taught music and gymnastic and also the art of war,
- which they must practise like the men?
-
- That is the inference, I suppose.
-
- I should rather expect, I said, that several of our proposals,
- if they are carried out, being unusual, may appear ridiculous.
-
- No doubt of it.
-
- Yes, and the most ridiculous thing of all will be the sight of women
- naked in the palaestra, exercising with the men, especially when they
- are no longer young; they certainly will not be a vision of beauty,
- any more than the enthusiastic old men who in spite of wrinkles
- and ugliness continue to frequent the gymnasia.
-
- Yes, indeed, he said: according to present notions the proposal
- would be thought ridiculous.
-
- But then, I said, as we have determined to speak our minds,
- we must not fear the jests of the wits which will be directed
- against this sort of innovation; how they will talk of women's
- attainments both in music and gymnastic, and above all about
- their wearing armour and riding upon horseback!
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- Yet having begun we must go forward to the rough places of the law;
- at the same time begging of these gentlemen for once in their life
- to be serious. Not long ago, as we shall remind them, the Hellenes were
- of the opinion, which is still generally received among the barbarians,
- that the sight of a naked man was ridiculous and improper;
- and when first the Cretans and then the Lacedaemonians introduced
- the custom, the wits of that day might equally have ridiculed
- the innovation.
-
- No doubt.
-
- But when experience showed that to let all things be uncovered was far
- better than to cover them up, and the ludicrous effect to the outward
- eye vanished before the better principle which reason asserted,
- then the man was perceived to be a fool who directs the shafts
- of his ridicule at any other sight but that of folly and vice,
- or seriously inclines to weigh the beautiful by any other standard
- but that of the good.
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- First, then, whether the question is to be put in jest or in earnest,
- let us come to an understanding about the nature of woman: Is she
- capable of sharing either wholly or partially in the actions of men,
- or not at all? And is the art of war one of those arts in which she can
- or can not share? That will be the best way of commencing the enquiry,
- and will probably lead to the fairest conclusion.
-
- That will be much the best way.
-
- Shall we take the other side first and begin by arguing against ourselves;
- in this manner the adversary's position will not be undefended.
-
- Why not? he said.
-
- Then let us put a speech into the mouths of our opponents. They will say:
- `Socrates and Glaucon, no adversary need convict you, for you yourselves,
- at the first foundation of the State, admitted the principle
- that everybody was to do the one work suited to his own nature.'
- And certainly, if I am not mistaken, such an admission was made by us.
- `And do not the natures of men and women differ very much indeed?'
- And we shall reply: Of course they do. Then we shall be asked,
- `Whether the tasks assigned to men and to women should not
- be different, and such as are agreeable to their different natures?'
- Certainly they should. `But if so, have you not fallen into a
- serious inconsistency in saying that men and women, whose natures
- are so entirely different, ought to perform the same actions?'--
- What defence will you make for us, my good Sir, against any one who offers
- these objections?
-
- That is not an easy question to answer when asked suddenly;
- and I shall and I do beg of you to draw out the case on our side.
-
- These are the objections, Glaucon, and there are many others of a like kind,
- which I foresaw long ago; they made me afraid and reluctant to take
- in hand any law about the possession and nurture of women and children.
-
- By Zeus, he said, the problem to be solved is anything but easy.
-
- Why yes, I said, but the fact is that when a man is out of his depth,
- whether he has fallen into a little swimming bath or into mid-ocean,
- he has to swim all the same.
-
- Very true.
-
- And must not we swim and try to reach the shore: we will hope
- that Arion's dolphin or some other miraculous help may save us?
-
- I suppose so, he said.
-
- Well then, let us see if any way of escape can be found.
- We acknowledged--did we not? that different natures ought to have
- different pursuits, and that men's and women's natures are different.
- And now what are we saying?--that different natures ought to have
- the same pursuits,--this is the inconsistency which is charged
- upon us.
-
- Precisely.
-
- Verily, Glaucon, I said, glorious is the power of the art of contradiction!
-
- Why do you say so?
-
- Because I think that many a man falls into the practice against his will.
- When he thinks that he is reasoning he is really disputing,
- just because he cannot define and divide, and so know that of which
- he is speaking; and he will pursue a merely verbal opposition
- in the spirit of contention and not of fair discussion.
-
- Yes, he replied, such is very often the case; but what has
- that to do with us and our argument?
-
- A great deal; for there is certainly a danger of our getting
- unintentionally into a verbal opposition.
-
- In what way?
-
- Why, we valiantly and pugnaciously insist upon the verbal truth,
- that different natures ought to have different pursuits, but we
- never considered at all what was the meaning of sameness or difference
- of nature, or why we distinguished them when we assigned different
- pursuits to different natures and the same to the same natures.
-
- Why, no, he said, that was never considered by us.
-
- I said: Suppose that by way of illustration we were to ask
- the question whether there is not an opposition in nature between
- bald men and hairy men; and if this is admitted by us, then, if bald
- men are cobblers, we should forbid the hairy men to be cobblers,
- and conversely?
-
- That would be a jest, he said.
-
- Yes, I said, a jest; and why? because we never meant when we
- constructed the State, that the opposition of natures should extend
- to every difference, but only to those differences which affected
- the pursuit in which the individual is engaged; we should have argued,
- for example, that a physician and one who is in mind a physician
- may be said to have the same nature.
-
- True.
-
- Whereas the physician and the carpenter have different natures?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And if, I said, the male and female sex appear to differ in
- their fitness for any art or pursuit, we should say that such
- pursuit or art ought to be assigned to one or the other of them;
- but if the difference consists only in women bearing and men
- begetting children, this does not amount to a proof that a woman differs
- from a man in respect of the sort of education she should receive;
- and we shall therefore continue to maintain that our guardians
- and their wives ought to have the same pursuits.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Next, we shall ask our opponent how, in reference to any of the pursuits
- or arts of civic life, the nature of a woman differs from that of a man?
-
- That will be quite fair.
-
- And perhaps he, like yourself, will reply that to give a sufficient
- answer on the instant is not easy; but after a little reflection
- there is no difficulty.
-
- Yes, perhaps.
-
- Suppose then that we invite him to accompany us in the argument,
- and then we may hope to show him that there is nothing peculiar in
- the constitution of women which would affect them in the administration
- of the State.
-
- By all means.
-
- Let us say to him: Come now, and we will ask you a question:--
- when you spoke of a nature gifted or not gifted in any respect,
- did you mean to say that one man will acquire a thing easily,
- another with difficulty; a little learning will lead the one to discover
- a great deal; whereas the other, after much study and application,
- no sooner learns than he forgets; or again, did you mean,
- that the one has a body which is a good servant to his mind,
- while the body of the other is a hindrance to him?-would not these be
- the sort of differences which distinguish the man gifted by nature
- from the one who is ungifted?
-
- No one will deny that.
-
- And can you mention any pursuit of mankind in which the male sex
- has not all these gifts and qualities in a higher degree than
- the female? Need I waste time in speaking of the art of weaving,
- and the management of pancakes and preserves, in which womankind
- does really appear to be great, and in which for her to be beaten
- by a man is of all things the most absurd?
-
- You are quite right, he replied, in maintaining the general
- inferiority of the female sex: although many women are in many
- things superior to many men, yet on the whole what you say is true.
-
- And if so, my friend, I said, there is no special faculty of
- administration in a state which a woman has because she is a woman,
- or which a man has by virtue of his sex, but the gifts of nature
- are alike diffused in both; all the pursuits of men are the pursuits
- of women also, but in all of them a woman is inferior to a man.
-
- Very true.
-
- Then are we to impose all our enactments on men and none of them
- on women?
-
- That will never do.
-
- One woman has a gift of healing, another not; one is a musician,
- and another has no music in her nature?
-
- Very true.
-
- And one woman has a turn for gymnastic and military exercises,
- and another is unwarlike and hates gymnastics?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And one woman is a philosopher, and another is an enemy of philosophy;
- one has spirit, and another is without spirit?
-
- That is also true.
-
- Then one woman will have the temper of a guardian, and another not.
- Was not the selection of the male guardians determined by differences
- of this sort?
-
- Yes.
-
- Men and women alike possess the qualities which make a guardian;
- they differ only in their comparative strength or weakness.
-
- Obviously.
-
- And those women who have such qualities are to be selected as
- the companions and colleagues of men who have similar qualities
- and whom they resemble in capacity and in character?
-
- Very true.
-
- And ought not the same natures to have the same pursuits?
-
- They ought.
-
- Then, as we were saying before, there is nothing unnatural
- in assigning music and gymnastic to the wives of the guardians--
- to that point we come round again.
-
- Certainly not.
-
- The law which we then enacted was agreeable to nature, and therefore
- not an impossibility or mere aspiration; and the contrary practice,
- which prevails at present, is in reality a violation of nature.
-
- That appears to be true.
-
- We had to consider, first, whether our proposals were possible,
- and secondly whether they were the most beneficial?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the possibility has been acknowledged?
-
- Yes.
-
- The very great benefit has next to be established?
-
- Quite so.
-
- You will admit that the same education which makes a man a good
- guardian will make a woman a good guardian; for their original
- nature is the same?
-
- Yes.
-
- I should like to ask you a question.
-
- What is it?
-
- Would you say that all men are equal in excellence, or is one man
- better than another?
-
- The latter.
-
- And in the commonwealth which we were founding do you conceive
- the guardians who have been brought up on our model system to be
- more perfect men, or the cobblers whose education has been cobbling?
-
- What a ridiculous question!
-
- You have answered me, I replied: Well, and may we not further say
- that our guardians are the best of our citizens?
-
- By far the best.
-
- And will not their wives be the best women?
-
- Yes, by far the best.
-
- And can there be anything better for the interests of the State
- than that the men and women of a State should be as good as possible?
-
- There can be nothing better.
-
- And this is what the arts of music and gymnastic, when present
- in such manner as we have described, will accomplish?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then we have made an enactment not only possible but in the highest
- degree beneficial to the State?
-
- True.
-
- Then let the wives of our guardians strip, for their virtue will be
- their robe, and let them share in the toils of war and the defence
- of their country; only in the distribution of labours the lighter
- are to be assigned to the women, who are the weaker natures,
- but in other respects their duties are to be the same.
- And as for the man who laughs at naked women exercising their bodies
- from the best of motives, in his laughter he is plucking
-
- A fruit of unripe wisdom,
-
- and he himself is ignorant of what he is laughing at, or what he
- is about;--for that is, and ever will be, the best of sayings,
- That the useful is the noble and the hurtful is the base.
-
- Very true.
-
- Here, then, is one difficulty in our law about women, which we
- may say that we have now escaped; the wave has not swallowed us up
- alive for enacting that the guardians of either sex should have all
- their pursuits in common; to the utility and also to the possibility
- of this arrangement the consistency of the argument with itself
- bears witness.
-
- Yes, that was a mighty wave which you have escaped.
-
- Yes, I said, but a greater is coming; you will of this when you
- see the next.
-
- Go on; let me see.
-
- The law, I said, which is the sequel of this and of all that
- has preceded, is to the following effect,--'that the wives of our
- guardians are to be common, and their children are to be common,
- and no parent is to know his own child, nor any child his parent.'
-
- Yes, he said, that is a much greater wave than the other;
- and the possibility as well as the utility of such a law are far
- more questionable.
-
- I do not think, I said, that there can be any dispute about
- the very great utility of having wives and children in common;
- the possibility is quite another matter, and will be very much disputed.
-
- I think that a good many doubts may be raised about both.
-
- You imply that the two questions must be combined, I replied.
- Now I meant that you should admit the utility; and in this way,
- as I thought; I should escape from one of them, and then there would
- remain only the possibility.
-
- But that little attempt is detected, and therefore you will please
- to give a defence of both.
-
- Well, I said, I submit to my fate. Yet grant me a little favour:
- let me feast my mind with the dream as day dreamers are in
- the habit of feasting themselves when they are walking alone;
- for before they have discovered any means of effecting their wishes--
- that is a matter which never troubles them--they would rather
- not tire themselves by thinking about possibilities; but assuming
- that what they desire is already granted to them, they proceed
- with their plan, and delight in detailing what they mean to do
- when their wish has come true--that is a way which they have of
- not doing much good to a capacity which was never good for much.
- Now I myself am beginning to lose heart, and I should like,
- with your permission, to pass over the question of possibility
- at present. Assuming therefore the possibility of the proposal,
- I shall now proceed to enquire how the rulers will carry out
- these arrangements, and I shall demonstrate that our plan, if executed,
- will be of the greatest benefit to the State and to the guardians.
- First of all, then, if you have no objection, I will endeavour with
- your help to consider the advantages of the measure; and hereafter
- the question of possibility.
-
- I have no objection; proceed.
-
- First, I think that if our rulers and their auxiliaries are to be
- worthy of the name which they bear, there must be willingness
- to obey in the one and the power of command in the other;
- the guardians must themselves obey the laws, and they must also imitate
- the spirit of them in any details which are entrusted to their care.
-
- That is right, he said.
-
- You, I said, who are their legislator, having selected the men,
- will now select the women and give them to them;--they must be
- as far as possible of like natures with them; and they must live
- in common houses and meet at common meals, None of them will have
- anything specially his or her own; they will be together, and will
- be brought up together, and will associate at gymnastic exercises.
- And so they will be drawn by a necessity of their natures to have
- intercourse with each other--necessity is not too strong a word,
- I think?
-
- Yes, he said;--necessity, not geometrical, but another sort
- of necessity which lovers know, and which is far more convincing
- and constraining to the mass of mankind.
-
- True, I said; and this, Glaucon, like all the rest, must proceed
- after an orderly fashion; in a city of the blessed, licentiousness is
- an unholy thing which the rulers will forbid.
-
- Yes, he said, and it ought not to be permitted.
-
- Then clearly the next thing will be to make matrimony sacred in
- the highest degree, and what is most beneficial will be deemed sacred?
-
- Exactly.
-
- And how can marriages be made most beneficial?--that is a question
- which I put to you, because I see in your house dogs for hunting,
- and of the nobler sort of birds not a few. Now, I beseech you,
- do tell me, have you ever attended to their pairing and breeding?
-
- In what particulars?
-
- Why, in the first place, although they are all of a good sort,
- are not some better than others?
-
- True.
-
- And do you breed from them all indifferently, or do you take care
- to breed from the best only?
-
- From the best.
-
- And do you take the oldest or the youngest, or only those of ripe age?
-
- I choose only those of ripe age.
-
- And if care was not taken in the breeding, your dogs and birds
- would greatly deteriorate?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And the same of horses and animals in general?
-
- Undoubtedly.
-
- Good heavens! my dear friend, I said, what consummate skill will
- our rulers need if the same principle holds of the human species!
-
- Certainly, the same principle holds; but why does this involve
- any particular skill?
-
- Because, I said, our rulers will often have to practise upon
- the body corporate with medicines. Now you know that when patients
- do not require medicines, but have only to be put under a regimen,
- the inferior sort of practitioner is deemed to be good enough;
- but when medicine has to be given, then the doctor should be more of
- a man.
-
- That is quite true, he said; but to what are you alluding?
-
- I mean, I replied, that our rulers will find a considerable dose
- of falsehood and deceit necessary for the good of their subjects:
- we were saying that the use of all these things regarded as medicines
- might be of advantage.
-
- And we were very right.
-
- And this lawful use of them seems likely to be often needed
- in the regulations of marriages and births.
-
- How so?
-
- Why, I said, the principle has been already laid down that the best
- of either sex should be united with the best as often, and the inferior
- with the inferior, as seldom as possible; and that they should rear
- the offspring of the one sort of union, but not of the other,
- if the flock is to be maintained in first-rate condition.
- Now these goings on must be a secret which the rulers only know,
- or there will be a further danger of our herd, as the guardians may
- be termed, breaking out into rebellion.
-
- Very true.
-
- Had we not better appoint certain festivals at which we will bring
- together the brides and bridegrooms, and sacrifices will be offered
- and suitable hymeneal songs composed by our poets: the number
- of weddings is a matter which must be left to the discretion of
- the rulers, whose aim will be to preserve the average of population?
- There are many other things which they will have to consider,
- such as the effects of wars and diseases and any similar agencies,
- in order as far as this is possible to prevent the State from becoming
- either too large or too small.
-
- Certainly, he replied.
-
- We shall have to invent some ingenious kind of lots which the less
- worthy may draw on each occasion of our bringing them together,
- and then they will accuse their own ill-luck and not the rulers.
-
- To be sure, he said.
-
- And I think that our braver and better youth, besides their other
- honours and rewards, might have greater facilities of intercourse
- with women given them; their bravery will be a reason, and such
- fathers ought to have as many sons as possible.
-
- True.
-
- And the proper officers, whether male or female or both, for offices
- are to be held by women as well as by men--
-
- Yes--
-
- The proper officers will take the offspring of the good parents to
- the pen or fold, and there they will deposit them with certain nurses
- who dwell in a separate quarter; but the offspring of the inferior,
- or of the better when they chance to be deformed, will be put away
- in some mysterious, unknown place, as they should be.
-
- Yes, he said, that must be done if the breed of the guardians
- is to be kept pure.
-
- They will provide for their nurture, and will bring the mothers
- to the fold when they are full of milk, taking the greatest possible
- care that no mother recognizes her own child; and other wet-nurses
- may be engaged if more are required. Care will also be taken
- that the process of suckling shall not be protracted too long;
- and the mothers will have no getting up at night or other trouble,
- but will hand over all this sort of thing to the nurses and attendants.
-
- You suppose the wives of our guardians to have a fine easy time
- of it when they are having children.
-
- Why, said I, and so they ought. Let us, however, proceed with our scheme.
- We were saying that the parents should be in the prime of life?
-
- Very true.
-
- And what is the prime of life? May it not be defined as a period
- of about twenty years in a woman's life, and thirty in a man's?
-
- Which years do you mean to include?
-
- A woman, I said, at twenty years of age may begin to bear
- children to the State, and continue to bear them until forty;
- a man may begin at five-and-twenty, when he has passed the point
- at which the pulse of life beats quickest, and continue to beget
- children until he be fifty-five.
-
- Certainly, he said, both in men and women those years are the prime
- of physical as well as of intellectual vigour.
-
- Any one above or below the prescribed ages who takes part in the public
- hymeneals shall be said to have done an unholy and unrighteous thing;
- the child of which he is the father, if it steals into life,
- will have been conceived under auspices very unlike the sacrifices
- and prayers, which at each hymeneal priestesses and priest and
- the whole city will offer, that the new generation may be better
- and more useful than their good and useful parents, whereas his
- child will be the offspring of darkness and strange lust.
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- And the same law will apply to any one of those within the prescribed
- age who forms a connection with any woman in the prime of life
- without the sanction of the rulers; for we shall say that he
- is raising up a bastard to the State, uncertified and unconsecrated.
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- This applies, however, only to those who are within the specified age:
- after that we allow them to range at will, except that a man
- may not marry his daughter or his daughter's daughter, or his
- mother or his mother's mother; and women, on the other hand,
- are prohibited from marrying their sons or fathers, or son's son
- or father's father, and so on in either direction. And we grant
- all this, accompanying the permission with strict orders to prevent
- any embryo which may come into being from seeing the light;
- and if any force a way to the birth, the parents must understand
- that the offspring of such an union cannot be maintained,
- and arrange accordingly.
-
- That also, he said, is a reasonable proposition. But how will they
- know who are fathers and daughters, and so on?
-
- They will never know. The way will be this:--dating from the day
- of the hymeneal, the bridegroom who was then married will call
- all the male children who are born in the seventh and tenth month
- afterwards his sons, and the female children his daughters, and they
- will call him father, and he will call their children his grandchildren,
- and they will call the elder generation grandfathers and grandmothers.
- All who were begotten at the time when their fathers and mothers
- came together will be called their brothers and sisters, and these,
- as I was saying, will be forbidden to inter-marry. This, however,
- is not to be understood as an absolute prohibition of the marriage
- of brothers and sisters; if the lot favours them, and they receive
- the sanction of the Pythian oracle, the law will allow them.
-
- Quite right, he replied.
-
- Such is the scheme, Glaucon, according to which the guardians
- of our State are to have their wives and families in common.
- And now you would have the argument show that this community is consistent
- with the rest of our polity, and also that nothing can be better--
- would you not?
-
- Yes, certainly.
-
- Shall we try to find a common basis by asking of ourselves
- what ought to be the chief aim of the legislator in making laws
- and in the organization of a State,--what is the greatest I good,
- and what is the greatest evil, and then consider whether our previous
- description has the stamp of the good or of the evil?
-
- By all means.
-
- Can there be any greater evil than discord and distraction and plurality
- where unity ought to reign? or any greater good than the bond of unity?
-
- There cannot.
-
- And there is unity where there is community of pleasures and pains--
- where all the citizens are glad or grieved on the same occasions of joy
- and sorrow?
-
- No doubt.
-
- Yes; and where there is no common but only private feeling a State
- is disorganized--when you have one half of the world triumphing
- and the other plunged in grief at the same events happening
- to the city or the citizens?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Such differences commonly originate in a disagreement about the use
- of the terms `mine' and `not mine,' `his' and `not his.'
-
- Exactly so.
-
- And is not that the best-ordered State in which the greatest number
- of persons apply the terms `mine' and `not mine' in the same way
- to the same thing?
-
- Quite true.
-
- Or that again which most nearly approaches to the condition
- of the individual--as in the body, when but a finger of one of us
- is hurt, the whole frame, drawn towards the soul as a center and
- forming one kingdom under the ruling power therein, feels the hurt
- and sympathizes all together with the part affected, and we say
- that the man has a pain in his finger; and the same expression
- is used about any other part of the body, which has a sensation
- of pain at suffering or of pleasure at the alleviation of suffering.
-
- Very true, he replied; and I agree with you that in the best-ordered
- State there is the nearest approach to this common feeling
- which you describe.
-
- Then when any one of the citizens experiences any good or evil,
- the whole State will make his case their own, and will either rejoice
- or sorrow with him?
-
- Yes, he said, that is what will happen in a well-ordered State.
-
- It will now be time, I said, for us to return to our State and see
- whether this or some other form is most in accordance with these
- fundamental principles.
-
- Very good.
-
- Our State like every other has rulers and subjects?
-
- True.
-
- All of whom will call one another citizens?
-
- Of course.
-
- But is there not another name which people give to their rulers
- in other States?
-
- Generally they call them masters, but in democratic States they
- simply call them rulers.
-
- And in our State what other name besides that of citizens
- do the people give the rulers?
-
- They are called saviours and helpers, he replied.
-
- And what do the rulers call the people?
-
- Their maintainers and foster-fathers.
-
- And what do they call them in other States?
-
- Slaves.
-
- And what do the rulers call one another in other States?
-
- Fellow-rulers.
-
- And what in ours?
-
- Fellow-guardians.
-
- Did you ever know an example in any other State of a ruler who would speak
- of one of his colleagues as his friend and of another as not being his friend?
-
- Yes, very often.
-
- And the friend he regards and describes as one in whom he has
- an interest, and the other as a stranger in whom he has no interest?
-
- Exactly.
-
- But would any of your guardians think or speak of any other guardian
- as a stranger?
-
- Certainly he would not; for every one whom they meet will be
- regarded by them either as a brother or sister, or father or mother,
- or son or daughter, or as the child or parent of those who are thus
- connected with him.
-
- Capital, I said; but let me ask you once more: Shall they be a family
- in name only; or shall they in all their actions be true to the name?
- For example, in the use of the word `father,' would the care of a
- father be implied and the filial reverence and duty and obedience
- to him which the law commands; and is the violator of these duties
- to be regarded as an impious and unrighteous person who is not
- likely to receive much good either at the hands of God or of man?
- Are these to be or not to be the strains which the children will hear
- repeated in their ears by all the citizens about those who are intimated
- to them to be their parents and the rest of their kinsfolk?
-
- These, he said, and none other; for what can be more ridiculous
- than for them to utter the names of family ties with the lips
- only and not to act in the spirit of them?
-
- Then in our city the language of harmony and concord will be more
- often beard than in any other. As I was describing before, when any
- one is well or ill, the universal word will be with me `it is well'
- or `it is ill.'
-
- Most true.
-
- And agreeably to this mode of thinking and speaking, were we not
- saying that they will have their pleasures and pains in common?
-
- Yes, and so they will.
-
- And they will have a common interest in the same thing which they
- will alike call `my own,' and having this common interest they
- will have a common feeling of pleasure and pain?
-
- Yes, far more so than in other States.
-
- And the reason of this, over and above the general constitution
- of the State, will be that the guardians will have a community
- of women and children?
-
- That will be the chief reason.
-
- And this unity of feeling we admitted to be the greatest good,
- as was implied in our own comparison of a well-ordered State to
- the relation of the body and the members, when affected by pleasure
- or pain?
-
- That we acknowledged, and very rightly.
-
- Then the community of wives and children among our citizens
- is clearly the source of the greatest good to the State?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And this agrees with the other principle which we were affirming,--
- that the guardians were not to have houses or lands or any other property;
- their pay was to be their food, which they were to receive from
- the other citizens, and they were to have no private expenses;
- for we intended them to preserve their true character of guardians.
-
- Right, he replied.
-
- Both the community of property and the community of families,
- as I am saying, tend to make them more truly guardians; they will not
- tear the city in pieces by differing about `mine' and `not mine;'
- each man dragging any acquisition which he has made into a separate
- house of his own, where he has a separate wife and children and private
- pleasures and pains; but all will be affected as far as may be
- by the same pleasures and pains because they are all of one opinion
- about what is near and dear to them, and therefore they all tend
- towards a common end.
-
- Certainly, he replied.
-
- And as they have nothing but their persons which they can call
- their own, suits and complaints will have no existence among them;
- they will be delivered from all those quarrels of which money or
- children or relations are the occasion.
-
- Of course they will.
-
- Neither will trials for assault or insult ever be likely
- to occur among them. For that equals should defend themselves
- against equals we shall maintain to be honourable and right;
- we shall make the protection of the person a matter of necessity.
-
- That is good, he said.
-
- Yes; and there is a further good in the law; viz. that if a man has
- a quarrel with another he will satisfy his resentment then and there,
- and not proceed to more dangerous lengths.
-
- Certainly.
-
- To the elder shall be assigned the duty of ruling and chastising
- the younger.
-
- Clearly.
-
- Nor can there be a doubt that the younger will not strike or do any
- other violence to an elder, unless the magistrates command him;
- nor will he slight him in any way. For there are two guardians,
- shame and fear, mighty to prevent him: shame, which makes men
- refrain from laying hands on those who are to them in the relation
- of parents; fear, that the injured one will be succoured by the others
- who are his brothers, sons, one wi fathers.
-
- That is true, he replied.
-
- Then in every way the laws will help the citizens to keep the peace
- with one another?
-
- Yes, there will be no want of peace.
-
- And as the guardians will never quarrel among themselves there
- will be no danger of the rest of the city being divided either
- against them or against one another.
-
- None whatever.
-
- I hardly like even to mention the little meannesses of which they
- will be rid, for they are beneath notice: such, for example,
- as the flattery of the rich by the poor, and all the pains and pangs
- which men experience in bringing up a family, and in finding money
- to buy necessaries for their household, borrowing and then repudiating,
- getting how they can, and giving the money into the hands of women
- and slaves to keep--the many evils of so many kinds which people
- suffer in this way are mean enough and obvious enough, and not worth
- speaking of.
-
- Yes, he said, a man has no need of eyes in order to perceive that.
-
- And from all these evils they will be delivered, and their life
- will be blessed as the life of Olympic victors and yet more blessed.
-
- How so?
-
- The Olympic victor, I said, is deemed happy in receiving a part
- only of the blessedness which is secured to our citizens,
- who have won a more glorious victory and have a more complete
- maintenance at the public cost. For the victory which they have won
- is the salvation of the whole State; and the crown with which they
- and their children are crowned is the fulness of all that life needs;
- they receive rewards from the hands of their country while living,
- and after death have an honourable burial.
-
- Yes, he said, and glorious rewards they are.
-
- Do you remember, I said, how in the course of the previous discussion
- some one who shall be nameless accused us of making our guardians unhappy--
- they had nothing and might have possessed all things-to whom we
- replied that, if an occasion offered, we might perhaps hereafter
- consider this question, but that, as at present advised, we would make
- our guardians truly guardians, and that we were fashioning the State
- with a view to the greatest happiness, not of any particular class,
- but of the whole?
-
- Yes, I remember.
-
- And what do you say, now that the life of our protectors is made
- out to be far better and nobler than that of Olympic victors--
- is the life of shoemakers, or any other artisans, or of husbandmen,
- to be compared with it?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- At the same time I ought here to repeat what I have said elsewhere,
- that if any of our guardians shall try to be happy in such a manner
- that he will cease to be a guardian, and is not content with this safe
- and harmonious life, which, in our judgment, is of all lives the best,
- but infatuated by some youthful conceit of happiness which gets up
- into his head shall seek to appropriate the whole State to himself,
- then he will have to learn how wisely Hesiod spoke, when he said,
- `half is more than the whole.'
-
- If he were to consult me, I should say to him: Stay where you are,
- when you have the offer of such a life.
-
- You agree then, I said, that men and women are to have a common way
- of life such as we have described--common education, common children;
- and they are to watch over the citizens in common whether abiding
- in the city or going out to war; they are to keep watch together,
- and to hunt together like dogs; and always and in all things,
- as far as they are able, women are to share with the men?
- And in so doing they will do what is best, and will not violate,
- but preserve the natural relation of the sexes.
-
- I agree with you, he replied.
-
- The enquiry, I said, has yet to be made, whether such a community
- be found possible--as among other animals, so also among men--
- and if possible, in what way possible?
-
- You have anticipated the question which I was about to suggest.
-
- There is no difficulty, I said, in seeing how war will be carried
- on by them.
-
- How?
-
- Why, of course they will go on expeditions together; and will take
- with them any of their children who are strong enough, that, after the
- manner of the artisan's child, they may look on at the work which they
- will have to do when they are grown up; and besides looking on they
- will have to help and be of use in war, and to wait upon their fathers
- and mothers. Did you never observe in the arts how the potters'
- boys look on and help, long before they touch the wheel?
-
- Yes, I have.
-
- And shall potters be more careful in educating their children
- and in giving them the opportunity of seeing and practising
- their duties than our guardians will be?
-
- The idea is ridiculous, he said.
-
- There is also the effect on the parents, with whom, as with other animals,
- the presence of their young ones will be the greatest incentive to valour.
-
- That is quite true, Socrates; and yet if they are defeated,
- which may often happen in war, how great the danger is! the children
- will be lost as well as their parents, and the State will never recover.
-
- True, I said; but would you never allow them to run any risk?
-
- I am far from saying that.
-
- Well, but if they are ever to run a risk should they not do so on
- some occasion when, if they escape disaster, they will be the better
- for it?
-
- Clearly.
-
- Whether the future soldiers do or do not see war in the days
- of their youth is a very important matter, for the sake
- of which some risk may fairly be incurred.
-
- Yes, very important.
-
- This then must be our first step,--to make our children spectators of war;
- but we must also contrive that they shall be secured against danger;
- then all will be well.
-
- True.
-
- Their parents may be supposed not to be blind to the risks of war,
- but to know, as far as human foresight can, what expeditions are safe
- and what dangerous?
-
- That may be assumed.
-
- And they will take them on the safe expeditions and be cautious
- about the dangerous ones?
-
- True.
-
- And they will place them under the command of experienced veterans
- who will be their leaders and teachers?
-
- Very properly.
-
- Still, the dangers of war cannot be always foreseen; there is
- a good deal of chance about them?
-
- True.
-
- Then against such chances the children must be at once furnished
- with wings, in order that in the hour of need they may fly away
- and escape.
-
- What do you mean? he said.
-
- I mean that we must mount them on horses in their earliest youth,
- and when they have learnt to ride, take them on horseback to see war:
- the horses must be spirited and warlike, but the most tractable
- and yet the swiftest that can be had. In this way they will get
- an excellent view of what is hereafter to be their own business;
- and if there is danger they have only to follow their elder leaders
- and escape.
-
- I believe that you are right, he said.
-
- Next, as to war; what are to be the relations of your soldiers
- to one another and to their enemies? I should be inclined to propose
- that the soldier who leaves his rank or throws away his arms,
- or is guilty of any other act of cowardice, should be degraded
- into the rank of a husbandman or artisan. What do you think?
-
- By all means, I should say.
-
- And he who allows himself to be taken prisoner may as well be made
- a present of to his enemies; he is their lawful prey, and let them
- do what they like with him.
-
- Certainly.
-
- But the hero who has distinguished himself, what shall be done to him?
- In the first place, he shall receive honour in the army from his
- youthful comrades; every one of them in succession shall crown him.
- What do you say?
-
- I approve.
-
- And what do you say to his receiving the right hand of fellowship?
-
- To that too, I agree.
-
- But you will hardly agree to my next proposal.
-
- What is your proposal?
-
- That he should kiss and be kissed by them.
-
- Most certainly, and I should be disposed to go further, and say:
- Let no one whom he has a mind to kiss refuse to be kissed by him
- while the expedition lasts. So that if there be a lover in the army,
- whether his love be youth or maiden, he may be more eager to win
- the prize of valour.
-
- Capital, I said. That the brave man is to have more wives than others has
- been already determined: and he is to have first choices in such matters
- more than others, in order that he may have as many children as possible?
-
- Agreed.
-
- Again, there is another manner in which, according to Homer,
- brave youths should be honoured; for he tells how Ajax, after he
- had distinguished himself in battle, was rewarded with long chines,
- which seems to be a compliment appropriate to a hero in the flower
- of his age, being not only a tribute of honour but also a very
- strengthening thing.
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- Then in this, I said, Homer shall be our teacher; and we too,
- at sacrifices and on the like occasions, will honour the brave
- according to the measure of their valour, whether men or women,
- with hymns and those other distinctions which we were mentioning;
- also with
-
- seats of precedence, and meats and full cups;
-
- and in honouring them, we shall be at the same time training them.
-
- That, he replied, is excellent.
-
- Yes, I said; and when a man dies gloriously in war shall we not say,
- in the first place, that he is of the golden race?
-
- To be sure.
-
- Nay, have we not the authority of Hesiod for affirming that when
- they are dead
-
- They are holy angels upon the earth, authors of good,
- averters of evil, the guardians of speech-gifted men?
-
- Yes; and we accept his authority.
-
- We must learn of the god how we are to order the sepulture of divine
- and heroic personages, and what is to be their special distinction
- and we must do as he bids?
-
- By all means.
-
- And in ages to come we will reverence them and knee. before their
- sepulchres as at the graves of heroes. And not only they but any
- who are deemed pre-eminently good, whether they die from age,
- or in any other way, shall be admitted to the same honours.
-
- That is very right, he said.
-
- Next, how shall our soldiers treat their enemies? What about this?
-
- In what respect do you mean?
-
- First of all, in regard to slavery? Do you think it right that Hellenes
- should enslave Hellenic States, or allow others to enslave them,
- if they can help? Should not their custom be to spare them,
- considering the danger which there is that the whole race may one
- day fall under the yoke of the barbarians?
-
- To spare them is infinitely better.
-
- Then no Hellene should be owned by them as a slave; that is a rule
- which they will observe and advise the other Hellenes to observe.
-
- Certainly, he said; they will in this way be united against
- the barbarians and will keep their hands off one another.
-
- Next as to the slain; ought the conquerors, I said, to take anything
- but their armour? Does not the practice of despoiling an enemy afford
- an excuse for not facing the battle? Cowards skulk about the dead,
- pretending that they are fulfilling a duty, and many an army
- before now has been lost from this love of plunder.
-
- Very true.
-
- And is there not illiberality and avarice in robbing a corpse,
- and also a degree of meanness and womanishness in making an enemy
- of the dead body when the real enemy has flown away and left
- only his fighting gear behind him,--is not this rather like a dog
- who cannot get at his assailant, quarrelling with the stones
- which strike him instead?
-
- Very like a dog, he said.
-
- Then we must abstain from spoiling the dead or hindering their burial?
-
- Yes, he replied, we most certainly must.
-
- Neither shall we offer up arms at the temples of the gods,
- least of all the arms of Hellenes, if we care to maintain good
- feeling with other Hellenes; and, indeed, we have reason to fear
- that the offering of spoils taken from kinsmen may be a pollution
- unless commanded by the god himself?
-
- Very true.
-
- Again, as to the devastation of Hellenic territory or the burning
- of houses, what is to be the practice?
-
- May I have the pleasure, he said, of hearing your opinion?
-
- Both should be forbidden, in my judgment; I would take the annual
- produce and no more. Shall I tell you why?
-
- Pray do.
-
- Why, you see, there is a difference in the names `discord' and `war,'
- and I imagine that there is also a difference in their natures;
- the one is expressive of what is internal and domestic, the other
- of what is external and foreign; and the first of the two is
- termed discord, and only the second, war.
-
- That is a very proper distinction, he replied.
-
- And may I not observe with equal propriety that the Hellenic race
- is all united together by ties of blood and friendship, and alien
- and strange to the barbarians?
-
- Very good, he said.
-
- And therefore when Hellenes fight with barbarians and barbarians
- with Hellenes, they will be described by us as being at war when
- they fight, and by nature enemies, and this kind of antagonism
- should be called war; but when Hellenes fight with one another we
- shall say that Hellas is then in a state of disorder and discord,
- they being by nature friends and such enmity is to be called discord.
-
- I agree.
-
- Consider then, I said, when that which we have acknowledged to be
- discord occurs, and a city is divided, if both parties destroy the lands
- and burn the houses of one another, how wicked does the strife appear!
- No true lover of his country would bring himself to tear in pieces
- his own nurse and mother: There might be reason in the conqueror
- depriving the conquered of their harvest, but still they would
- have the idea of peace in their hearts and would not mean to go
- on fighting for ever.
-
- Yes, he said, that is a better temper than the other.
-
- And will not the city, which you are founding, be an Hellenic city?
-
- It ought to be, he replied.
-
- Then will not the citizens be good and civilized?
-
- Yes, very civilized.
-
- And will they not be lovers of Hellas, and think of Hellas as their
- own land, and share in the common temples?
-
- Most certainly.
-
- And any difference which arises among them will be regarded by them
- as discord only--a quarrel among friends, which is not to be called
- a war?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Then
- they will quarrel as those who intend some day to be reconciled? Certainly.
-
- They will use friendly correction, but will not enslave or destroy
- their opponents; they will be correctors, not enemies?
-
- Just so.
-
- And as they are Hellenes themselves they will not devastate Hellas,
- nor will they burn houses, not even suppose that the whole population
- of a city--men, women, and children--are equally their enemies,
- for they know that the guilt of war is always confined to a few persons
- and that the many are their friends. And for all these reasons
- they will be unwilling to waste their lands and raze their houses;
- their enmity to them will only last until the many innocent sufferers
- have compelled the guilty few to give satisfaction?
-
- I agree, he said, that our citizens should thus deal with their
- Hellenic enemies; and with barbarians as the Hellenes now deal
- with one another.
-
- Then let us enact this law also for our guardians:-that they are
- neither to devastate the lands of Hellenes nor to burn their houses.
-
- Agreed; and we may agree also in thinking that these, all our
- previous enactments, are very good.
-
- But still I must say, Socrates, that if you are allowed to go
- on in this way you will entirely forget the other question
- which at the commencement of this discussion you thrust aside:--
- Is such an order of things possible, and how, if at all?
- For I am quite ready to acknowledge that the plan which you propose,
- if only feasible, would do all sorts of good to the State.
- I will add, what you have omitted, that your citizens will be
- the bravest of warriors, and will never leave their ranks, for they
- will all know one another, and each will call the other father,
- brother, son; and if you suppose the women to join their armies,
- whether in the same rank or in the rear, either as a terror to the enemy,
- or as auxiliaries in case of need, I know that they will then be
- absolutely invincible; and there are many domestic tic advantages
- which might also be mentioned and which I also fully acknowledge:
- but, as I admit all these advantages and as many more as you please,
- if only this State of yours were to come into existence, we need
- say no more about them; assuming then the existence of the State,
- let us now turn to the question of possibility and ways and means--
- the rest may be left.
-
- If I loiter for a moment, you instantly make a raid upon me, I said,
- and have no mercy; I have hardly escaped the first and second waves,
- and you seem not to be aware that you are now bringing upon me
- the third, which is the greatest and heaviest. When you have seen
- and heard the third wave, I think you be more considerate and will
- acknowledge that some fear and hesitation was natural respecting
- a proposal so extraordinary as that which I have now to state
- and investigate.
-
- The more appeals of this sort which you make, he said, the more
- determined are we that you shall tell us how such a State is possible:
- speak out and at once.
-
- Let me begin by reminding you that we found our way hither
- in the search after justice and injustice.
-
- True, he replied; but what of that?
-
- I was only going to ask whether, if we have discovered them,
- we are to require that the just man should in nothing fail of
- absolute justice; or may we be satisfied with an approximation,
- and the attainment in him of a higher degree of justice than is
- to be found in other men?
-
- The approximation will be enough.
-
- We are enquiring into the nature of absolute justice and into the character
- of the perfectly just, and into injustice and the perfectly unjust,
- that we might have an ideal. We were to look at these in order
- that we might judge of our own happiness and unhappiness according
- to the standard which they exhibited and the degree in which we resembled
- them, but not with any view of showing that they could exist in fact.
-
- True, he said.
-
- Would a painter be any the worse because, after having delineated
- with consummate art an ideal of a perfectly beautiful man,
- he was unable to show that any such man could ever have existed?
-
- He would be none the worse.
-
- Well, and were we not creating an ideal of a perfect State?
-
- To be sure.
-
- And is our theory a worse theory because we are unable to prove
- the possibility of a city being ordered in the manner described?
-
- Surely not, he replied.
-
- That is the truth, I said. But if, at your request, I am to try
- and show how and under what conditions the possibility is highest,
- I must ask you, having this in view, to repeat your former admissions.
-
- What admissions?
-
- I want to know whether ideals are ever fully realised in language?
- Does not the word express more than the fact, and must not the actual,
- whatever a man may think, always, in the nature of things, fall short
- of the truth? What do you say?
-
- I agree.
-
- Then you must not insist on my proving that the actual State will
- in every respect coincide with the ideal: if we are only able
- to discover how a city may be governed nearly as we proposed,
- you will admit that we have discovered the possibility which you demand;
- and will be contented. I am sure that I should be contented--
- will not you?
-
- Yes, I will.
-
- Let me next endeavour to show what is that fault in States which is
- the cause of their present maladministration, and what is the least
- change which will enable a State to pass into the truer form;
- and let the change, if possible, be of one thing only, or if not, of two;
- at any rate, let the changes be as few and slight as possible.
-
- Certainly, he replied.
-
- I think, I said, that there might be a reform of the State if only
- one change were made, which is not a slight or easy though still
- a possible one.
-
- What is it? he said.
-
- Now then, I said, I go to meet that which I liken to the greatest
- of the waves; yet shall the word be spoken, even though the wave
- break and drown me in laughter and dishonour; and do you mark my words.
-
- Proceed.
-
- I said: Until philosophers are kings, or the kings and princes
- of this world have the spirit and power of philosophy, and political
- greatness and wisdom meet in one, and those commoner natures
- who pursue either to the exclusion of the other are compelled
- to stand aside, cities will never have rest from their evils,--
- nor the human race, as I believe,--and then only will this our
- State have a possibility of life and behold the light of day.
- Such was the thought, my dear Glaucon, which I would fain have
- uttered if it had not seemed too extravagant; for to be convinced
- that in no other State can there be happiness private or public is
- indeed a hard thing.
-
- Socrates, what do you mean? I would have you consider that
- the word which you have uttered is one at which numerous persons,
- and very respectable persons too, in a figure pulling off their
- coats all in a moment, and seizing any weapon that comes to hand,
- will run at you might and main, before you know where you are,
- intending to do heaven knows what; and if you don't prepare an answer,
- and put yourself in motion, you will be prepared by their fine wits,'
- and no mistake.
-
- You got me into the scrape, I said.
-
- And I was quite right; however, I will do all I can to get you out of it;
- but I can only give you good-will and good advice, and, perhaps,
- I may be able to fit answers to your questions better than another--
- that is all. And now, having such an auxiliary, you must do your best
- to show the unbelievers that you are right.
-
- I ought to try, I said, since you offer me such invaluable assistance.
- And I think that, if there is to be a chance of our escaping,
- we must explain to them whom we mean when we say that philosophers
- are to rule in the State; then we shall be able to defend ourselves:
- There will be discovered to be some natures who ought to study
- philosophy and to be leaders in the State; and others who are not
- born to be philosophers, and are meant to be followers rather
- than leaders.
-
- Then now for a definition, he said.
-
- Follow me, I said, and I hope that I may in some way or other
- be able to give you a satisfactory explanation.
-
- Proceed.
-
- I dare say that you remember, and therefore I need not remind you,
- that a lover, if lie is worthy of the name, ought to show his love,
- not to some one part of that which he loves, but to the whole.
-
- I really do not understand, and therefore beg of you to assist
- my memory.
-
- Another person, I said, might fairly reply as you do; but a man
- of pleasure like yourself ought to know that all who are in the flower
- of youth do somehow or other raise a pang or emotion in a lover's breast,
- and are thought by him to be worthy of his affectionate regards.
- Is not this a way which you have with the fair: one has a snub nose,
- and you praise his charming face; the hook-nose of another has,
- you say, a royal look; while he who is neither snub nor hooked
- has the grace of regularity: the dark visage is manly, the fair
- are children of the gods; and as to the sweet `honey pale,'
- as they are called, what is the very name but the invention of a
- lover who talks in diminutives, and is not adverse to paleness
- if appearing on the cheek of youth? In a word, there is no excuse
- which you will not make, and nothing which you will not say,
- in order not to lose a single flower that blooms in the spring-time
- of youth.
-
- If you make me an authority in matters of love, for the sake
- of the argument, I assent.
-
- And what do you say of lovers of wine? Do you not see them doing
- the same? They are glad of any pretext of drinking any wine.
-
- Very good.
-
- And the same is true of ambitious men; if they cannot command an army,
- they are willing to command a file; and if they cannot be honoured
- by really great and important persons, they are glad to be honoured
- by lesser and meaner people, but honour of some kind they must have.
-
- Exactly.
-
- Once more let me ask: Does he who desires any class of goods,
- desire the whole class or a part only?
-
- The whole.
-
- And may we not say of the philosopher that he is a lover,
- not of a part of wisdom only, but of the whole?
-
- Yes, of the whole.
-
- And he who dislikes learnings, especially in youth, when he has
- no power of judging what is good and what is not, such an one
- we maintain not to be a philosopher or a lover of knowledge,
- just as he who refuses his food is not hungry, and may be said
- to have a bad appetite and not a good one?
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Whereas he who has a taste for every sort of knowledge and who is curious
- to learn and is never satisfied, may be justly termed a philosopher?
- Am I not right?
-
- Glaucon said: If curiosity makes a philosopher, you will find
- many a strange being will have a title to the name. All the lovers
- of sights have a delight in learning, and must therefore be included.
- Musical amateurs, too, are a folk strangely out of place among
- philosophers, for they are the last persons in the world who would
- come to anything like a philosophical discussion, if they could help,
- while they run about at the Dionysiac festivals as if they had
- let out their ears to hear every chorus; whether the performance
- is in town or country--that makes no difference--they are there.
- Now are we to maintain that all these and any who have similar tastes,
- as well as the professors of quite minor arts, are philosophers?
-
- Certainly not, I replied; they are only an imitation.
-
- He said: Who then are the true philosophers?
-
- Those, I said, who are lovers of the vision of truth.
-
- That is also good, he said; but I should like to know what you mean?
-
- To another, I replied, I might have a difficulty in explaining;
- but I am sure that you will admit a proposition which I am about
- to make.
-
- What is the proposition?
-
- That since beauty is the opposite of ugliness, they are two?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And inasmuch as they are two, each of them is one?
-
- True again.
-
- And of just and unjust, good and evil, and of every other class,
- the same remark holds: taken singly, each of them one; but from
- the various combinations of them with actions and things and with
- one another, they are seen in all sorts of lights and appear many?
- Very true.
-
- And this is the distinction which I draw between the sight-loving,
- art-loving, practical class and those of whom I am speaking,
- and who are alone worthy of the name of philosophers.
-
- How do you distinguish them? he said.
-
- The lovers of sounds and sights, I replied, are, as I conceive,
- fond of fine tones and colours and forms and all the artificial
- products that are made out of them, but their mind is incapable
- of seeing or loving absolute beauty.
-
- True, he replied.
-
- Few are they who are able to attain to the sight of this.
-
- Very true.
-
- And he who, having a sense of beautiful things has no sense
- of absolute beauty, or who, if another lead him to a knowledge
- of that beauty is unable to follow--of such an one I ask,
- Is he awake or in a dream only? Reflect: is not the dreamer,
- sleeping or waking, one who likens dissimilar things, who puts
- the copy in the place of the real object?
-
- I should certainly say that such an one was dreaming.
-
- But take the case of the other, who recognises the existence
- of absolute beauty and is able to distinguish the idea from the
- objects which participate in the idea, neither putting the objects
- in the place of the idea nor the idea in the place of the objects--
- is he a dreamer, or is he awake?
-
- He is wide awake.
-
- And may we not say that the mind of the one who knows has knowledge,
- and that the mind of the other, who opines only, has opinion
-
- Certainly.
-
- But suppose that the latter should quarrel with us and dispute
- our statement, can we administer any soothing cordial or advice to him,
- without revealing to him that there is sad disorder in his wits?
-
- We must certainly offer him some good advice, he replied.
-
- Come, then, and let us think of something to say to him. Shall we begin
- by assuring him that he is welcome to any knowledge which he may have,
- and that we are rejoiced at his having it? But we should like to ask
- him a question: Does he who has knowledge know something or nothing?
- (You must answer for him.)
-
- I answer that he knows something.
-
- Something that is or is not?
-
- Something that is; for how can that which is not ever be known?
-
- And are we assured, after looking at the matter from many points
- of view, that absolute being is or may be absolutely known,
- but that the utterly non-existent is utterly unknown?
-
- Nothing can be more certain.
-
- Good. But if there be anything which is of such a nature as to be
- and not to be, that will have a place intermediate between pure
- being and the absolute negation of being?
-
- Yes, between them.
-
- And, as knowledge corresponded to being and ignorance of necessity
- to not-being, for that intermediate between being and not-being
- there has to be discovered a corresponding intermediate between
- ignorance and knowledge, if there be such?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Do we admit the existence of opinion?
-
- Undoubtedly.
-
- As being the same with knowledge, or another faculty?
-
- Another faculty.
-
- Then opinion and knowledge have to do with different kinds of matter
- corresponding to this difference of faculties?
-
- Yes.
-
- And knowledge is relative to being and knows being. But before I
- proceed further I will make a division.
-
- What division?
-
- I will begin by placing faculties in a class by themselves:
- they are powers in us, and in all other things, by which we do as we do.
- Sight and hearing, for example, I should call faculties. Have I
- clearly explained the class which I mean?
-
- Yes, I quite understand.
-
- Then let me tell you my view about them. I do not see them,
- and therefore the distinctions of fire, colour, and the like, which enable
- me to discern the differences of some things, do not apply to them.
- In speaking of a faculty I think only of its sphere and its result;
- and that which has the same sphere and the same result I call
- the same faculty, but that which has another sphere and another
- result I call different. Would that be your way of speaking?
-
- Yes.
-
- And will you be so very good as to answer one more question?
- Would you say that knowledge is a faculty, or in what class would you
- place it?
-
- Certainly knowledge is a faculty, and the mightiest of all faculties.
-
- And is opinion also a faculty?
-
- Certainly, he said; for opinion is that with which we are able
- to form an opinion.
-
- And yet you were acknowledging a little while ago that knowledge
- is not the same as opinion?
-
- Why, yes, he said: how can any reasonable being ever identify
- that which is infallible with that which errs?
-
- An excellent answer, proving, I said, that we are quite conscious
- of a distinction between them.
-
- Yes.
-
- Then knowledge and opinion having distinct powers have also distinct
- spheres or subject-matters?
-
- That is certain.
-
- Being is the sphere or subject-matter of knowledge, and knowledge
- is to know the nature of being?
-
- Yes.
-
- And opinion is to have an opinion?
-
- Yes.
-
- And do we know what we opine? or is the subject-matter of opinion
- the same as the subject-matter of knowledge?
-
- Nay, he replied, that has been already disproven; if difference
- in faculty implies difference in the sphere or subject matter, and if,
- as we were saying, opinion and knowledge are distinct faculties,
- then the sphere of knowledge and of opinion cannot be the same.
-
- Then if being is the subject-matter of knowledge, something else
- must be the subject-matter of opinion?
-
- Yes, something else.
-
- Well then, is not-being the subject-matter of opinion? or, rather,
- how can there be an opinion at all about not-being? Reflect:
- when a man has an opinion, has he not an opinion about something?
- Can he have an opinion which is an opinion about nothing?
-
- Impossible.
-
- He who has an opinion has an opinion about some one thing?
-
- Yes.
-
- And not-being is not one thing but, properly speaking, nothing?
-
- True.
-
- Of not-being, ignorance was assumed to be the necessary correlative;
- of being, knowledge?
-
- True, he said.
-
- Then opinion is not concerned either with being or with not-being?
-
- Not with either.
-
- And can therefore neither be ignorance nor knowledge?
-
- That seems to be true.
-
- But is opinion to be sought without and beyond either of them,
- in a greater clearness than knowledge, or in a greater darkness
- than ignorance?
-
- In neither.
-
- Then I suppose that opinion appears to you to be darker than knowledge,
- but lighter than ignorance?
-
- Both; and in no small degree.
-
- And also to be within and between them?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then you would infer that opinion is intermediate?
-
- No question.
-
- But were we not saying before, that if anything appeared to be of a sort
- which is and is not at the same time, that sort of thing would appear
- also to lie in the interval between pure being and absolute not-being;
- and that the corresponding faculty is neither knowledge nor ignorance,
- but will be found in the interval between them?
-
- True.
-
- And in that interval there has now been discovered something
- which we call opinion?
-
- There has.
-
- Then what remains to be discovered is the object which partakes
- equally of the nature of being and not-being, and cannot rightly be
- termed either, pure and simple; this unknown term, when discovered,
- we may truly call the subject of opinion, and assign each to its
- proper faculty, -the extremes to the faculties of the extremes
- and the mean to the faculty of the mean.
-
- True.
-
- This being premised, I would ask the gentleman who is of opinion
- that there is no absolute or unchangeable idea of beauty--
- in whose opinion the beautiful is the manifold--he, I say,
- your lover of beautiful sights, who cannot bear to be told that
- the beautiful is one, and the just is one, or that anything is one--
- to him I would appeal, saying, Will you be so very kind, sir, as to tell
- us whether, of all these beautiful things, there is one which will
- not be found ugly; or of the just, which will not be found unjust;
- or of the holy, which will not also be unholy?
-
- No, he replied; the beautiful will in some point of view be found ugly;
- and the same is true of the rest.
-
- And may not the many which are doubles be also halves?--doubles, that is,
- of one thing, and halves of another?
-
- Quite true.
-
- And things great and small, heavy and light, as they are termed,
- will not be denoted by these any more than by the opposite names?
-
- True; both these and the opposite names will always attach to all
- of them.
-
- And can any one of those many things which are called by particular
- names be said to be this rather than not to be this?
-
- He replied: They are like the punning riddles which are asked
- at feasts or the children's puzzle about the eunuch aiming
- at the bat, with what he hit him, as they say in the puzzle,
- and upon what the bat was sitting. The individual objects of
- which I am speaking are also a riddle, and have a double sense:
- nor can you fix them in your mind, either as being or not-being,
- or both, or neither.
-
- Then what will you do with them? I said. Can they have a better
- place than between being and not-being? For they are clearly
- not in greater darkness or negation than not-being, or more full
- of light and existence than being.
-
- That is quite true, he said.
-
- Thus then we seem to have discovered that the many ideas which the multitude
- entertain about the beautiful and about all other things are tossing
- about in some region which is halfway between pure being and pure not-being?
-
- We have.
-
- Yes; and we had before agreed that anything of this kind which we
- might find was to be described as matter of opinion, and not as
- matter of knowledge; being the intermediate flux which is caught
- and detained by the intermediate faculty.
-
- Quite true.
-
- Then those who see the many beautiful, and who yet neither see
- absolute beauty, nor can follow any guide who points the way thither;
- who see the many just, and not absolute justice, and the like,--
- such persons may be said to have opinion but not knowledge?
-
- That is certain.
-
- But those who see the absolute and eternal and immutable may be said
- to know, and not to have opinion only?
-
- Neither can that be denied.
-
- The one loves and embraces the subjects of knowledge, the other those
- of opinion? The latter are the same, as I dare say will remember,
- who listened to sweet sounds and gazed upon fair colours, but would
- not tolerate the existence of absolute beauty.
-
- Yes, I remember.
-
- Shall we then be guilty of any impropriety in calling them lovers
- of opinion rather than lovers of wisdom, and will they be very angry
- with us for thus describing them?
-
- I shall tell them not to be angry; no man should be angry at what is true.
-
- But those who love the truth in each thing are to be called lovers
- of wisdom and not lovers of opinion.
-
- Assuredly.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK VI
-
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- AND thus, Glaucon, after the argument has gone a weary way,
- the true and the false philosophers have at length appeared in view.
-
- I do not think, he said, that the way could have been shortened.
-
- I suppose not, I said; and yet I believe that we might have had
- a better view of both of them if the discussion could have been
- confined to this one subject and if there were not many other
- questions awaiting us, which he who desires to see in what respect
- the life of the just differs from that of the unjust must consider.
-
- And what is the next question? he asked.
-
- Surely, I said, the one which follows next in order. Inasmuch as
- philosophers only are able to grasp the eternal and unchangeable,
- and those who wander in the region of the many and variable
- are not philosophers, I must ask you which of the two classes
- should be the rulers of our State?
-
- And how can we rightly answer that question?
-
- Whichever of the two are best able to guard the laws and institutions
- of our State--let them be our guardians.
-
- Very good.
-
- Neither, I said, can there be any question that the guardian
- who is to keep anything should have eyes rather than no eyes?
-
- There can be no question of that.
-
- And are not those who are verily and indeed wanting in the knowledge
- of the true being of each thing, and who have in their souls
- no clear pattern, and are unable as with a painter's eye
- to look at the absolute truth and to that original to repair,
- and having perfect vision of the other world to order the laws
- about beauty, goodness, justice in this, if not already ordered,
- and to guard and preserve the order of them--are not such persons,
- I ask, simply blind?
-
- Truly, he replied, they are much in that condition.
-
- And shall they be our guardians when there are others who,
- besides being their equals in experience and falling short of them
- in no particular of virtue, also know the very truth of each thing?
-
- There can be no reason, he said, for rejecting those who have this
- greatest of all great qualities; they must always have the first
- place unless they fail in some other respect.
-
- Suppose then, I said, that we determine how far they can unite this
- and the other excellences.
-
- By all means.
-
- In the first place, as we began by observing, the nature of the
- philosopher has to be ascertained. We must come to an understanding
- about him, and, when we have done so, then, if I am not mistaken,
- we shall also acknowledge that such an union of qualities is possible,
- and that those in whom they are united, and those only, should be
- rulers in the State.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- Let us suppose that philosophical minds always love knowledge
- of a sort which shows them the eternal nature not varying from
- generation and corruption.
-
- Agreed.
-
- And further, I said, let us agree that they are lovers of all true being;
- there is no part whether greater or less, or more or less honourable,
- which they are willing to renounce; as we said before of the lover
- and the man of ambition.
-
- True.
-
- And if they are to be what we were describing, is there not another
- quality which they should also possess?
-
- What quality?
-
- Truthfulness: they will never intentionally receive into their
- mind falsehood, which is their detestation, and they will love
- the truth.
-
- Yes, that may be safely affirmed of them.
-
- `May be,' my friend, I replied, is not the word; say rather `must
- be affirmed:' for he whose nature is amorous of anything cannot help
- loving all that belongs or is akin to the object of his affections.
-
- Right, he said.
-
- And is there anything more akin to wisdom than truth?
-
- How can there be?
-
- Can the same nature be a lover of wisdom and a lover of falsehood?
-
- Never.
-
- The true lover of learning then must from his earliest youth,
- as far as in him lies, desire all truth?
-
- Assuredly.
-
- But then again, as we know by experience, he whose desires are
- strong in one direction will have them weaker in others; they will
- be like a stream which has been drawn off into another channel.
-
- True.
-
- He whose desires are drawn towards knowledge in every form will be absorbed
- in the pleasures of the soul, and will hardly feel bodily pleasure--
- I mean, if he be a true philosopher and not a sham one.
-
- That is most certain.
-
- Such an one is sure to be temperate and the reverse of covetous;
- for the motives which make another man desirous of having and spending,
- have no place in his character.
-
- Very true.
-
- Another criterion of the philosophical nature has also to be considered.
-
- What is that?
-
- There should be no secret corner of illiberality; nothing can
- more antagonistic than meanness to a soul which is ever longing
- after the whole of things both divine and human.
-
- Most true, he replied.
-
- Then how can he who has magnificence of mind and is the spectator
- of all time and all existence, think much of human life?
-
- He cannot.
-
- Or can such an one account death fearful?
-
- No indeed.
-
- Then the cowardly and mean nature has no part in true philosophy?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Or again: can he who is harmoniously constituted, who is not
- covetous or mean, or a boaster, or a coward-can he, I say,
- ever be unjust or hard in his dealings?
-
- Impossible.
-
- Then you will soon observe whether a man is just and gentle,
- or rude and unsociable; these are the signs which distinguish even
- in youth the philosophical nature from the unphilosophical.
-
- True.
-
- There is another point which should be remarked.
-
- What point?
-
- Whether he has or has not a pleasure in learning; for no one will
- love that which gives him pain, and in which after much toil he
- makes little progress.
-
- Certainly not.
-
- And again, if he is forgetful and retains nothing of what he learns,
- will he not be an empty vessel?
-
- That is certain.
-
- Labouring in vain, he must end in hating himself and his
- fruitless occupation? Yes.
-
- Then a soul which forgets cannot be ranked among genuine philosophic natures;
- we must insist that the philosopher should have a good memory?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And once more, the inharmonious and unseemly nature can only tend
- to disproportion?
-
- Undoubtedly.
-
- And do you consider truth to be akin to proportion or to disproportion?
-
- To proportion.
-
- Then, besides other qualities, we must try to find a naturally
- well-proportioned and gracious mind, which will move spontaneously
- towards the true being of everything.
-
- Certainly.
-
- Well, and do not all these qualities, which we have been enumerating,
- go together, and are they not, in a manner, necessary to a soul,
- which is to have a full and perfect participation of being?
-
- They are absolutely necessary, he replied.
-
- And must not that be a blameless study which he only can pursue who has
- the gift of a good memory, and is quick to learn,--noble, gracious,
- the friend of truth, justice, courage, temperance, who are his kindred?
-
- The god of jealousy himself, he said, could find no fault with such
- a study.
-
- And to men like him, I said, when perfected by years and education,
- and to these only you will entrust the State.
-
- SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
-
- Here Adeimantus interposed and said: To these statements,
- Socrates, no one can offer a reply; but when you talk in this way,
- a strange feeling passes over the minds of your hearers: They fancy
- that they are led astray a little at each step in the argument,
- owing to their own want of skill in asking and answering questions;
- these littles accumulate, and at the end of the discussion they
- are found to have sustained a mighty overthrow and all their former
- notions appear to be turned upside down. And as unskilful players
- of draughts are at last shut up by their more skilful adversaries
- and have no piece to move, so they too find themselves shut up at last;
- for they have nothing to say in this new game of which words
- are the counters; and yet all the time they are in the right.
- The observation is suggested to me by what is now occurring.
- For any one of us might say, that although in words he is not
- able to meet you at each step of the argument, he sees as a fact
- that the votaries of philosophy, when they carry on the study,
- not only in youth as a part of education, but as the pursuit
- of their maturer years, most of them become strange monsters,
- not to say utter rogues, and that those who may be considered the best
- of them are made useless to the world by the very study which
- you extol.
-
- Well, and do you think that those who say so are wrong?
-
- I cannot tell, he replied; but I should like to know what is
- your opinion.
-
- Hear my answer; I am of opinion that they are quite right.
-
- Then how can you be justified in saying that cities will not cease
- from evil until philosophers rule in them, when philosophers
- are acknowledged by us to be of no use to them?
-
- You ask a question, I said, to which a reply can only be given
- in a parable.
-
- Yes, Socrates; and that is a way of speaking to which you are not
- at all accustomed, I suppose.
-
- I perceive, I said, that you are vastly amused at having plunged me
- into such a hopeless discussion; but now hear the parable, and then
- you will be still more amused at the meagreness of my imagination:
- for the manner in which the best men are treated in their own States
- is so grievous that no single thing on earth is comparable to it;
- and therefore, if I am to plead their cause, I must have recourse
- to fiction, and put together a figure made up of many things,
- like the fabulous unions of goats and stags which are found
- in pictures. Imagine then a fleet or a ship in which there
- is a captain who is taller and stronger than any of the crew,
- but he is a little deaf and has a similar infirmity in sight,
- and his knowledge of navigation is not much better.
- The sailors are quarrelling with one another about the steering--
- every one is of opinion that he has a right to steer, though he has
- never learned the art of navigation and cannot tell who taught him
- or when he learned, and will further assert that it cannot be taught,
- and they are ready to cut in pieces any one who says the contrary.
- They throng about the captain, begging and praying him to commit
- the helm to them; and if at any time they do not prevail, but others
- are preferred to them, they kill the others or throw them overboard,
- and having first chained up the noble captain's senses with drink
- or some narcotic drug, they mutiny and take possession of the ship
- and make free with the stores; thus, eating and drinking, they proceed
- on their voyage in such a manner as might be expected of them.
- Him who is their partisan and cleverly aids them in their plot
- for getting the ship out of the captain's hands into their own
- whether by force or persuasion, they compliment with the name
- of sailor, pilot, able seaman, and abuse the other sort of man,
- whom they call a good-for-nothing; but that the true pilot must
- pay attention to the year and seasons and sky and stars and winds,
- and whatever else belongs to his art, if he intends to be really
- qualified for the command of a ship, and that he must and will
- be the steerer, whether other people like or not-the possibility
- of this union of authority with the steerer's art has never seriously
- entered into their thoughts or been made part of their calling.
- Now in vessels which are in a state of mutiny and by sailors
- who are mutineers, how will the true pilot be regarded?
- Will he not be called by them a prater, a star-gazer, a
- good-for-nothing?
-
- Of course, said Adeimantus.
-
- Then you will hardly need, I said, to hear the interpretation of the figure,
- which describes the true philosopher in his relation to the State;
- for you understand already.
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then suppose you now take this parable to the gentleman who is
- surprised at finding that philosophers have no honour in their cities;
- explain it to him and try to convince him that their having honour
- would be far more extraordinary.
-
- I will.
-
- Say to him, that, in deeming the best votaries of philosophy to be
- useless to the rest of the world, he is right; but also tell him
- to attribute their uselessness to the fault of those who will not
- use them, and not to themselves. The pilot should not humbly beg
- the sailors to be commanded by him--that is not the order of nature;
- neither are `the wise to go to the doors of the rich'--the ingenious
- author of this saying told a lie--but the truth is, that, when a man
- is ill, whether he be rich or poor, to the physician he must go,
- and he who wants to be governed, to him who is able to govern.
- The ruler who is good for anything ought not to beg his subjects
- to be ruled by him; although the present governors of mankind are of a
- different stamp; they may be justly compared to the mutinous sailors,
- and the true helmsmen to those who are called by them good-for-nothings
- and star-gazers.
-
- Precisely so, he said.
-
- For these reasons, and among men like these, philosophy, the noblest
- pursuit of all, is not likely to be much esteemed by those of
- the opposite faction; not that the greatest and most lasting injury
- is done to her by her opponents, but by her own professing followers,
- the same of whom you suppose the accuser to say, that the greater
- number of them are arrant rogues, and the best are useless;
- in which opinion I agreed.
-
- Yes.
-
- And the reason why the good are useless has now been explained?
-
- True.
-
- Then shall we proceed to show that the corruption of the majority
- is also unavoidable, and that this is not to be laid to the charge
- of philosophy any more than the other?
-
- By all means.
-
- And let us ask and answer in turn, first going back to the description
- of the gentle and noble nature. Truth, as you will remember,
- was his leader, whom he followed always and in all things;
- failing in this, he was an impostor, and had no part or lot
- in true philosophy.
-
- Yes, that was said.
-
- Well, and is not this one quality, to mention no others,
- greatly at variance with present notions of him?
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- And have we not a right to say in his defence, that the true lover
- of knowledge is always striving after being--that is his nature;
- he will not rest in the multiplicity of individuals which is an
- appearance only, but will go on--the keen edge will not be blunted,
- nor the force of his desire abate until he have attained the knowledge
- of the true nature of every essence by a sympathetic and kindred
- power in the soul, and by that power drawing near and mingling and
- becoming incorporate with very being, having begotten mind and truth,
- he will have knowledge and will live and grow truly, and then,
- and not till then, will he cease from his travail.
-
- Nothing, he said, can be more just than such a description of him.
-
- And will the love of a lie be any part of a philosopher's nature?
- Will he not utterly hate a lie?
-
- He will.
-
- And when truth is the captain, we cannot suspect any evil of the band
- which he leads?
-
- Impossible.
-
- Justice and health of mind will be of the company, and temperance
- will follow after?
-
- True, he replied.
-
- Neither is there any reason why I should again set in array
- the philosopher's virtues, as you will doubtless remember
- that courage, magnificence, apprehension, memory, were his
- natural gifts. And you objected that, although no one could deny
- what I then said, still, if you leave words and look at facts,
- the persons who are thus described are some of them manifestly useless,
- and the greater number utterly depraved; we were then led to enquire
- into the grounds of these accusations, and have now arrived at the point
- of asking why are the majority bad, which question of necessity
- brought us back to the examination and definition of the true philosopher.
-
- Exactly.
-
- And we have next to consider the of the philosophic nature,
- why so many are spoiled and so few escape spoiling--I am speaking
- of those who were said to be useless but not wicked--and, when we
- have done with them, we will speak of the imitators of philosophy,
- what manner of men are they who aspire after a profession
- which is above them and of which they are unworthy, and then,
- by their manifold inconsistencies, bring upon philosophy, and upon
- all philosophers, that universal reprobation of which we speak.
-
- What are these corruptions? he said.
-
- I will see if I can explain them to you. Every one will admit that
- a nature having in perfection all the qualities which we required
- in a philosopher, is a rare plant which is seldom seen among men.
-
- Rare indeed.
-
- And what numberless and powerful causes tend to destroy these
- rare natures!
-
- What causes?
-
- In the first place there are their own virtues, their courage, temperance,
- and the rest of them, every one of which praise worthy qualities
- (and this is a most singular circumstance) destroys and distracts
- from philosophy the soul which is the possessor of them.
-
- That is very singular, he replied.
-
- Then there are all the ordinary goods of life--beauty, wealth,
- strength, rank, and great connections in the State--you understand
- the sort of things--these also have a corrupting and distracting effect.
-
- I understand; but I should like to know more precisely what you
- mean about them.
-
- Grasp the truth as a whole, I said, and in the right way; you will
- then have no difficulty in apprehending the preceding remarks,
- and they will no longer appear strange to you.
-
- And how am I to do so? he asked.
-
- Why, I said, we know that all germs or seeds, whether vegetable
- or animal, when they fail to meet with proper nutriment or climate
- or soil, in proportion to their vigour, are all the more sensitive
- to the want of a suitable environment, for evil is a greater enemy
- to what is good than what is not.
-
- Very true.
-
- There is reason in supposing that the finest natures, when under
- alien conditions, receive more injury than the inferior,
- because the contrast is greater.
-
- Certainly.
-
- And may we not say, Adeimantus, that the most gifted minds,
- when they are ill-educated, become pre-eminently bad? Do not
- great crimes and the spirit of pure evil spring out of a fulness
- of nature ruined by education rather than from any inferiority,
- whereas weak natures are scarcely capable of any very great good
- or very great evil?
-
- There I think that you are right.
-
- And our philosopher follows the same analogy-he is like a plant which,
- having proper nurture, must necessarily grow and mature
- into all virtue, but, if sown and planted in an alien soil,
- becomes the most noxious of all weeds, unless he be preserved
- by some divine power. Do you really think, as people so often say,
- that our youth are corrupted by Sophists, or that private teachers
- of the art corrupt them in any degree worth speaking of?
- Are not the public who say these things the greatest of all Sophists?
- And do they not educate to perfection young and old, men and women alike,
- and fashion them after their own hearts?
-
- When is this accomplished? he said.
-
- When they meet together, and the world sits down at an assembly,
- or in a court of law, or a theatre, or a camp, or in any other
- popular resort, and there is a great uproar, and they praise
- some things which are being said or done, and blame other things,
- equally exaggerating both, shouting and clapping their hands,
- and the echo of the rocks and the place in which they are assembled
- redoubles the sound of the praise or blame--at such a time will not
- a young man's heart, as they say, leap within him? Will any private
- training enable him to stand firm against the overwhelming flood
- of popular opinion? or will he be carried away by the stream?
- Will he not have the notions of good and evil which the public
- in general have--he will do as they do, and as they are, such will
- he be?
-
- Yes, Socrates; necessity will compel him.
-
- And yet, I said, there is a still greater necessity, which has
- not been mentioned.
-
- What is that?
-
- The gentle force of attainder or confiscation or death which,
- as you are aware, these new Sophists and educators who are the public,
- apply when their words are powerless.
-
- Indeed they do; and in right good earnest.
-
- Now what opinion of any other Sophist, or of any private person,
- can be expected to overcome in such an unequal contest?
-
- None, he replied.
-
- No, indeed, I said, even to make the attempt is a great piece
- of folly; there neither is, nor has been, nor is ever likely to be,
- any different type of character which has had no other training
- in virtue but that which is supplied by public opinion--I speak,
- my friend, of human virtue only; what is more than human,
- as the proverb says, is not included: for I would not have
- you ignorant that, in the present evil state of governments,
- whatever is saved and comes to good is saved by the power of God,
- as we may truly say.
-
- I quite assent, he replied.
-
- Then let me crave your assent also to a further observation.
-
- What are you going to say?
-
- Why, that all those mercenary individuals, whom the many call
- Sophists and whom they deem to be their adversaries, do, in fact,
- teach nothing but the opinion of the many, that is to say, the opinions
- of their assemblies; and this is their wisdom. I might compare them
- to a man who should study the tempers and desires of a mighty strong
- beast who is fed by him-he would learn how to approach and handle him,
- also at what times and from what causes he is dangerous or the reverse,
- and what is the meaning of his several cries, and by what sounds,
- when another utters them, he is soothed or infuriated; and you
- may suppose further, that when, by continually attending upon him,
- he has become perfect in all this, he calls his knowledge wisdom,
- and makes of it a system or art, which he proceeds to teach,
- although he has no real notion of what he means by the principles
- or passions of which he is speaking, but calls this honourable
- and that dishonourable, or good or evil, or just or unjust,
- all in accordance with the tastes and tempers of the great brute.
- Good he pronounces to be that in which the beast delights and evil to be
- that which he dislikes; and he can give no other account of them except
- that the just and noble are the necessary, having never himself seen,
- and having no power of explaining to others the nature of either,
- or the difference between them, which is immense. By heaven,
- would not such an one be a rare educator?
-
- Indeed, he would.
-
- And in what way does he who thinks that wisdom is the discernment
- of the tempers and tastes of the motley multitude, whether in painting
- or music, or, finally, in politics, differ from him whom I have been
- describing For when a man consorts with the many, and exhibits
- to them his poem or other work of art or the service which he has
- done the State, making them his judges when he is not obliged,
- the so-called necessity of Diomede will oblige him to produce whatever
- they praise. And yet the reasons are utterly ludicrous which they give
- in confirmation of their own notions about the honourable and good.
- Did you ever hear any of them which were not?
-
- No, nor am I likely to hear.
-
- You recognise the truth of what I have been saying? Then let me ask you
- to consider further whether the world will ever be induced to believe
- in the existence of absolute beauty rather than of the many beautiful,
- or of the absolute in each kind rather than of the many in each kind?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Then the world cannot possibly be a philosopher?
-
- Impossible.
-
- And therefore philosophers must inevitably fall under the censure
- of the world?
-
- They must.
-
- And of individuals who consort with the mob and seek to please them?
-
- That is evident.
-
- Then, do you see any way in which the philosopher can be preserved
- in his calling to the end? and remember what we were saying of him,
- that he was to have quickness and memory and courage and magnificence--
- these were admitted by us to be the true philosopher's gifts.
-
- Yes.
-
- Will not such an one from his early childhood be in all things
- first among all, especially if his bodily endowments are like his
- mental ones?
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- And his friends and fellow-citizens will want to use him as he gets
- older for their own purposes?
-
- No question.
-
- Falling at his feet, they will make requests to him and do him honour
- and flatter him, because they want to get into their hands now,
- the power which he will one day possess.
-
- That often happens, he said.
-
- And what will a man such as he be likely to do under such circumstances,
- especially if he be a citizen of a great city, rich and noble,
- and a tall proper youth? Will he not be full of boundless aspirations,
- and fancy himself able to manage the affairs of Hellenes and of barbarians,
- and having got such notions into his head will he not dilate
- and elevate himself in the fulness of vain pomp and senseless pride?
-
- To be sure he will.
-
- Now, when he is in this state of mind, if some one gently comes
- to him and tells him that he is a fool and must get understanding,
- which can only be got by slaving for it, do you think that,
- under such adverse circumstances, he will be easily induced
- to listen?
-
- Far otherwise.
-
- And even if there be some one who through inherent goodness
- or natural reasonableness has had his eyes opened a little and is
- humbled and taken captive by philosophy, how will his friends
- behave when they think that they are likely to lose the advantage
- which they were hoping to reap from his companionship?
- Will they not do and say anything to prevent him from yielding
- to his better nature and to render his teacher powerless,
- using to this end private intrigues as well as public prosecutions?
-
- There can be no doubt of it.
-
- And how can one who is thus circumstanced ever become a philosopher?
-
- Impossible.
-
- Then were we not right in saying that even the very qualities
- which make a man a philosopher may, if he be ill-educated, divert
- him from philosophy, no less than riches and their accompaniments
- and the other so-called goods of life?
-
- We were quite right.
-
- Thus, my excellent friend, is brought about all that ruin and failure
- which I have been describing of the natures best adapted to the best
- of all pursuits; they are natures which we maintain to be rare at any time;
- this being the class out of which come the men who are the authors
- of the greatest evil to States and individuals; and also of the greatest
- good when the tide carries them in that direction; but a small
- man never was the doer of any great thing either to individuals or to States.
-
- That is most true, he said.
-
- And so philosophy is left desolate, with her marriage rite incomplete:
- for her own have fallen away and forsaken her, and while they
- are leading a false and unbecoming life, other unworthy persons,
- seeing that she has no kinsmen to be her protectors, enter in
- and dishonour her; and fasten upon her the reproaches which,
- as you say, her reprovers utter, who affirm of her votaries that
- some are good for nothing, and that the greater number deserve
- the severest punishment.
-
- That is certainly what people say.
-
- Yes; and what else would you expect, I said, when you think of the puny
- creatures who, seeing this land open to them--a land well stocked
- with fair names and showy titles--like prisoners running out of prison
- into a sanctuary, take a leap out of their trades into philosophy;
- those who do so being probably the cleverest hands at their own
- miserable crafts? For, although philosophy be in this evil case,
- still there remains a dignity about her which is not to be found
- in the arts. And many are thus attracted by her whose natures
- are imperfect and whose souls are maimed and disfigured by
- their meannesses, as their bodies are by their trades and crafts.
- Is not this unavoidable?
-
- Yes.
-
- Are they not exactly like a bald little tinker who has just got
- out of durance and come into a fortune; he takes a bath and puts
- on a new coat, and is decked out as a bridegroom going to marry
- his master's daughter, who is left poor and desolate?
-
- A most exact parallel.
-
- What will be the issue of such marriages? Will they not be vile
- and bastard?
-
- There can be no question of it.
-
- And when persons who are unworthy of education approach philosophy
- and make an alliance with her who is a rank above them what sort
- of ideas and opinions are likely to be generated? Will they not be
- sophisms captivating to the ear, having nothing in them genuine,
- or worthy of or akin to true wisdom?
-
- No doubt, he said.
-
- Then, Adeimantus, I said, the worthy disciples of philosophy will be
- but a small remnant: perchance some noble and well-educated person,
- detained by exile in her service, who in the absence of corrupting
- influences remains devoted to her; or some lofty soul born
- in a mean city, the politics of which he contemns and neglects;
- and there may be a gifted few who leave the arts, which they
- justly despise, and come to her;--or peradventure there are some
- who are restrained by our friend Theages' bridle; for everything
- in the life of Theages conspired to divert him from philosophy;
- but ill-health kept him away from politics. My own case of
- the internal sign is hardly worth mentioning, for rarely, if ever,
- has such a monitor been given to any other man. Those who belong
- to this small class have tasted how sweet and blessed a possession
- philosophy is, and have also seen enough of the madness of the multitude;
- and they know that no politician is honest, nor is there any
- champion of justice at whose side they may fight and be saved.
- Such an one may be compared to a man who has fallen among wild beasts--
- he will not join in the wickedness of his fellows, but neither
- is he able singly to resist all their fierce natures, and therefore
- seeing that he would be of no use to the State or to his friends,
- and reflecting that he would have to throw away his life without
- doing any good either to himself or others, he holds his peace,
- and goes his own way. He is like one who, in the storm of dust and
- sleet which the driving wind hurries along, retires under the shelter
- of a wall; and seeing the rest of mankind full of wickedness,
- he is content, if only he can live his own life and be pure from
- evil or unrighteousness, and depart in peace and good-will, with
- bright hopes.
-
- Yes, he said, and he will have done a great work before he departs.
-
- A great work--yes; but not the greatest, unless he find a State
- suitable to him; for in a State which is suitable to him,
- he will have a larger growth and be the saviour of his country,
- as well as of himself.
-
- The causes why philosophy is in such an evil name have now been
- sufficiently explained: the injustice of the charges against
- her has been shown-is there anything more which you wish to say?
-
- Nothing more on that subject, he replied; but I should like to know
- which of the governments now existing is in your opinion the one
- adapted to her.
-
- Not any of them, I said; and that is precisely the accusation which I
- bring against them--not one of them is worthy of the philosophic nature,
- and hence that nature is warped and estranged;--as the exotic
- seed which is sown in a foreign land becomes denaturalized,
- and is wont to be overpowered and to lose itself in the new soil,
- even so this growth of philosophy, instead of persisting,
- degenerates and receives another character. But if philosophy ever
- finds in the State that perfection which she herself is, then will
- be seen that she is in truth divine, and that all other things,
- whether natures of men or institutions, are but human;--and now,
- I know that you are going to ask, what that State is.
-
- No, he said; there you are wrong, for I was going to ask another question--
- whether it is the State of which. we are the founders and inventors,
- or some other?
-
- Yes, I replied, ours in most respects; but you may remember my
- saying before, that some living authority would always be required
- in the State having the same idea of the constitution which guided
- you when as legislator you were laying down the laws.
-
- That was said, he replied.
-
- Yes, but not in a satisfactory manner; you frightened us by
- interposing objections, which certainly showed that the discussion
- would be long and difficult; and what still remains is the reverse of easy.
-
- What is there remaining?
-
- The question how the study of philosophy may be so ordered as not to be
- the ruin of the State: All great attempts are attended with risk;
- `hard is the good,' as men say.
-
- Still, he said, let the point be cleared up, and the enquiry
- will then be complete.
-
- I shall not be hindered, I said, by any want of will, but, if at all,
- by a want of power: my zeal you may see for yourselves; and please
- to remark in what I am about to say how boldly and unhesitatingly I
- declare that States should pursue philosophy, not as they do now,
- but in a different spirit.
-
- In what manner?
-
- At present, I said, the students of philosophy are quite young;
- beginning when they are hardly past childhood, they devote only the time
- saved from moneymaking and housekeeping to such pursuits; and even
- those of them who are reputed to have most of the philosophic spirit,
- when they come within sight of the great difficulty of the subject,
- I mean dialectic, take themselves off. In after life when invited
- by some one else, they may, perhaps, go and hear a lecture,
- and about this they make much ado, for philosophy is not considered
- by them to be their proper business: at last, when they grow old,
- in most cases they are extinguished more truly than Heracleitus'
- sun, inasmuch as they never light up again.
-
- But what ought to be their course?
-
- Just the opposite. In childhood and youth their study, and what
- philosophy they learn, should be suited to their tender years:
- during this period while they are growing up towards manhood,
- the chief and special care should be given to their bodies
- that they may have them to use in the service of philosophy;
- as life advances and the intellect begins to mature, let them increase
- the gymnastics of the soul; but when the strength of our citizens
- fails and is past civil and military duties, then let them range
- at will and engage in no serious labour, as we intend them to live
- happily here, and to crown this life with a similar happiness
- in another.
-
- How truly in earnest you are, Socrates! he said; I am sure of that;
- and yet most of your hearers, if I am not mistaken, are likely to be still
- more earnest in their opposition to you, and will never be convinced;
- Thrasymachus least of all.
-
- Do not make a quarrel, I said, between Thrasymachus and me, who have
- recently become friends, although, indeed, we were never enemies;
- for I shall go on striving to the utmost until I either convert him
- and other men, or do something which may profit them against the day
- when they live again, and hold the like discourse in another state
- of existence.
-
- You are speaking of a time which is not very near.
-
- Rather, I replied, of a time which is as nothing in comparison
- with eternity. Nevertheless, I do not wonder that the many refuse
- to believe; for they have never seen that of which we are now
- speaking realised; they have seen only a conventional imitation
- of philosophy, consisting of words artificially brought together,
- not like these of ours having a natural unity. But a human being
- who in word and work is perfectly moulded, as far as he can be,
- into the proportion and likeness of virtue--such a man ruling
- in a city which bears the same image, they have never yet seen,
- neither one nor many of them--do you think that they ever did?
-
- No indeed.
-
- No, my friend, and they have seldom, if ever, heard free and noble sentiments;
- such as men utter when they are earnestly and by every means in their
- power seeking after truth for the sake of knowledge, while they look
- coldly on the subtleties of controversy, of which the end is opinion
- and strife, whether they meet with them in the courts of law or in society.
-
- They are strangers, he said, to the words of which you speak.
-
- And this was what we foresaw, and this was the reason why truth
- forced us to admit, not without fear and hesitation, that neither
- cities nor States nor individuals will ever attain perfection until
- the small class of philosophers whom we termed useless but not
- corrupt are providentially compelled, whether they will or not,
- to take care of the State, and until a like necessity be laid
- on the State to obey them; or until kings, or if not kings,
- the sons of kings or princes, are divinely inspired with a true
- love of true philosophy. That either or both of these alternatives
- are impossible, I see no reason to affirm: if they were so,
- we might indeed be justly ridiculed as dreamers and visionaries.
- Am I not right?
-
- Quite right.
-
- If then, in the countless ages of the past, or at the present
- hour in some foreign clime which is far away and beyond our ken,
- the perfected philosopher is or has been or hereafter shall be
- compelled by a superior power to have the charge of the State,
- we are ready to assert to the death, that this our constitution has been,
- and is--yea, and will be whenever the Muse of Philosophy is queen.
- There is no impossibility in all this; that there is a difficulty,
- we acknowledge ourselves.
-
- My opinion agrees with yours, he said.
-
- But do you mean to say that this is not the opinion of the multitude?
-
- I should imagine not, he replied.
-
- O my friend, I said, do not attack the multitude: they will change
- their minds, if, not in an aggressive spirit, but gently and with
- the view of soothing them and removing their dislike of over-education,
- you show them your philosophers as they really are and describe
- as you were just now doing their character and profession,
- and then mankind will see that he of whom you are speaking is not
- such as they supposed--if they view him in this new light, they will
- surely change their notion of him, and answer in another strain.
- Who can be at enmity with one who loves them, who that is himself
- gentle and free from envy will be jealous of one in whom there
- is no jealousy? Nay, let me answer for you, that in a few this
- harsh temper may be found but not in the majority of mankind.
-
- I quite agree with you, he said.
-
- And do you not also think, as I do, that the harsh feeling which
- the many entertain towards philosophy originates in the pretenders,
- who rush in uninvited, and are always abusing them, and finding fault
- with them, who make persons instead of things the theme of their
- conversation? and nothing can be more unbecoming in philosophers
- than this.
-
- It is most unbecoming.
-
- For he, Adeimantus, whose mind is fixed upon true being,
- has surely no time to look down upon the affairs of earth,
- or to be filled with malice and envy, contending against men;
- his eye is ever directed towards things fixed and immutable,
- which he sees neither injuring nor injured by one another,
- but all in order moving according to reason; these he imitates,
- and to these he will, as far as he can, conform himself. Can a man
- help imitating that with which he holds reverential converse?
-
- Impossible.
-
- And the philosopher holding converse with the divine order,
- becomes orderly and divine, as far as the nature of man allows;
- but like every one else, he will suffer from detraction.
-
- Of course.
-
- And if a necessity be laid upon him of fashioning, not only himself,
- but human nature generally, whether in States or individuals,
- into that which he beholds elsewhere, will he, think you, be an
- unskilful artificer of justice, temperance, and every civil virtue?
-
- Anything but unskilful.
-
- And if the world perceives that what we are saying about him is the truth,
- will they be angry with philosophy? Will they disbelieve us,
- when we tell them that no State can be happy which is not designed
- by artists who imitate the heavenly pattern?
-
- They will not be angry if they understand, he said. But how will
- they draw out the plan of which you are speaking?
-
- They will begin by taking the State and the manners of men,
- from which, as from a tablet, they will rub out the picture, and leave
- a clean surface. This is no easy task. But whether easy or not,
- herein will lie the difference between them and every other legislator,--
- they will have nothing to do either with individual or State, and will
- inscribe no laws, until they have either found, or themselves made,
- a clean surface.
-
- They will be very right, he said.
-
- Having effected this, they will proceed to trace an outline
- of the constitution?
-
- No doubt.
-
- And when they are filling in the work, as I conceive, they will
- often turn their eyes upwards and downwards: I mean that they
- will first look at absolute justice and beauty and temperance,
- and again at the human copy; and will mingle and temper the various
- elements of life into the image of a man; and thus they will conceive
- according to that other image, which, when existing among men,
- Homer calls the form and likeness of God.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- And one feature they will erase, and another they will put in,
- they have made the ways of men, as far as possible, agreeable to
- the ways of God?
-
- Indeed, he said, in no way could they make a fairer picture.
-
- And now, I said, are we beginning to persuade those whom you
- described as rushing at us with might and main, that the painter
- of constitutions is such an one as we are praising; at whom they
- were so very indignant because to his hands we committed the State;
- and are they growing a little calmer at what they have just heard?
-
- Much calmer, if there is any sense in them.
-
- Why, where can they still find any ground for objection?
- Will they doubt that the philosopher is a lover of truth and being?
-
- They would not be so unreasonable.
-
- Or that his nature, being such as we have delineated, is akin
- to the highest good?
-
- Neither can they doubt this.
-
- But again, will they tell us that such a nature, placed under
- favourable circumstances, will not be perfectly good and wise
- if any ever was? Or will they prefer those whom we have rejected?
-
- Surely not.
-
- Then will they still be angry at our saying, that, until philosophers
- bear rule, States and individuals will have no rest from evil,
- nor will this our imaginary State ever be realised?
-
- I think that they will be less angry.
-
- Shall we assume that they are not only less angry but quite gentle,
- and that they have been converted and for very shame, if for no
- other reason, cannot refuse to come to terms?
-
- By all means, he said.
-
- Then let us suppose that the reconciliation has been effected.
- Will any one deny the other point, that there may be sons of kings
- or princes who are by nature philosophers?
-
- Surely no man, he said.
-
- And when they have come into being will any one say that they must
- of necessity be destroyed; that they can hardly be saved is not
- denied even by us; but that in the whole course of ages no single
- one of them can escape--who will venture to affirm this?
-
- Who indeed!
-
- But, said I, one is enough; let there be one man who has a city
- obedient to his will, and he might bring into existence the ideal
- polity about which the world is so incredulous.
-
- Yes, one is enough.
-
- The ruler may impose the laws and institutions which we have
- been describing, and the citizens may possibly be willing to obey them?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And that others should approve of what we approve, is no miracle
- or impossibility?
-
- I think not.
-
- But we have sufficiently shown, in what has preceded, that all this,
- if only possible, is assuredly for the best.
-
- We have.
-
- And now we say not only that our laws, if they could be enacted,
- would be for the best, but also that the enactment of them,
- though difficult, is not impossible.
-
- Very good.
-
- And so with pain and toil we have reached the end of one subject,
- but more remains to be discussed;--how and by what studies and pursuits
- will the saviours of the constitution be created, and at what ages
- are they to apply themselves to their several studies?
-
- Certainly.
-
- I omitted the troublesome business of the possession of women,
- and the procreation of children, and the appointment of the rulers,
- because I knew that the perfect State would be eyed with jealousy
- and was difficult of attainment; but that piece of cleverness was
- not of much service to me, for I had to discuss them all the same.
- The women and children are now disposed of, but the other question
- of the rulers must be investigated from the very beginning.
- We were saying, as you will remember, that they were to be lovers
- of their country, tried by the test of pleasures and pains,
- and neither in hardships, nor in dangers, nor at any other critical
- moment were to lose their patriotism--he was to be rejected
- who failed, but he who always came forth pure, like gold tried
- in the refiner's fire, was to be made a ruler, and to receive
- honours and rewards in life and after death. This was the sort
- of thing which was being said, and then the argument turned aside
- and veiled her face; not liking to stir the question which has
- now arisen.
-
- I perfectly remember, he said.
-
- Yes, my friend, I said, and I then shrank from hazarding the bold word;
- but now let me dare to say--that the perfect guardian must be
- a philosopher.
-
- Yes, he said, let that be affirmed.
-
- And do not suppose that there will be many of them; for the gifts
- which were deemed by us to be essential rarely grow together;
- they are mostly found in shreds and patches.
-
- What do you mean? he said.
-
- You are aware, I replied, that quick intelligence, memory, sagacity,
- cleverness, and similar qualities, do not often grow together,
- and that persons who possess them and are at the same time
- high-spirited and magnanimous are not so constituted by nature
- as to live orderly and in a peaceful and settled manner; they are
- driven any way by their impulses, and all solid principle goes out of them.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- On the other hand, those steadfast natures which can better be
- depended upon, which in a battle are impregnable to fear and immovable,
- are equally immovable when there is anything to be learned;
- they are always in a torpid state, and are apt to yawn and go
- to sleep over any intellectual toil.
-
- Quite true.
-
- And yet we were saying that both qualities were necessary
- in those to whom the higher education is to be imparted,
- and who are to share in any office or command.
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- And will they be a class which is rarely found?
-
- Yes, indeed.
-
- Then the aspirant must not only be tested in those labours
- and dangers and pleasures which we mentioned before, but there
- is another kind of probation which we did not mention--he must be
- exercised also in many kinds of knowledge, to see whether the soul
- will be able to endure the highest of all, will faint under them,
- as in any other studies and exercises.
-
- Yes, he said, you are quite right in testing him. But what do you
- mean by the highest of all knowledge?
-
- You may remember, I said, that we divided the soul into three parts;
- and distinguished the several natures of justice, temperance, courage,
- and wisdom?
-
- Indeed, he said, if I had forgotten, I should not deserve to hear more.
-
- And do you remember the word of caution which preceded the discussion
- of them?
-
- To what do you refer?
-
- We were saying, if I am not mistaken, that he who wanted to see them
- in their perfect beauty must take a longer and more circuitous way,
- at the end of which they would appear; but that we could add on a popular
- exposition of them on a level with the discussion which had preceded.
- And you replied that such an exposition would be enough for you,
- and so the enquiry was continued in what to me seemed to be a very
- inaccurate manner; whether you were satisfied or not, it is for you
- to say.
-
- Yes, he said, I thought and the others thought that you gave us
- a fair measure of truth.
-
- But, my friend, I said, a measure of such things Which in any degree
- falls short of the whole truth is not fair measure; for nothing
- imperfect is the measure of anything, although persons are too apt
- to be contented and think that they need search no further.
-
- Not an uncommon case when people are indolent.
-
- Yes, I said; and there cannot be any worse fault in a guardian
- of the State and of the laws.
-
- True.
-
- The guardian then, I said, must be required to take the longer circuit,
- and toll at learning as well as at gymnastics, or he will never reach
- the highest knowledge of all which, as we were just now saying,
- is his proper calling.
-
- What, he said, is there a knowledge still higher than this--
- higher than justice and the other virtues?
-
- Yes, I said, there is. And of the virtues too we must behold not
- the outline merely, as at present--nothing short of the most finished
- picture should satisfy us. When little things are elaborated
- with an infinity of pains, in order that they may appear in their
- full beauty and utmost clearness, how ridiculous that we should
- not think the highest truths worthy of attaining the highest accuracy!
-
- A right noble thought; but do you suppose that we shall refrain
- from asking you what is this highest knowledge?
-
- Nay, I said, ask if you will; but I am certain that you have heard
- the answer many times, and now you either do not understand me or,
- as I rather think, you are disposed to be troublesome; for you
- have of been told that the idea of good is the highest knowledge,
- and that all other things become useful and advantageous only
- by their use of this. You can hardly be ignorant that of this
- I was about to speak, concerning which, as you have often heard
- me say, we know so little; and, without which, any other knowledge
- or possession of any kind will profit us nothing. Do you think
- that the possession of all other things is of any value if we do
- not possess the good? or the knowledge of all other things if we
- have no knowledge of beauty and goodness?
-
- Assuredly not.
-
- You are further aware that most people affirm pleasure to be the good,
- but the finer sort of wits say it is knowledge
-
- Yes.
-
- And you are aware too that the latter cannot explain what they mean
- by knowledge, but are obliged after all to say knowledge of the good?
-
- How ridiculous!
-
- Yes, I said, that they should begin by reproaching us with our
- ignorance of the good, and then presume our knowledge of it--
- for the good they define to be knowledge of the good, just as if we
- understood them when they use the term `good'--this is of course ridiculous.
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- And those who make pleasure their good are in equal perplexity;
- for they are compelled to admit that there are bad pleasures as well
- as good.
-
- Certainly.
-
- And therefore to acknowledge that bad and good are the same?
-
- True.
-
- There can be no doubt about the numerous difficulties in which this
- question is involved.
-
- There can be none.
-
- Further, do we not see that many are willing to do or to have
- or to seem to be what is just and honourable without the reality;
- but no one is satisfied with the appearance of good--the reality
- is what they seek; in the case of the good, appearance is despised
- by every one.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Of this then, which every soul of man pursues and makes the end
- of all his actions, having a presentiment that there is such an end,
- and yet hesitating because neither knowing the nature nor having
- the same assurance of this as of other things, and therefore
- losing whatever good there is in other things,--of a principle
- such and so great as this ought the best men in our State, to whom
- everything is entrusted, to be in the darkness of ignorance?
-
- Certainly not, he said.
-
- I am sure, I said, that he who does not know now the beautiful
- and the just are likewise good will be but a sorry guardian of them;
- and I suspect that no one who is ignorant of the good will have a true
- knowledge of them.
-
- That, he said, is a shrewd suspicion of yours.
-
- And if we only have a guardian who has this knowledge our State
- will be perfectly ordered?
-
- Of course, he replied; but I wish that you would tell me whether
- you conceive this supreme principle of the good to be knowledge
- or pleasure, or different from either.
-
- Aye, I said, I knew all along that a fastidious gentleman like you
- would not be contented with the thoughts of other people about
- these matters.
-
- True, Socrates; but I must say that one who like you has passed
- a lifetime in the study of philosophy should not be always repeating
- the opinions of others, and never telling his own.
-
- Well, but has any one a right to say positively what he does not know?
-
- Not, he said, with the assurance of positive certainty;
- he has no right to do that: but he may say what he thinks,
- as a matter of opinion.
-
- And do you not know, I said, that all mere opinions are bad,
- and the best of them blind? You would not deny that those who
- have any true notion without intelligence are only like blind
- men who feel their way along the road?
-
- Very true.
-
- And do you wish to behold what is blind and crooked and base,
- when others will tell you of brightness and beauty?
-
- GLAUCON - SOCRATES
-
- Still, I must implore you, Socrates, said Glaucon, not to turn
- away just as you are reaching the goal; if you will only give such
- an explanation of the good as you have already given of justice
- and temperance and the other virtues, we shall be satisfied.
-
- Yes, my friend, and I shall be at least equally satisfied,
- but I cannot help fearing that I shall fall, and that my indiscreet
- zeal will bring ridicule upon me. No, sweet sirs, let us not at
- present ask what is the actual nature of the good, for to reach
- what is now in my thoughts would be an effort too great for me.
- But of the child of the good who is likest him, I would fain speak,
- if I could be sure that you wished to hear--otherwise, not.
-
- By all means, he said, tell us about the child, and you shall
- remain in our debt for the account of the parent.
-
- I do indeed wish, I replied, that I could pay, and you receive,
- the account of the parent, and not, as now, of the offspring only;
- take, however, this latter by way of interest, and at the same time
- have a care that i do not render a false account, although I have
- no intention of deceiving you.
-
- Yes, we will take all the care that we can: proceed.
-
- Yes, I said, but I must first come to an understanding with you,
- and remind you of what I have mentioned in the course of this discussion,
- and at many other times.
-
- What?
-
- The old story, that there is a many beautiful and a many good,
- and so of other things which we describe and define; to all of them
- `many' is applied.
-
- True, he said.
-
- And there is an absolute beauty and an absolute good, and of other
- things to which the term `many' is applied there is an absolute;
- for they may be brought under a single idea, which is called
- the essence of each.
-
- Very true.
-
- The many, as we say, are seen but not known, and the ideas are known
- but not seen.
-
- Exactly.
-
- And what is the organ with which we see the visible things?
-
- The sight, he said.
-
- And with the hearing, I said, we hear, and with the other senses
- perceive the other objects of sense?
-
- True.
-
- But have you remarked that sight is by far the most costly and complex
- piece of workmanship which the artificer of the senses ever contrived?
-
- No, I never have, he said.
-
- Then reflect; has the ear or voice need of any third or additional
- nature in order that the one may be able to hear and the other
- to be heard?
-
- Nothing of the sort.
-
- No, indeed, I replied; and the same is true of most, if not all,
- the other senses--you would not say that any of them requires such
- an addition?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- But you see that without the addition of some other nature there
- is no seeing or being seen?
-
- How do you mean?
-
- Sight being, as I conceive, in the eyes, and he who has eyes
- wanting to see; colour being also present in them, still unless
- there be a third nature specially adapted to the purpose, the owner
- of the eyes will see nothing and the colours will be invisible.
-
- Of what nature are you speaking?
-
- Of that which you term light, I replied.
-
- True, he said.
-
- Noble, then, is the bond which links together sight and visibility,
- and great beyond other bonds by no small difference of nature;
- for light is their bond, and light is no ignoble thing?
-
- Nay, he said, the reverse of ignoble.
-
- And which, I said, of the gods in heaven would you say was the lord
- of this element? Whose is that light which makes the eye to see
- perfectly and the visible to appear?
-
- You mean the sun, as you and all mankind say.
-
- May not the relation of sight to this deity be described as follows?
-
- How?
-
- Neither sight nor the eye in which sight resides is the sun?
-
- No.
-
- Yet of all the organs of sense the eye is the most like the sun?
-
- By far the most like.
-
- And the power which the eye possesses is a sort of effluence
- which is dispensed from the sun?
-
- Exactly.
-
- Then the sun is not sight, but the author of sight who is recognised
- by sight.
-
- True, he said.
-
- And this is he whom I call the child of the good, whom the good
- begat in his own likeness, to be in the visible world, in relation
- to sight and the things of sight, what the good is in the intellectual
- world in relation to mind and the things of mind.
-
- Will you be a little more explicit? he said.
-
- Why, you know, I said, that the eyes, when a person directs them
- towards objects on which the light of day is no longer shining,
- but the moon and stars only, see dimly, and are nearly blind;
- they seem to have no clearness of vision in them?
-
- Very true.
-
- But when they are directed towards objects on which the sun shines,
- they see clearly and there is sight in them?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And the soul is like the eye: when resting upon that on which truth
- and being shine, the soul perceives and understands and is radiant
- with intelligence; but when turned towards the twilight of becoming
- and perishing, then she has opinion only, and goes blinking about,
- and is first of one opinion and then of another, and seems to have
- no intelligence?
-
- Just so.
-
- Now, that which imparts truth to the known and the power of knowing
- to the knower is what I would have you term the idea of good,
- and this you will deem to be the cause of science, and of truth
- in so far as the latter becomes the subject of knowledge;
- beautiful too, as are both truth and knowledge, you will be right
- in esteeming this other nature as more beautiful than either;
- and, as in the previous instance, light and sight may be truly said
- to be like the sun, and yet not to be the sun, so in this other sphere,
- science and truth may be deemed to be like the good, but not the good;
- the good has a place of honour yet higher.
-
- What a wonder of beauty that must be, he said, which is the author
- of science and truth, and yet surpasses them in beauty; for you
- surely cannot mean to say that pleasure is the good?
-
- God forbid, I replied; but may I ask you to consider the image
- in another point of view?
-
- In what point of view?
-
- You would say, would you not, that the sun is only the author of
- visibility in all visible things, but of generation and nourishment
- and growth, though he himself is not generation?
-
- Certainly.
-
- In like manner the good may be said to be not only the author
- of knowledge to all things known, but of their being and essence,
- and yet the good is not essence, but far exceeds essence in dignity
- and power.
-
- Glaucon said, with a ludicrous earnestness: By the light of heaven,
- how amazing!
-
- Yes, I said, and the exaggeration may be set down to you;
- for you made me utter my fancies.
-
- And pray continue to utter them; at any rate let us hear if there
- is anything more to be said about the similitude of the sun.
-
- Yes, I said, there is a great deal more.
-
- Then omit nothing, however slight.
-
- I will do my best, I said; but I should think that a great deal
- will have to be omitted.
-
- You have to imagine, then, that there are two ruling powers, and that one
- of them is set over the intellectual world, the other over the visible.
- I do not say heaven, lest you should fancy that I am playing upon
- the name ('ourhanoz, orhatoz'). May I suppose that you have this
- distinction of the visible and intelligible fixed in your mind?
-
- I have.
-
- Now take a line which has been cut into two unequal parts, and divide
- each of them again in the same proportion, and suppose the two main
- divisions to answer, one to the visible and the other to the intelligible,
- and then compare the subdivisions in respect of their clearness
- and want of clearness, and you will find that the first section in
- the sphere of the visible consists of images. And by images I mean,
- in the first place, shadows, and in the second place, reflections in water
- and in solid, smooth and polished bodies and the like: Do you understand?
-
- Yes, I understand.
-
- Imagine, now, the other section, of which this is only the resemblance,
- to include the animals which we see, and everything that grows
- or is made.
-
- Very good.
-
- Would you not admit that both the sections of this division have
- different degrees of truth, and that the copy is to the original
- as the sphere of opinion is to the sphere of knowledge?
-
- Most undoubtedly.
-
- Next proceed to consider the manner in which the sphere
- of the intellectual is to be divided.
-
- In what manner?
-
- Thus:--There are two subdivisions, in the lower or which the soul
- uses the figures given by the former division as images;
- the enquiry can only be hypothetical, and instead of going upwards
- to a principle descends to the other end; in the higher of the two,
- the soul passes out of hypotheses, and goes up to a principle which
- is above hypotheses, making no use of images as in the former case,
- but proceeding only in and through the ideas themselves.
-
- I do not quite understand your meaning, he said.
-
- Then I will try again; you will understand me better when I
- have made some preliminary remarks. You are aware that students
- of geometry, arithmetic, and the kindred sciences assume the odd
- and the even and the figures and three kinds of angles and the like
- in their several branches of science; these are their hypotheses,
- which they and everybody are supposed to know, and therefore they do
- not deign to give any account of them either to themselves or others;
- but they begin with them, and go on until they arrive at last,
- and in a consistent manner, at their conclusion?
-
- Yes, he said, I know.
-
- And do you not know also that although they make use of the visible
- forms and reason about them, they are thinking not of these, but of
- the ideals which they resemble; not of the figures which they draw,
- but of the absolute square and the absolute diameter, and so on--
- the forms which they draw or make, and which have shadows and
- reflections in water of their own, are converted by them into images,
- but they are really seeking to behold the things themselves,
- which can only be seen with the eye of the mind?
-
- That is true.
-
- And of this kind I spoke as the intelligible, although in the search
- after it the soul is compelled to use hypotheses; not ascending
- to a first principle, because she is unable to rise above the region
- of hypothesis, but employing the objects of which the shadows below
- are resemblances in their turn as images, they having in relation
- to the shadows and reflections of them a greater distinctness,
- and therefore a higher value.
-
- I understand, he said, that you are speaking of the province
- of geometry and the sister arts.
-
- And when I speak of the other division of the intelligible,
- you will understand me to speak of that other sort of knowledge
- which reason herself attains by the power of dialectic,
- using the hypotheses not as first principles, but only as hypotheses--
- that is to say, as steps and points of departure into a world
- which is above hypotheses, in order that she may soar beyond them
- to the first principle of the whole; and clinging to this and then
- to that which depends on this, by successive steps she descends again
- without the aid of any sensible object, from ideas, through ideas,
- and in ideas she ends.
-
- I understand you, he replied; not perfectly, for you seem to me
- to be describing a task which is really tremendous; but, at any rate,
- I understand you to say that knowledge and being, which the science
- of dialectic contemplates, are clearer than the notions of the arts,
- as they are termed, which proceed from hypotheses only:
- these are also contemplated by the understanding, and not by
- the senses: yet, because they start from hypotheses and do not
- ascend to a principle, those who contemplate them appear to you
- not to exercise the higher reason upon them, although when a first
- principle is added to them they are cognizable by the higher reason.
- And the habit which is concerned with geometry and the cognate
- sciences I suppose that you would term understanding and not reason,
- as being intermediate between opinion and reason.
-
- You have quite conceived my meaning, I said; and now, corresponding to
- these four divisions, let there be four faculties in the soul-reason
- answering to the highest, understanding to the second, faith (or conviction)
- to the third, and perception of shadows to the last-and let there
- be a scale of them, and let us suppose that the several faculties
- have clearness in the same degree that their objects have truth.
-
- I understand, he replied, and give my assent, and accept your arrangement.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK VII
-
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- AND now, I said, let me show in a figure how far our nature is enlightened
- or unenlightened:--Behold! human beings living in a underground den,
- which has a mouth open towards the light and reaching all along the den;
- here they have been from their childhood, and have their legs and necks
- chained so that they cannot move, and can only see before them,
- being prevented by the chains from turning round their heads.
- Above and behind them a fire is blazing at a distance,
- and between the fire and the prisoners there is a raised way;
- and you will see, if you look, a low wall built along the way,
- like the screen which marionette players have in front of them,
- over which they show the puppets.
-
- I see.
-
- And do you see, I said, men passing along the wall carrying all
- sorts of vessels, and statues and figures of animals made of wood
- and stone and various materials, which appear over the wall?
- Some of them are talking, others silent.
-
- You have shown me a strange image, and they are strange prisoners.
-
- Like ourselves, I replied; and they see only their own shadows,
- or the shadows of one another, which the fire throws on the opposite
- wall of the cave?
-
- True, he said; how could they see anything but the shadows if they
- were never allowed to move their heads?
-
- And of the objects which are being carried in like manner they
- would only see the shadows?
-
- Yes, he said.
-
- And if they were able to converse with one another, would they
- not suppose that they were naming what was actually before them?
-
- Very true.
-
- And suppose further that the prison had an echo which came from the
- other side, would they not be sure to fancy when one of the passers-by
- spoke that the voice which they heard came from the passing shadow?
-
- No question, he replied.
-
- To them, I said, the truth would be literally nothing but the shadows
- of the images.
-
- That is certain.
-
- And now look again, and see what will naturally follow it'
- the prisoners are released and disabused of their error. At first,
- when any of them is liberated and compelled suddenly to stand
- up and turn his neck round and walk and look towards the light,
- he will suffer sharp pains; the glare will distress him, and he
- will be unable to see the realities of which in his former state
- he had seen the shadows; and then conceive some one saying to him,
- that what he saw before was an illusion, but that now, when he
- is approaching nearer to being and his eye is turned towards more
- real existence, he has a clearer vision, -what will be his reply?
- And you may further imagine that his instructor is pointing
- to the objects as they pass and requiring him to name them,
- -will he not be perplexed? Will he not fancy that the shadows
- which he formerly saw are truer than the objects which are now shown
- to him?
-
- Far truer.
-
- And if he is compelled to look straight at the light, will he
- not have a pain in his eyes which will make him turn away to take
- and take in the objects of vision which he can see, and which he
- will conceive to be in reality clearer than the things which are
- now being shown to him?
-
- True, he now
-
- And suppose once more, that he is reluctantly dragged up a steep
- and rugged ascent, and held fast until he's forced into the presence
- of the sun himself, is he not likely to be pained and irritated?
- When he approaches the light his eyes will be dazzled, and he will not
- be able to see anything at all of what are now called realities.
-
- Not all in a moment, he said.
-
- He will require to grow accustomed to the sight of the upper world.
- And first he will see the shadows best, next the reflections of men
- and other objects in the water, and then the objects themselves;
- then he will gaze upon the light of the moon and the stars and the
- spangled heaven; and he will see the sky and the stars by night better
- than the sun or the light of the sun by day?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Last of he will be able to see the sun, and not mere reflections
- of him in the water, but he will see him in his own proper place,
- and not in another; and he will contemplate him as he is.
-
- Certainly.
-
- He will then proceed to argue that this is he who gives the season
- and the years, and is the guardian of all that is in the visible world,
- and in a certain way the cause of all things which he and his fellows
- have been accustomed to behold?
-
- Clearly, he said, he would first see the sun and then reason about him.
-
- And when he remembered his old habitation, and the wisdom of the den
- and his fellow-prisoners, do you not suppose that he would felicitate
- himself on the change, and pity them?
-
- Certainly, he would.
-
- And if they were in the habit of conferring honours among themselves
- on those who were quickest to observe the passing shadows and
- to remark which of them went before, and which followed after,
- and which were together; and who were therefore best able to draw
- conclusions as to the future, do you think that he would care
- for such honours and glories, or envy the possessors of them?
- Would he not say with Homer,
-
- Better to be the poor servant of a poor master,
-
- and to endure anything, rather than think as they do and live
- after their manner?
-
- Yes, he said, I think that he would rather suffer anything than
- entertain these false notions and live in this miserable manner.
-
- Imagine once more, I said, such an one coming suddenly out of the sun
- to be replaced in his old situation; would he not be certain
- to have his eyes full of darkness?
-
- To be sure, he said.
-
- And if there were a contest, and he had to compete in measuring
- the shadows with the prisoners who had never moved out of the den,
- while his sight was still weak, and before his eyes had become steady
- (and the time which would be needed to acquire this new habit
- of sight might be very considerable) would he not be ridiculous?
- Men would say of him that up he went and down he came without
- his eyes; and that it was better not even to think of ascending;
- and if any one tried to loose another and lead him up to the light,
- let them only catch the offender, and they would put him
- to death.
-
- No question, he said.
-
- This entire allegory, I said, you may now append, dear Glaucon,
- to the previous argument; the prison-house is the world of sight,
- the light of the fire is the sun, and you will not misapprehend me
- if you interpret the journey upwards to be the ascent of the soul
- into the intellectual world according to my poor belief, which,
- at your desire, I have expressed whether rightly or wrongly
- God knows. But, whether true or false, my opinion is that in
- the world of knowledge the idea of good appears last of all,
- and is seen only with an effort; and, when seen, is also inferred
- to be the universal author of all things beautiful and right,
- parent of light and of the lord of light in this visible world,
- and the immediate source of reason and truth in the intellectual;
- and that this is the power upon which he who would act rationally,
- either in public or private life must have his eye fixed.
-
- I agree, he said, as far as I am able to understand you.
-
- Moreover, I said, you must not wonder that those who attain
- to this beatific vision are unwilling to descend to human affairs;
- for their souls are ever hastening into the upper world where they
- desire to dwell; which desire of theirs is very natural, if our
- allegory may be trusted.
-
- Yes, very natural.
-
- And is there anything surprising in one who passes from divine
- contemplations to the evil state of man, misbehaving himself in a
- ridiculous manner; if, while his eyes are blinking and before he
- has become accustomed to the surrounding darkness, he is compelled
- to fight in courts of law, or in other places, about the images
- or the shadows of images of justice, and is endeavouring to meet
- the conceptions of those who have never yet seen absolute justice?
-
- Anything but surprising, he replied.
-
- Any one who has common sense will remember that the bewilderments
- of the eyes are of two kinds, and arise from two causes,
- either from coming out of the light or from going into the light,
- which is true of the mind's eye, quite as much as of the bodily eye;
- and he who remembers this when he sees any one whose vision is
- perplexed and weak, will not be too ready to laugh; he will first
- ask whether that soul of man has come out of the brighter light,
- and is unable to see because unaccustomed to the dark, or having
- turned from darkness to the day is dazzled by excess of light.
- And he will count the one happy in his condition and state of being,
- and he will pity the other; or, if he have a mind to laugh at the soul
- which comes from below into the light, there will be more reason in this
- than in the laugh which greets him who returns from above out of
- the light into the den.
-
- That, he said, is a very just distinction.
-
- But then, if I am right, certain professors of education must
- be wrong when they say that they can put a knowledge into the soul
- which was not there before, like sight into blind eyes.
-
- They undoubtedly say this, he replied.
-
- Whereas, our argument shows that the power and capacity of
- learning exists in the soul already; and that just as the eye
- was unable to turn from darkness to light without the whole body,
- so too the instrument of knowledge can only by the movement
- of the whole soul be turned from the world of becoming into
- that of being, and learn by degrees to endure the sight of being,
- and of the brightest and best of being, or in other words, of the good.
-
- Very true.
-
- And must there not be some art which will effect conversion in
- the easiest and quickest manner; not implanting the faculty of sight,
- for that exists already, but has been turned in the wrong direction,
- and is looking away from the truth?
-
- Yes, he said, such an art may be presumed.
-
- And whereas the other so-called virtues of the soul seem to be
- akin to bodily qualities, for even when they are not originally
- innate they can be implanted later by habit and exercise,
- the of wisdom more than anything else contains a divine element
- which always remains, and by this conversion is rendered useful
- and profitable; or, on the other hand, hurtful and useless.
- Did you never observe the narrow intelligence flashing from the keen
- eye of a clever rogue--how eager he is, how clearly his paltry soul
- sees the way to his end; he is the reverse of blind, but his keen
- eyesight is forced into the service of evil, and he is mischievous
- in proportion to his cleverness.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- But what if there had been a circumcision of such natures in the days
- of their youth; and they had been severed from those sensual pleasures,
- such as eating and drinking, which, like leaden weights, were attached
- to them at their birth, and which drag them down and turn the vision
- of their souls upon the things that are below--if, I say, they had been
- released from these impediments and turned in the opposite direction,
- the very same faculty in them would have seen the truth as keenly
- as they see what their eyes are turned to now.
-
- Very likely.
-
- Yes, I said; and there is another thing which is likely.
- or rather a necessary inference from what has preceded, that neither
- the uneducated and uninformed of the truth, nor yet those who never
- make an end of their education, will be able ministers of State;
- not the former, because they have no single aim of duty which
- is the rule of all their actions, private as well as public;
- nor the latter, because they will not act at all except upon compulsion,
- fancying that they are already dwelling apart in the islands of
- the blest.
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- Then, I said, the business of us who are the founders of the State
- will be to compel the best minds to attain that knowledge which we
- have already shown to be the greatest of all-they must continue
- to ascend until they arrive at the good; but when they have ascended
- and seen enough we must not allow them to do as they do now.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- I mean that they remain in the upper world: but this must not be allowed;
- they must be made to descend again among the prisoners in the den,
- and partake of their labours and honours, whether they are worth
- having or not.
-
- But is not this unjust? he said; ought we to give them a worse life,
- when they might have a better?
-
- You have again forgotten, my friend, I said, the intention of
- the legislator, who did not aim at making any one class in the State
- happy above the rest; the happiness was to be in the whole State,
- and he held the citizens together by persuasion and necessity,
- making them benefactors of the State, and therefore benefactors
- of one another; to this end he created them, not to please themselves,
- but to be his instruments in binding up the State.
-
- True, he said, I had forgotten.
-
- Observe, Glaucon, that there will be no injustice in compelling
- our philosophers to have a care and providence of others; we shall
- explain to them that in other States, men of their class are not
- obliged to share in the toils of politics: and this is reasonable,
- for they grow up at their own sweet will, and the government would
- rather not have them. Being self-taught, they cannot be expected
- to show any gratitude for a culture which they have never received.
- But we have brought you into the world to be rulers of the hive,
- kings of yourselves and of the other citizens, and have educated you
- far better and more perfectly than they have been educated, and you
- are better able to share in the double duty. Wherefore each of you,
- when his turn comes, must go down to the general underground abode,
- and get the habit of seeing in the dark. When you have acquired the habit,
- you will see ten thousand times better than the inhabitants of the den,
- and you will know what the several images are, and what they represent,
- because you have seen the beautiful and just and good in their truth.
- And thus our State which is also yours will be a reality,
- and not a dream only, and will be administered in a spirit unlike
- that of other States, in which men fight with one another about
- shadows only and are distracted in the struggle for power, which in
- their eyes is a great good. Whereas the truth is that the State
- in which the rulers are most reluctant to govern is always the best
- and most quietly governed, and the State in which they are most eager,
- the worst.
-
- Quite true, he replied.
-
- And will our pupils, when they hear this, refuse to take their turn
- at the toils of State, when they are allowed to spend the greater
- part of their time with one another in the heavenly light?
-
- Impossible, he answered; for they are just men, and the commands
- which we impose upon them are just; there can be no doubt
- that every one of them will take office as a stern necessity,
- and not after the fashion of our present rulers of State.
-
- Yes, my friend, I said; and there lies the point. You must contrive
- for your future rulers another and a better life than that of a ruler,
- and then you may have a well-ordered State; for only in the State which
- offers this, will they rule who are truly rich, not in silver and gold,
- but in virtue and wisdom, which are the true blessings of life.
- Whereas if they go to the administration of public affairs,
- poor and hungering after the' own private advantage, thinking that
- hence they are to snatch the chief good, order there can never be;
- for they will be fighting about office, and the civil and domestic
- broils which thus arise will be the ruin of the rulers themselves and
- of the whole State.
-
- Most true, he replied.
-
- And the only life which looks down upon the life of political
- ambition is that of true philosophy. Do you know of any other?
-
- Indeed, I do not, he said.
-
- And those who govern ought not to be lovers of the task?
- For, if they are, there will be rival lovers, and they will fight.
-
- No question.
-
- Who then are those whom we shall compel to be guardians?
- Surely they will be the men who are wisest about affairs of State,
- and by whom the State is best administered, and who at the same
- time have other honours and another and a better life than that
- of politics?
-
- They are the men, and I will choose them, he replied.
-
- And now shall we consider in what way such guardians will be produced,
- and how they are to be brought from darkness to light,--as some are
- said to have ascended from the world below to the gods?
-
- By all means, he replied.
-
- The process, I said, is not the turning over of an oyster-shell,
- but the turning round of a soul passing from a day which is little
- better than night to the true day of being, that is, the ascent
- from below, which we affirm to be true philosophy?
-
- Quite so.
-
- And should we not enquire what sort of knowledge has the power
- of effecting such a change?
-
- Certainly.
-
- What sort of knowledge is there which would draw the soul from becoming
- to being? And another consideration has just occurred to me:
- You will remember that our young men are to be warrior athletes
-
- Yes, that was said.
-
- Then this new kind of knowledge must have an additional quality?
-
- What quality?
-
- Usefulness in war.
-
- Yes, if possible.
-
- There were two parts in our former scheme of education, were there not?
-
- Just so.
-
- There was gymnastic which presided over the growth and decay of the body,
- and may therefore be regarded as having to do with generation and corruption?
-
- True.
-
- Then that is not the knowledge which we are seeking to discover?
- No.
-
- But what do you say of music, which also entered to a certain
- extent into our former scheme?
-
- Music, he said, as you will remember, was the counterpart of gymnastic,
- and trained the guardians by the influences of habit, by harmony making
- them harmonious, by rhythm rhythmical, but not giving them science;
- and the words, whether fabulous or possibly true, had kindred elements
- of rhythm and harmony in them. But in music there was nothing
- which tended to that good which you are now seeking.
-
- You are most accurate, I said, in your recollection; in music there
- certainly was nothing of the kind. But what branch of knowledge
- is there, my dear Glaucon, which is of the desired nature;
- since all the useful arts were reckoned mean by us?
-
- Undoubtedly; and yet if music and gymnastic are excluded,
- and the arts are also excluded, what remains?
-
- Well, I said, there may be nothing left of our special subjects;
- and then we shall have to take something which is not special,
- but of universal application.
-
- What may that be?
-
- A something which all arts and sciences and intelligences use
- in common, and which every one first has to learn among the elements
- of education.
-
- What is that?
-
- The little matter of distinguishing one, two, and three--in a word,
- number and calculation:--do not all arts and sciences necessarily
- partake of them?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then the art of war partakes of them?
-
- To the sure.
-
- Then Palamedes, whenever he appears in tragedy, proves Agamemnon
- ridiculously unfit to be a general. Did you never remark how he
- declares that he had invented number, and had numbered the ships
- and set in array the ranks of the army at Troy; which implies
- that they had never been numbered before, and Agamemnon must be
- supposed literally to have been incapable of counting his own feet--
- how could he if he was ignorant of number? And if that is true,
- what sort of general must he have been?
-
- I should say a very strange one, if this was as you say.
-
- Can we deny that a warrior should have a knowledge of arithmetic?
-
- Certainly he should, if he is to have the smallest understanding
- of military tactics, or indeed, I should rather say, if he
- is to be a man at all.
-
- I should like to know whether you have the same notion which I
- have of this study?
-
- What is your notion?
-
- It appears to me to be a study of the kind which we are seeking,
- and which leads naturally to reflection, but never to have been
- rightly used; for the true use of it is simply to draw the soul
- towards being.
-
- Will you explain your meaning? he said.
-
- I will try, I said; and I wish you would share the enquiry with me,
- and say `yes' or `no' when I attempt to distinguish in my own mind
- what branches of knowledge have this attracting power, in order
- that we may have clearer proof that arithmetic is, as I suspect,
- one of them.
-
- Explain, he said.
-
- I mean to say that objects of sense are of two kinds; some of them
- do not invite thought because the sense is an adequate judge of them;
- while in the case of other objects sense is so untrustworthy that
- further enquiry is imperatively demanded.
-
- You are clearly referring, he said, to the manner in which the senses
- are imposed upon by distance, and by painting in light and shade.
-
- No, I said, that is not at all my meaning.
-
- Then what is your meaning?
-
- When speaking of uninviting objects, I mean those which do not pass
- from one sensation to the opposite; inviting objects are those which do;
- in this latter case the sense coming upon the object, whether at a
- distance or near, gives no more vivid idea of anything in particular
- than of its opposite. An illustration will make my meaning clearer:--
- here are three fingers--a little finger, a second finger,
- and a middle finger.
-
- Very good.
-
- You may suppose that they are seen quite close: And here comes
- the point.
-
- What is it?
-
- Each of them equally appears a finger, whether seen in the middle
- or at the extremity, whether white or black, or thick or thin--
- it makes no difference; a finger is a finger all the same.
- In these cases a man is not compelled to ask of thought the question,
- what is a finger? for the sight never intimates to the mind that a finger
- is other than a finger.
-
- True.
-
- And therefore, I said, as we might expect, there is nothing here
- which invites or excites intelligence.
-
- There is not, he said.
-
- But is this equally true of the greatness and smallness of the fingers?
- Can sight adequately perceive them? and is no difference made by the
- circumstance that one of the fingers is in the middle and another at
- the extremity? And in like manner does the touch adequately perceive
- the qualities of thickness or thinness, or softness or hardness?
- And so of the other senses; do they give perfect intimations
- of such matters? Is not their mode of operation on this wise--
- the sense which is concerned with the quality of hardness is
- necessarily concerned also with the quality of softness, and only
- intimates to the soul that the same thing is felt to be both hard
- and soft?
-
- You are quite right, he said.
-
- And must not the soul be perplexed at this intimation which the sense
- gives of a hard which is also soft? What, again, is the meaning
- of light and heavy, if that which is light is also heavy,
- and that which is heavy, light?
-
- Yes, he said, these intimations which the soul receives
- are very curious and require to be explained.
-
- Yes, I said, and in these perplexities the soul naturally summons
- to her aid calculation and intelligence, that she may see whether
- the several objects announced to her are one or two.
-
- True.
-
- And if they turn out to be two, is not each of them one and different?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And if each is one, and both are two, she will conceive the two
- as in a state of division, for if there were undivided they could
- only be conceived of as one?
-
- True.
-
- The eye certainly did see both small and great, but only
- in a confused manner; they were not distinguished.
-
- Yes.
-
- Whereas the thinking mind, intending to light up the chaos,
- was compelled to reverse the process, and look at small and great
- as separate and not confused.
-
- Very true.
-
- Was not this the beginning of the enquiry `What is great?'
- and `What is small?'
-
- Exactly so.
-
- And thus arose the distinction of the visible and the intelligible.
-
- Most true.
-
- This was what I meant when I spoke of impressions which invited
- the intellect, or the reverse--those which are simultaneous with
- opposite impressions, invite thought; those which are not simultaneous do not.
-
- I understand, he said, and agree with you.
-
- And to which class do unity and number belong?
-
- I do not know, he replied.
-
- Think a little and you will see that what has preceded will supply
- the answer; for if simple unity could be adequately perceived by
- the sight or by any other sense, then, as we were saying in the case
- of the finger, there would be nothing to attract towards being;
- but when there is some contradiction always present, and one is
- the reverse of one and involves the conception of plurality,
- then thought begins to be aroused within us, and the soul perplexed
- and wanting to arrive at a decision asks `What is absolute unity?'
- This is the way in which the study of the one has a power of drawing
- and converting the mind to the contemplation of true being.
-
- And surely, he said, this occurs notably in the case of one;
- for we see the same thing to be both one and infinite in multitude?
-
- Yes, I said; and this being true of one must be equally true
- of all number?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And all arithmetic and calculation have to do with number?
-
- Yes.
-
- And they appear to lead the mind towards truth?
-
- Yes, in a very remarkable manner.
-
- Then this is knowledge of the kind for which we are seeking,
- having a double use, military and philosophical; for the man of war
- must learn the art of number or he will not know how to array
- his troops, and the philosopher also, because he has to rise out
- of the sea of change and lay hold of true being, and therefore
- he must be an arithmetician.
-
- That is true.
-
- And our guardian is both warrior and philosopher?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then this is a kind of knowledge which legislation may fitly prescribe;
- and we must endeavour to persuade those who are prescribe
- to be the principal men of our State to go and learn arithmetic,
- not as amateurs, but they must carry on the study until they
- see the nature of numbers with the mind only; nor again,
- like merchants or retail-traders, with a view to buying or selling,
- but for the sake of their military use, and of the soul herself;
- and because this will be the easiest way for her to pass from becoming
- to truth and being.
-
- That is excellent, he said.
-
- Yes, I said, and now having spoken of it, I must add how charming
- the science is! and in how many ways it conduces to our desired end,
- if pursued in the spirit of a philosopher, and not of a shopkeeper!
-
- How do you mean?
-
- I mean, as I was saying, that arithmetic has a very great and
- elevating effect, compelling the soul to reason about abstract number,
- and rebelling against the introduction of visible or tangible
- objects into the argument. You know how steadily the masters of
- the art repel and ridicule any one who attempts to divide absolute
- unity when he is calculating, and if you divide, they multiply,
- taking care that one shall continue one and not become lost in fractions.
-
- That is very true.
-
- Now, suppose a person were to say to them: O my friends, what are
- these wonderful numbers about which you are reasoning, in which,
- as you say, there is a unity such as you demand, and each unit
- is equal, invariable, indivisible,--what would they answer?
-
- They would answer, as I should conceive, that they were speaking
- of those numbers which can only be realised in thought.
-
- Then you see that this knowledge may be truly called necessary,
- necessitating as it clearly does the use of the pure intelligence
- in the attainment of pure truth?
-
- Yes; that is a marked characteristic of it.
-
- And have you further observed, that those who have a natural talent
- for calculation are generally quick at every other kind of knowledge;
- and even the dull if they have had an arithmetical training,
- although they may derive no other advantage from it, always become much
- quicker than they would otherwise have been.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- And indeed, you will not easily find a more difficult study,
- and not many as difficult.
-
- You will not.
-
- And, for all these reasons, arithmetic is a kind of knowledge in
- which the best natures should be trained, and which must not be given up.
-
- I agree.
-
- Let this then be made one of our subjects of education. And next,
- shall we enquire whether the kindred science also concerns us?
-
- You mean geometry?
-
- Exactly so.
-
- Clearly, he said, we are concerned with that part of geometry which
- relates to war; for in pitching a camp, or taking up a position,
- or closing or extending the lines of an army, or any other
- military manoeuvre, whether in actual battle or on a march, it will
- make all the difference whether a general is or is not a geometrician.
-
- Yes, I said, but for that purpose a very little of either geometry
- or calculation will be enough; the question relates rather to
- the greater and more advanced part of geometry--whether that tends
- in any degree to make more easy the vision of the idea of good;
- and thither, as I was saying, all things tend which compel the soul
- to turn her gaze towards that place, where is the full perfection
- of being, which she ought, by all means, to behold.
-
- True, he said.
-
- Then if geometry compels us to view being, it concerns us;
- if becoming only, it does not concern us?
-
- Yes, that is what we assert.
-
- Yet anybody who has the least acquaintance with geometry will not
- deny that such a conception of the science is in flat contradiction
- to the ordinary language of geometricians.
-
- How so?
-
- They have in view practice only, and are always speaking? in a narrow
- and ridiculous manner, of squaring and extending and applying and the like--
- they confuse the necessities of geometry with those of daily life;
- whereas knowledge is the real object of the whole science.
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- Then must not a further admission be made?
-
- What admission?
-
- That the knowledge at which geometry aims is knowledge of the eternal,
- and not of aught perishing and transient.
-
- That, he replied, may be readily allowed, and is true.
-
- Then, my noble friend, geometry will draw the soul towards truth,
- and create the spirit of philosophy, and raise up that which is now
- unhappily allowed to fall down.
-
- Nothing will be more likely to have such an effect.
-
- Then nothing should be more sternly laid down than that the
- inhabitants of your fair city should by all means learn geometry.
- Moreover the science has indirect effects, which are not small.
-
- Of what kind? he said.
-
- There are the military advantages of which you spoke, I said;
- and in all departments of knowledge, as experience proves, any one
- who has studied geometry is infinitely quicker of apprehension than
- one who has not.
-
- Yes indeed, he said, there is an infinite difference between them.
-
- Then shall we propose this as a second branch of knowledge
- which our youth will study?
-
- Let us do so, he replied.
-
- And suppose we make astronomy the third--what do you say?
-
- I am strongly inclined to it, he said; the observation of the seasons
- and of months and years is as essential to the general as it
- is to the farmer or sailor.
-
- I am amused, I said, at your fear of the world, which makes you
- guard against the appearance of insisting upon useless studies;
- and I quite admit the difficulty of believing that in every man there
- is an eye of the soul which, when by other pursuits lost and dimmed,
- is by these purified and re-illumined; and is more precious far
- than ten thousand bodily eyes, for by it alone is truth seen.
- Now there are two classes of persons: one class of those who
- will agree with you and will take your words as a revelation;
- another class to whom they will be utterly unmeaning, and who will
- naturally deem them to be idle tales, for they see no sort of profit
- which is to be obtained from them. And therefore you had better
- decide at once with which of the two you are proposing to argue.
- You will very likely say with neither, and that your chief
- aim in carrying on the argument is your own improvement;
- at the same time you do not grudge to others any benefit which they
- may receive.
-
- I think that I should prefer to carry on the argument mainly
- on my own behalf.
-
- Then take a step backward, for we have gone wrong in the order
- of the sciences.
-
- What was the mistake? he said.
-
- After plane geometry, I said, we proceeded at once to solids
- in revolution, instead of taking solids in themselves;
- whereas after the second dimension the third, which is concerned
- with cubes and dimensions of depth, ought to have followed.
-
- That is true, Socrates; but so little seems to be known as yet
- about these subjects.
-
- Why, yes, I said, and for two reasons:--in the first place,
- no government patronises them; this leads to a want of energy
- in the pursuit of them, and they are difficult; in the second place,
- students cannot learn them unless they have a director.
- But then a director can hardly be found, and even if he could,
- as matters now stand, the students, who are very conceited, would not
- attend to him. That, however, would be otherwise if the whole
- State became the director of these studies and gave honour to them;
- then disciples would want to come, and there would be continuous
- and earnest search, and discoveries would be made; since even now,
- disregarded as they are by the world, and maimed of their fair proportions,
- and although none of their votaries can tell the use of them,
- still these studies force their way by their natural charm,
- and very likely, if they had the help of the State, they would some day
- emerge into light.
-
- Yes, he said, there is a remarkable charm in them.
- But I do not clearly understand the change in the order.
- First you began with a geometry of plane surfaces?
-
- Yes, I said.
-
- And you placed astronomy next, and then you made a step backward?
-
- Yes, and I have delayed you by my hurry; the ludicrous state
- of solid geometry, which, in natural order, should have followed,
- made me pass over this branch and go on to astronomy, or motion
- of solids.
-
- True, he said.
-
- Then assuming that the science now omitted would come into
- existence if encouraged by the State, let us go on to astronomy,
- which will be fourth.
-
- The right order, he replied. And now, Socrates, as you rebuked
- the vulgar manner in which I praised astronomy before, my praise
- shall be given in your own spirit. For every one, as I think,
- must see that astronomy compels the soul to look upwards and leads us
- from this world to another.
-
- Every one but myself, I said; to every one else this may be clear,
- but not to me.
-
- And what then would you say?
-
- I should rather say that those who elevate astronomy into philosophy
- appear to me to make us look downwards and not upwards.
-
- What do you mean? he asked.
-
- You, I replied, have in your mind a truly sublime conception of our
- knowledge of the things above. And I dare say that if a person
- were to throw his head back and study the fretted ceiling, you would
- still think that his mind was the percipient, and not his eyes.
- And you are very likely right, and I may be a simpleton:
- but, in my opinion, that knowledge only which is of being and of
- the unseen can make the soul look upwards, and whether a man gapes
- at the heavens or blinks on the ground, seeking to learn some
- particular of sense, I would deny that he can learn, for nothing
- of that sort is matter of science; his soul is looking downwards,
- not upwards, whether his way to knowledge is by water or by land,
- whether he floats, or only lies on his back.
-
- I acknowledge, he said, the justice of your rebuke. Still, I should
- like to ascertain how astronomy can be learned in any manner
- more conducive to that knowledge of which we are speaking?
-
- I will tell you, I said: The starry heaven which we behold is wrought
- upon a visible ground, and therefore, although the fairest and most
- perfect of visible things, must necessarily be deemed inferior far
- to the true motions of absolute swiftness and absolute slowness,
- which are relative to each other, and carry with them that which is
- contained in them, in the true number and in every true figure.
- Now, these are to be apprehended by reason and intelligence,
- but not by sight.
-
- True, he replied.
-
- The spangled heavens should be used as a pattern and with a view
- to that higher knowledge; their beauty is like the beauty of
- figures or pictures excellently wrought by the hand of Daedalus,
- or some other great artist, which we may chance to behold;
- any geometrician who saw them would appreciate the exquisiteness
- of their workmanship, but he would never dream of thinking
- that in them he could find the true equal or the true double,
- or the truth of any other proportion.
-
- No, he replied, such an idea would be ridiculous.
-
- And will not a true astronomer have the same feeling when he looks at
- the movements of the stars? Will he not think that heaven and the things
- in heaven are framed by the Creator of them in the most perfect manner?
- But he will never imagine that the proportions of night and day,
- or of both to the month, or of the month to the year, or of the stars
- to these and to one another, and any other things that are material
- and visible can also be eternal and subject to no deviation--
- that would be absurd; and it is equally absurd to take so much pains
- in investigating their exact truth.
-
- I quite agree, though I never thought of this before.
-
- Then, I said, in astronomy, as in geometry, we should employ problems,
- and let the heavens alone if we would approach the subject in the right
- way and so make the natural gift of reason to be of any real use.
-
- That, he said, is a work infinitely beyond our present astronomers.
-
- Yes, I said; and there are many other things which must also have a similar
- extension given to them, if our legislation is to be of any value.
- But can you tell me of any other suitable study?
-
- No, he said, not without thinking.
-
- Motion, I said, has many forms, and not one only; two of them are
- obvious enough even to wits no better than ours; and there are others,
- as I imagine, which may be left to wiser persons.
-
- But where are the two?
-
- There is a second, I said, which is the counterpart of the one
- already named.
-
- And what may that be?
-
- The second, I said, would seem relatively to the ears to be what
- the first is to the eyes; for I conceive that as the eyes are designed
- to look up at the stars, so are the ears to hear harmonious motions;
- and these are sister sciences--as the Pythagoreans say,
- and we, Glaucon, agree with them?
-
- Yes, he replied.
-
- But this, I said, is a laborious study, and therefore we had
- better go and learn of them; and they will tell us whether there
- are any other applications of these sciences. At the same time,
- we must not lose sight of our own higher object.
-
- What is that?
-
- There is a perfection which all knowledge ought to reach,
- and which our pupils ought also to attain, and not to fall short of,
- as I was saying that they did in astronomy. For in the science
- of harmony, as you probably know, the same thing happens.
- The teachers of harmony compare the sounds and consonances which
- are heard only, and their labour, like that of the astronomers,
- is in vain.
-
- Yes, by heaven! he said; and 'tis as good as a play to hear
- them talking about their condensed notes, as they call them;
- they put their ears close alongside of the strings like persons
- catching a sound from their neighbour's wall--one set of them
- declaring that they distinguish an intermediate note and have
- found the least interval which should be the unit of measurement;
- the others insisting that the two sounds have passed into the same--
- either party setting their ears before their understanding.
-
- You mean, I said, those gentlemen who tease and torture the strings
- and rack them on the pegs of the instrument: might carry on the metaphor
- and speak after their manner of the blows which the plectrum gives,
- and make accusations against the strings, both of backwardness
- and forwardness to sound; but this would be tedious, and therefore
- I will only say that these are not the men, and that I am referring
- to the Pythagoreans, of whom I was just now proposing to enquire
- about harmony. For they too are in error, like the astronomers;
- they investigate the numbers of the harmonies which are heard,
- but they never attain to problems-that is to say, they never reach
- the natural harmonies of number, or reflect why some numbers are
- harmonious and others not.
-
- That, he said, is a thing of more than mortal knowledge.
-
- A thing, I replied, which I would rather call useful; that is,
- if sought after with a view to the beautiful and good; but if pursued
- in any other spirit, useless. Very true, he said.
-
- Now, when all these studies reach the point of inter-communion
- and connection with one another, and come to be considered
- in their mutual affinities, then, I think, but not till then,
- will the pursuit of them have a value for our objects;
- otherwise there is no profit in them.
-
- I suspect so; but you are speaking, Socrates, of a vast work.
-
- What do you mean? I said; the prelude or what? Do you not know
- that all this is but the prelude to the actual strain which we
- have to learn? For you surely would not regard the skilled
- mathematician as a dialectician?
-
- Assuredly not, he said; I have hardly ever known a mathematician
- who was capable of reasoning.
-
- But do you imagine that men who are unable to give and take a reason
- will have the knowledge which we require of them?
-
- Neither can this be supposed.
-
- And so, Glaucon, I said, we have at last arrived at the hymn
- of dialectic. This is that strain which is of the intellect only,
- but which the faculty of sight will nevertheless be found to imitate;
- for sight, as you may remember, was imagined by us after a while to
- behold the real animals and stars, and last of all the sun himself.
- And so with dialectic; when a person starts on the discovery of
- the absolute by the light of reason only, and without any assistance
- of sense, and perseveres until by pure intelligence he arrives
- at the perception of the absolute good, he at last finds himself at
- the end of the intellectual world, as in the case of sight at the end
- of the visible.
-
- Exactly, he said.
-
- Then this is the progress which you call dialectic?
-
- True.
-
- But the release of the prisoners from chains, and their translation
- from the shadows to the images and to the light, and the ascent
- from the underground den to the sun, while in his presence they are
- vainly trying to look on animals and plants and the light of the sun,
- but are able to perceive even with their weak eyes the images in
- the water (which are divine), and are the shadows of true existence
- (not shadows of images cast by a light of fire, which compared
- with the sun is only an image)--this power of elevating the highest
- principle in the soul to the contemplation of that which is best
- in existence, with which we may compare the raising of that faculty
- which is the very light of the body to the sight of that which is
- brightest in the material and visible world--this power is given,
- as I was saying, by all that study and pursuit of the arts which has
- been described.
-
- I agree in what you are saying, he replied, which may be hard
- to believe, yet, from another point of view, is harder still to deny.
- This, however, is not a theme to be treated of in passing only,
- but will have to be discussed again and again. And so,
- whether our conclusion be true or false, let us assume all this,
- and proceed at once from the prelude or preamble to the chief strain,
- and describe that in like manner. Say, then, what is the nature
- and what are the divisions of dialectic, and what are the paths
- which lead thither; for these paths will also lead to our final rest?
-
- Dear Glaucon, I said, you will not be able to follow me here,
- though I would do my best, and you should behold not an image only
- but the absolute truth, according to my notion. Whether what I told
- you would or would not have been a reality I cannot venture to say;
- but you would have seen something like reality; of that I am confident.
-
- Doubtless, he replied.
-
- But I must also remind you, that the power of dialectic alone can
- reveal this, and only to one who is a disciple of the previous sciences.
-
- Of that assertion you may be as confident as of the last.
-
- And assuredly no one will argue that there is any other method
- of comprehending by any regular process all true existence or of
- ascertaining what each thing is in its own nature; for the arts
- in general are concerned with the desires or opinions of men,
- or are cultivated with a view to production and construction,
- or for the preservation of such productions and constructions;
- and as to the mathematical sciences which, as we were saying,
- have some apprehension of true being--geometry and the like--
- they only dream about being, but never can they behold the waking
- reality so long as they leave the hypotheses which they use unexamined,
- and are unable to give an account of them. For when a man
- knows not his own first principle, and when the conclusion and
- intermediate steps are also constructed out of he knows not what,
- how can he imagine that such a fabric of convention can ever
- become science?
-
- Impossible, he said.
-
- Then dialectic, and dialectic alone, goes directly to the first
- principle and is the only science which does away with hypotheses
- in order to make her ground secure; the eye of the soul, which is
- literally buried in an outlandish slough, is by her gentle aid
- lifted upwards; and she uses as handmaids and helpers in the work
- of conversion, the sciences which we have been discussing.
- Custom terms them sciences, but they ought to have some other name,
- implying greater clearness than opinion and less clearness than science:
- and this, in our previous sketch, was called understanding.
- But why should we dispute about names when we have realities of such
- importance to consider?
-
- Why indeed, he said, when any name will do which expresses
- the thought of the mind with clearness?
-
- At any rate, we are satisfied, as before, to have four divisions;
- two for intellect and two for opinion, and to call the first
- division science, the second understanding, the third belief,
- and the fourth perception of shadows, opinion being concerned
- with becoming, and intellect with being; and so to make a proportion:--
-
- As being is to becoming, so is pure intellect to opinion.
- And as intellect is to opinion, so is science to belief, and
- understanding to the perception of shadows.
-
- But let us defer the further correlation and subdivision of the
- subjects of opinion and of intellect, for it will be a long enquiry,
- many times longer than this has been.
-
- As far as I understand, he said, I agree.
-
- And do you also agree, I said, in describing the dialectician
- as one who attains a conception of the essence of each thing?
- And he who does not possess and is therefore unable to impart
- this conception, in whatever degree he fails, may in that degree
- also be said to fail in intelligence? Will you admit so much?
-
- Yes, he said; how can I deny it?
-
- And you would say the same of the conception of the good?
-
- Until the person is able to abstract and define rationally the idea
- of good, and unless he can run the gauntlet of all objections,
- and is ready to disprove them, not by appeals to opinion,
- but to absolute truth, never faltering at any step of the argument--
- unless he can do all this, you would say that he knows neither
- the idea of good nor any other good; he apprehends only a shadow,
- if anything at all, which is given by opinion and not by science;--
- dreaming and slumbering in this life, before he is well awake here,
- he arrives at the world below, and has his final quietus.
-
- In all that I should most certainly agree with you.
-
- And surely you would not have the children of your ideal State,
- whom you are nurturing and educating--if the ideal ever becomes
- a reality--you would not allow the future rulers to be like posts,
- having no reason in them, and yet to be set in authority over
- the highest matters?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Then you will make a law that they shall have such an education
- as will enable them to attain the greatest skill in asking
- and answering questions?
-
- Yes, he said, you and I together will make it.
-
- Dialectic, then, as you will agree, is the coping-stone of the sciences,
- and is set over them; no other science can be placed higher--
- the nature of knowledge can no further go?
-
- I agree, he said.
-
- But to whom we are to assign these studies, and in what way they
- are to be assigned, are questions which remain to be considered?
-
- Yes, clearly.
-
- You remember, I said, how the rulers were chosen before?
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- The same natures must still be chosen, and the preference
- again given to the surest and the bravest, and, if possible,
- to the fairest; and, having noble and generous tempers, they should
- also have the natural gifts which will facilitate their education.
-
- And what are these?
-
- Such gifts as keenness and ready powers of acquisition;
- for the mind more often faints from the severity of study than from
- the severity of gymnastics: the toil is more entirely the mind's own,
- and is not shared with the body.
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- Further, he of whom we are in search should have a good memory,
- and be an unwearied solid man who is a lover of labour in any line;
- or he will never be able to endure the great amount of bodily exercise
- and to go through all the intellectual discipline and study which we
- require of him.
-
- Certainly, he said; he must have natural gifts.
-
- The mistake at present is, that those who study philosophy have
- no vocation, and this, as I was before saying, is the reason
- why she has fallen into disrepute: her true sons should take
- her by the hand and not bastards.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- In the first place, her votary should not have a lame or halting industry--
- I mean, that he should not be half industrious and half idle:
- as, for example, when a man is a lover of gymnastic and hunting,
- and all other bodily exercises, but a hater rather than a lover
- of the labour of learning or listening or enquiring. Or the
- occupation to which he devotes himself may be of an opposite kind,
- and he may have the other sort of lameness.
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- And as to truth, I said, is not a soul equally to be deemed
- halt and lame which hates voluntary falsehood and is extremely
- indignant at herself and others when they tell lies, but is patient
- of involuntary falsehood, and does not mind wallowing like a swinish
- beast in the mire of ignorance, and has no shame at being detected?
-
- To be sure.
-
- And, again, in respect of temperance, courage, magnificence, and every
- other virtue, should we not carefully distinguish between the true
- son and the bastard? for where there is no discernment of such
- qualities States and individuals unconsciously err and the State makes
- a ruler, and the individual a friend, of one who, being defective
- in some part of virtue, is in a figure lame or a bastard.
-
- That is very true, he said.
-
- All these things, then, will have to be carefully considered by us;
- and if only those whom we introduce to this vast system of education
- and training are sound in body and mind, justice herself will have nothing
- to say against us, and we shall be the saviours of the constitution
- and of the State; but, if our pupils are men of another stamp,
- the reverse will happen, and we shall pour a still greater flood
- of ridicule on philosophy than she has to endure at present.
-
- That would not be creditable.
-
- Certainly not, I said; and yet perhaps, in thus turning jest
- into earnest I am equally ridiculous.
-
- In what respect?
-
- I had forgotten, I said, that we were not serious, and spoke with too
- much excitement. For when I saw philosophy so undeservedly trampled
- under foot of men I could not help feeling a sort of indignation
- at the authors of her disgrace: and my anger made me too vehement.
-
- Indeed! I was listening, and did not think so.
-
- But I, who am the speaker, felt that I was. And now let me remind
- you that, although in our former selection we chose old men,
- we must not do so in this. Solon was under a delusion when he
- said that a man when he grows old may learn many things--for he
- can no more learn much than he can run much; youth is the time
- for any extraordinary toil.
-
- Of course.
-
- And, therefore, calculation and geometry and all the other elements
- of instruction, which are a preparation for dialectic, should be
- presented to the mind in childhood; not, however, under any notion
- of forcing our system of education.
-
- Why not?
-
- Because a freeman ought not to be a slave in the acquisition
- of knowledge of any kind. Bodily exercise, when compulsory,
- does no harm to the body; but knowledge which is acquired under
- compulsion obtains no hold on the mind.
-
- Very true.
-
- Then, my good friend, I said, do not use compulsion, but let early
- education be a sort of amusement; you will then be better able
- to find out the natural bent.
-
- That is a very rational notion, he said.
-
- Do you remember that the children, too, were to be taken to see
- the battle on horseback; and that if there were no danger they
- were to be brought close up and, like young hounds, have a taste
- of blood given them?
-
- Yes, I remember.
-
- The same practice may be followed, I said, in all these things--
- labours, lessons, dangers--and he who is most at home in all
- of them ought to be enrolled in a select number.
-
- At what age?
-
- At the age when the necessary gymnastics are over: the period whether
- of two or three years which passes in this sort of training is useless
- for any other purpose; for sleep and exercise are unpropitious
- to learning; and the trial of who is first in gymnastic exercises
- is one of the most important tests to which our youth are subjected.
-
- Certainly, he replied.
-
- After that time those who are selected from the class of twenty
- years old will be promoted to higher honour, and the sciences
- which they learned without any order in their early education will
- now be brought together, and they will be able to see the natural
- relationship of them to one another and to true being.
-
- Yes, he said, that is the only kind of knowledge which takes
- lasting root.
-
- Yes, I said; and the capacity for such knowledge is the great
- criterion of dialectical talent: the comprehensive mind is always
- the dialectical.
-
- I agree with you, he said.
-
- These, I said, are the points which you must consider; and those
- who have most of this comprehension, and who are more steadfast
- in their learning, and in their military and other appointed duties,
- when they have arrived at the age of thirty have to be chosen
- by you out of the select class, and elevated to higher honour;
- and you will have to prove them by the help of dialectic, in order
- to learn which of them is able to give up the use of sight and the
- other senses, and in company with truth to attain absolute being:
- And here, my friend, great caution is required.
-
- Why great caution?
-
- Do you not remark, I said, how great is the evil which dialectic
- has introduced?
-
- What evil? he said.
-
- The students of the art are filled with lawlessness.
-
- Quite true, he said.
-
- Do you think that there is anything so very unnatural or inexcusable
- in their case? or will you make allowance for them?
-
- In what way make allowance?
-
- I want you, I said, by way of parallel, to imagine a supposititious
- son who is brought up in great wealth; he is one of a great
- and numerous family, and has many flatterers. When he grows up
- to manhood, he learns that his alleged are not his real parents;
- but who the real are he is unable to discover. Can you guess
- how he will be likely to behave towards his flatterers and his
- supposed parents, first of all during the period when he is
- ignorant of the false relation, and then again when he knows?
- Or shall I guess for you?
-
- If you please.
-
- Then I should say, that while he is ignorant of the truth he will
- be likely to honour his father and his mother and his supposed
- relations more than the flatterers; he will be less inclined to
- neglect them when in need, or to do or say anything against them;
- and he will be less willing to disobey them in any important matter.
-
- He will.
-
- But when he has made the discovery, I should imagine that he would
- diminish his honour and regard for them, and would become more devoted
- to the flatterers; their influence over him would greatly increase;
- he would now live after their ways, and openly associate with them,
- and, unless he were of an unusually good disposition, he would
- trouble himself no more about his supposed parents or other relations.
-
- Well, all that is very probable. But how is the image applicable
- to the disciples of philosophy?
-
- In this way: you know that there are certain principles about justice
- and honour, which were taught us in childhood, and under their
- parental authority we have been brought up, obeying and honouring them.
-
- That is true.
-
- There are also opposite maxims and habits of pleasure which flatter
- and attract the soul, but do not influence those of us who have any
- sense of right, and they continue to obey and honour the maxims
- of their fathers.
-
- True.
-
- Now, when a man is in this state, and the questioning spirit asks
- what is fair or honourable, and he answers as the legislator has
- taught him, and then arguments many and diverse refute his words,
- until he is driven into believing that nothing is honourable any
- more than dishonourable, or just and good any more than the reverse,
- and so of all the notions which he most valued, do you think that he
- will still honour and obey them as before?
-
- Impossible.
-
- And when he ceases to think them honourable and natural as heretofore,
- and he fails to discover the true, can he be expected to pursue
- any life other than that which flatters his desires?
-
- He cannot.
-
- And from being a keeper of the law he is converted into a breaker
- of it?
-
- Unquestionably.
-
- Now all this is very natural in students of philosophy such as I
- have described, and also, as I was just now saying, most excusable.
-
- Yes, he said; and, I may add, pitiable.
-
- Therefore, that your feelings may not be moved to pity about our
- citizens who are now thirty years of age, every care must be taken
- in introducing them to dialectic.
-
- Certainly.
-
- There is a danger lest they should taste the dear delight too early;
- for youngsters, as you may have observed, when they first get
- the taste in their mouths, argue for amusement, and are always
- contradicting and refuting others in imitation of those who refute them;
- like puppy-dogs, they rejoice in pulling and tearing at all who come
- near them.
-
- Yes, he said, there is nothing which they like better.
-
- And when they have made many conquests and received defeats
- at the hands of many, they violently and speedily get into a way
- of not believing anything which they believed before, and hence,
- not only they, but philosophy and all that relates to it is apt
- to have a bad name with the rest of the world.
-
- Too true, he said.
-
- But when a man begins to get older, he will no longer be guilty of
- such insanity; he will imitate the dialectician who is seeking for truth,
- and not the eristic, who is contradicting for the sake of amusement;
- and the greater moderation of his character will increase instead
- of diminishing the honour of the pursuit.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- And did we not make special provision for this, when we said
- that the disciples of philosophy were to be orderly and steadfast,
- not, as now, any chance aspirant or intruder?
-
- Very true.
-
- Suppose, I said, the study of philosophy to take the place of gymnastics
- and to be continued diligently and earnestly and exclusively
- for twice the number of years which were passed in bodily exercise--
- will that be enough?
-
- Would you say six or four years? he asked.
-
- Say five years, I replied; at the end of the time they must
- be sent down again into the den and compelled to hold any
- military or other office which young men are qualified to hold:
- in this way they will get their experience of life, and there
- will be an opportunity of trying whether, when they are drawn
- all manner of ways by temptation, they will stand firm or flinch.
-
- And how long is this stage of their lives to last?
-
- Fifteen years, I answered; and when they have reached fifty years
- of age, then let those who still survive and have distinguished
- themselves in every action of their lives and in every branch
- of knowledge come at last to their consummation; the time has now
- arrived at which they must raise the eye of the soul to the universal
- light which lightens all things, and behold the absolute good;
- for that is the, pattern according to which they are to order the State
- and the lives of individuals, and the remainder of their own lives also;
- making philosophy their chief pursuit, but, when their turn comes,
- toiling also at politics and ruling for the public good, not as though
- they were performing some heroic action, but simply as a matter of duty;
- and when they have brought up in each generation others like
- themselves and left them in their place to be governors of the State,
- then they will depart to the Islands of the Blest and dwell there;
- and the city will give them public memorials and sacrifices and
- honour them, if the Pythian oracle consent, as demi-gods, but if not,
- as in any case blessed and divine.
-
- You are a sculptor, Socrates, and have made statues of our governors
- faultless in beauty.
-
- Yes, I said, Glaucon, and of our governesses too;
- for you must not suppose that what I have been
- saying applies to men only and not to women as far as their natures can go.
-
- There you are right, he said, since we have made them to share
- in all things like the men.
-
- Well, I said, and you would agree (would you not?) that what has
- been said about the State and the government is not a mere dream,
- and although difficult not impossible, but only possible in the way
- which has been supposed; that is to say, when the true philosopher
- kings are born in a State, one or more of them, despising the
- honours of this present world which they deem mean and worthless,
- esteeming above all things right and the honour that springs from right,
- and regarding justice as the greatest and most necessary of all things,
- whose ministers they are, and whose principles will be exalted
- by them when they set in order their own city?
-
- How will they proceed?
-
- They will begin by sending out into the country all the inhabitants
- of the city who are more than ten years old, and will take possession
- of their children, who will be unaffected by the habits of their parents;
- these they will train in their own habits and laws, I mean in the laws
- which we have given them: and in this way the State and constitution
- of which we were speaking will soonest and most easily attain happiness,
- and the nation which has such a constitution will gain most.
-
- Yes, that will be the best way. And I think, Socrates, that you
- have very well described how, if ever, such a constitution might
- come into being.
-
- Enough then of the perfect State, and of the man who bears its image--
- there is no difficulty in seeing how we shall describe him.
-
- There is no difficulty, he replied; and I agree with you in thinking
- that nothing more need be said.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK VIII
-
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- AND so, Glaucon, we have arrived at the conclusion that in the
- perfect State wives and children are to be in common; and that all
- education and the pursuits of war and peace are also to be common,
- and the best philosophers and the bravest warriors are to be their kings?
-
- That, replied Glaucon, has been acknowledged.
-
- Yes, I said; and we have further acknowledged that the governors,
- when appointed themselves, will take their soldiers and place them
- in houses such as we were describing, which are common to all,
- and contain nothing private, or individual; and about their property,
- you remember what we agreed?
-
- Yes, I remember that no one was to have any of the ordinary possessions
- of mankind; they were to be warrior athletes and guardians,
- receiving from the other citizens, in lieu of annual payment,
- only their maintenance, and they were to take care of themselves
- and of the whole State.
-
- True, I said; and now that this division of our task is concluded,
- let us find the point at which we digressed, that we may return into
- the old path.
-
- There is no difficulty in returning; you implied, then as now,
- that you had finished the description of the State: you said
- that such a State was good, and that the man was good who
- answered to it, although, as now appears, you had more excellent
- things to relate both of State and man. And you said further,
- that if this was the true form, then the others were false;
- and of the false forms, you said, as I remember, that there
- were four principal ones, and that their defects, and the defects
- of the individuals corresponding to them, were worth examining.
- When we had seen all the individuals, and finally agreed as to who was
- the best and who was the worst of them, we were to consider whether
- the best was not also the happiest, and the worst the most miserable.
- I asked you what were the four forms of government of which you spoke,
- and then Polemarchus and Adeimantus put in their word; and you
- began again, and have found your way to the point at which we have
- now arrived.
-
- Your recollection, I said, is most exact.
-
- Then, like a wrestler, he replied, you must put yourself again
- in the same position; and let me ask the same questions, and do you
- give me the same answer which you were about to give me then.
-
- Yes, if I can, I will, I said.
-
- I shall particularly wish to hear what were the four constitutions
- of which you were speaking.
-
- That question, I said, is easily answered: the four governments
- of which I spoke, so far as they have distinct names, are, first,
- those of Crete and Sparta, which are generally applauded;
- what is termed oligarchy comes next; this is not equally approved,
- and is a form of government which teems with evils: thirdly, democracy,
- which naturally follows oligarchy, although very different:
- and lastly comes tyranny, great and famous, which differs from them all,
- and is the fourth and worst disorder of a State. I do not know,
- do you? of any other constitution which can be said to have a
- distinct character. There are lordships and principalities which are
- bought and sold, and some other intermediate forms of government.
- But these are nondescripts and may be found equally among Hellenes
- and among barbarians.
-
- Yes, he replied, we certainly hear of many curious forms of government
- which exist among them.
-
- Do you know, I said, that governments vary as the dispositions of men vary,
- and that there must be as many of the one as there are of the other?
- For we cannot suppose that States are made of `oak and rock,'
- and not out of the human natures which are in them, and which in a
- figure turn the scale and draw other things after them?
-
- Yes, he said, the States are as the men are; they grow
- out of human characters.
-
- Then if the constitutions of States are five, the dispositions
- of individual minds will also be five?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Him who answers to aristocracy, and whom we rightly call just and good,
- we have already described.
-
- We have.
-
- Then let us now proceed to describe the inferior sort of natures,
- being the contentious and ambitious, who answer to the Spartan polity;
- also the oligarchical, democratical, and tyrannical. Let us place
- the most just by the side of the most unjust, and when we see them
- we shall be able to compare the relative happiness or unhappiness
- of him who leads a life of pure justice or pure injustice.
- The enquiry will then be completed. And we shall know whether we ought
- to pursue injustice, as Thrasymachus advises, or in accordance with
- the conclusions of the argument to prefer justice.
-
- Certainly, he replied, we must do as you say.
-
- Shall we follow our old plan, which we adopted with a view to clearness,
- of taking the State first and then proceeding to the individual,
- and begin with the government of honour?--I know of no name
- for such a government other than timocracy, or perhaps timarchy.
- We will compare with this the like character in the individual;
- and, after that, consider oligarchical man; and then again we
- will turn our attention to democracy and the democratical man;
- and lastly, we will go and view the city of tyranny, and once
- more take a look into the tyrant's soul, and try to arrive at a
- satisfactory decision.
-
- That way of viewing and judging of the matter will be very suitable.
-
- First, then, I said, let us enquire how timocracy (the government of honour)
- arises out of aristocracy (the government of the best). Clearly,
- all political changes originate in divisions of the actual governing power;
- a government which is united, however small, cannot be moved.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- In what way, then, will our city be moved, and in what manner
- the two classes of auxiliaries and rulers disagree among themselves
- or with one another? Shall we, after the manner of Homer, pray the
- Muses to tell us `how discord first arose'? Shall we imagine them
- in solemn mockery, to play and jest with us as if we were children,
- and to address us in a lofty tragic vein, making believe to be in earnest?
-
- How would they address us?
-
- After this manner:--A city which is thus constituted can hardly
- be shaken; but, seeing that everything which has a beginning has
- also an end, even a constitution such as yours will not last for ever,
- but will in time be dissolved. And this is the dissolution:--
- In plants that grow in the earth, as well as in animals that move
- on the earth's surface, fertility and sterility of soul and body
- occur when the circumferences of the circles of each are completed,
- which in short-lived existences pass over a short space,
- and in long-lived ones over a long space. But to the knowledge
- of human fecundity and sterility all the wisdom and education
- of your rulers will not attain; the laws which regulate them will
- not be discovered by an intelligence which is alloyed with sense,
- but will escape them, and they will bring children into the world
- when they ought not. Now that which is of divine birth has a period
- which is contained in a perfect number, but the period of human birth
- is comprehended in a number in which first increments by involution
- and evolution (or squared and cubed) obtaining three intervals
- and four terms of like and unlike, waxing and waning numbers,
- make all the terms commensurable and agreeable to one another.
- The base of these (3) with a third added (4) when combined with five
- (20) and raised to the third power furnishes two harmonies;
- the first a square which is a hundred times as great (400 = 4 X
- 100), and the other a figure having one side equal to the former,
- but oblong, consisting of a hundred numbers squared upon rational
- diameters of a square (i. e. omitting fractions), the side of which
- is five (7 X 7 = 49 X 100 = 4900), each of them being less by one
- (than the perfect square which includes the fractions, sc. 50) or less
- by two perfect squares of irrational diameters (of a square the side
- of which is five = 50 + 50 = 100); and a hundred cubes of three
- (27 X 100 = 2700 + 4900 + 400 = 8000). Now this number represents
- a geometrical figure which has control over the good and evil of births.
- For when your guardians are ignorant of the law of births,
- and unite bride and bridegroom out of season, the children will not
- be goodly or fortunate. And though only the best of them will be
- appointed by their predecessors, still they will be unworthy to hold
- their fathers' places, and when they come into power as guardians,
- they will soon be found to fall in taking care of us, the Muses,
- first by under-valuing music; which neglect will soon extend to gymnastic;
- and hence the young men of your State will be less cultivated.
- In the succeeding generation rulers will be appointed who have lost
- the guardian power of testing the metal of your different races,
- which, like Hesiod's, are of gold and silver and brass and iron.
- And so iron will be mingled with silver, and brass with gold,
- and hence there will arise dissimilarity and inequality and irregularity,
- which always and in all places are causes of hatred and war.
- This the Muses affirm to be the stock from which discord has sprung,
- wherever arising; and this is their answer to us.
-
- Yes, and we may assume that they answer truly.
-
- Why, yes, I said, of course they answer truly; how can the Muses
- speak falsely?
-
- And what do the Muses say next?
-
- When discord arose, then the two races were drawn different ways:
- the iron and brass fell to acquiring money and land and houses
- and gold and silver; but the gold and silver races, not wanting money
- but having the true riches in their own nature, inclined towards virtue
- and the ancient order of things. There was a battle between them,
- and at last they agreed to distribute their land and houses among
- individual owners; and they enslaved their friends and maintainers,
- whom they had formerly protected in the condition of freemen,
- and made of them subjects and servants; and they themselves were
- engaged in war and in keeping a watch against them.
-
- I believe that you have rightly conceived the origin of the change.
-
- And the new government which thus arises will be of a form
- intermediate between oligarchy and aristocracy?
-
- Very true.
-
- Such will be the change, and after the change has been made,
- how will they proceed? Clearly, the new State, being in a mean
- between oligarchy and the perfect State, will partly follow one
- and partly the other, and will also have some peculiarities.
-
- True, he said.
-
- In the honour given to rulers, in the abstinence of the warrior
- class from agriculture, handicrafts, and trade in general,
- in the institution of common meals, and in the attention paid
- to gymnastics and military training--in all these respects this
- State will resemble the former.
-
- True.
-
- But in the fear of admitting philosophers to power, because they are no
- longer to be had simple and earnest, but are made up of mixed elements;
- and in turning from them to passionate and less complex characters,
- who are by nature fitted for war rather than peace; and in the value set
- by them upon military stratagems and contrivances, and in the waging
- of everlasting wars--this State will be for the most part peculiar.
-
- Yes.
-
- Yes, I said; and men of this stamp will be covetous of money,
- like those who live in oligarchies; they will have, a fierce secret
- longing after gold and silver, which they will hoard in dark places,
- having magazines and treasuries of their own for the deposit and
- concealment of them; also castles which are just nests for their eggs,
- and in which they will spend large sums on their wives, or on any
- others whom they please.
-
- That is most true, he said.
-
- And they are miserly because they have no means of openly acquiring
- the money which they prize; they will spend that which is another
- man's on the gratification of their desires, stealing their pleasures
- and running away like children from the law, their father:
- they have been schooled not by gentle influences but by force,
- for they have neglected her who is the true Muse, the companion of
- reason and philosophy, and have honoured gymnastic more than music.
-
- Undoubtedly, he said, the form of government which you describe
- is a mixture of good and evil.
-
- Why, there is a mixture, I said; but one thing, and one thing only,
- is predominantly seen,--the spirit of contention and ambition;
- and these are due to the prevalence of the passionate or spirited element.
-
- Assuredly, he said.
-
- Such is the origin and such the character of this State,
- which has been described in outline only; the more perfect
- execution was not required, for a sketch is enough to show
- the type of the most perfectly just and most perfectly unjust;
- and to go through all the States and all the characters of men,
- omitting none of them, would be an interminable labour.
-
- Very true, he replied.
-
- Now what man answers to this form of government-how did he come
- into being, and what is he like?
-
- SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
-
- I think, said Adeimantus, that in the spirit of contention
- which characterises him, he is not unlike our friend Glaucon.
-
- Perhaps, I said, he may be like him in that one point; but there
- are other respects in which he is very different.
-
- In what respects?
-
- He should have more of self-assertion and be less cultivated,
- and yet a friend of culture; and he should be a good listener,
- but no speaker. Such a person is apt to be rough with slaves,
- unlike the educated man, who is too proud for that; and he will
- also be courteous to freemen, and remarkably obedient to authority;
- he is a lover of power and a lover of honour; claiming to be a ruler,
- not because he is eloquent, or on any ground of that sort,
- but because he is a soldier and has performed feats of arms;
- he is also a lover of gymnastic exercises and of the chase.
-
- Yes, that is the type of character which answers to timocracy.
-
- Such an one will despise riches only when he is young;
- but as he gets older he will be more and more attracted to them,
- because he has a piece of the avaricious nature in him, and is
- not singleminded towards virtue, having lost his best guardian.
-
- Who was that? said Adeimantus.
-
- Philosophy, I said, tempered with music, who comes and takes her abode
- in a man, and is the only saviour of his virtue throughout life.
-
- Good, he said.
-
- Such,
- I said, is the timocratical youth, and he is like the timocratical State.
-
- Exactly.
-
- His origin is as follows:--He is often the young son of a grave father,
- who dwells in an ill-governed city, of which he declines the honours
- and offices, and will not go to law, or exert himself in any way,
- but is ready to waive his rights in order that he may escape trouble.
-
- And how does the son come into being?
-
- The character of the son begins to develop when he hears his mother
- complaining that her husband has no place in the government,
- of which the consequence is that she has no precedence among
- other women. Further, when she sees her husband not very eager
- about money, and instead of battling and railing in the law
- courts or assembly, taking whatever happens to him quietly;
- and when she observes that his thoughts always centre in himself,
- while he treats her with very considerable indifference, she is annoyed,
- and says to her son that his father is only half a man and far
- too easy-going: adding all the other complaints about her own
- ill-treatment which women are so fond of rehearsing.
-
- Yes, said Adeimantus, they give us plenty of them, and their
- complaints are so like themselves.
-
- And you know, I said, that the old servants also, who are supposed to be
- attached to the family, from time to time talk privately in the same
- strain to the son; and if they see any one who owes money to his father,
- or is wronging him in any way, and he falls to prosecute them,
- they tell the youth that when he grows up he must retaliate upon
- people of this sort, and be more of a man than his father. He has
- only to walk abroad and he hears and sees the same sort of thing:
- those who do their own business in the city are called simpletons,
- and held in no esteem, while the busy-bodies are honoured and applauded.
- The result is that the young man, hearing and seeing all these thing--
- hearing too, the words of his father, and having a nearer view of his way
- of life, and making comparisons of him and others--is drawn opposite ways:
- while his father is watering and nourishing the rational principle
- in his soul, the others are encouraging the passionate and appetitive;
- and he being not originally of a bad nature, but having kept bad company,
- is at last brought by their joint influence to a middle point,
- and gives up the kingdom which is within him to the middle
- principle of contentiousness and passion, and becomes arrogant
- and ambitious.
-
- You seem to me to have described his origin perfectly.
-
- Then we have now, I said, the second form of government and the second
- type of character?
-
- We have.
-
- Next, let us look at another man who, as Aeschylus says,
-
- Is set over against another State;
-
- or rather, as our plan requires, begin with the State.
-
- By all means.
-
- I believe that oligarchy follows next in order.
-
- And what manner of government do you term oligarchy?
-
- A government resting on a valuation of property, in which the rich
- have power and the poor man is deprived of it.
-
- I understand, he replied.
-
- Ought I not to begin by describing how the change from timocracy
- to oligarchy arises?
-
- Yes.
-
- Well, I said, no eyes are required in order to see how the one
- passes into the other.
-
- How?
-
- The accumulation of gold in the treasury of private individuals
- is ruin the of timocracy; they invent illegal modes of expenditure;
- for what do they or their wives care about the law?
-
- Yes, indeed.
-
- And then one, seeing another grow rich, seeks to rival him,
- and thus the great mass of the citizens become lovers of money.
-
- Likely enough.
-
- And so they grow richer and richer, and the more they think
- of making a fortune the less they think of virtue; for when riches
- and virtue are placed together in the scales of the balance,
- the one always rises as the other falls.
-
- True.
-
- And in proportion as riches and rich men are honoured in the State,
- virtue and the virtuous are dishonoured.
-
- Clearly.
-
- And what is honoured is cultivated, and that which has no honour
- is neglected.
-
- That is obvious.
-
- And so at last, instead of loving contention and glory, men become
- lovers of trade and money; they honour and look up to the rich man,
- and make a ruler of him, and dishonour the poor man.
-
- They do so.
-
- They next proceed to make a law which fixes a sum of money as
- the qualification of citizenship; the sum is higher in one place
- and lower in another, as the oligarchy is more or less exclusive;
- and they allow no one whose property falls below the amount fixed
- to have any share in the government. These changes in the constitution
- they effect by force of arms, if intimidation has not already done
- their work.
-
- Very true.
-
- And this, speaking generally, is the way in which oligarchy
- is established.
-
- Yes, he said; but what are the characteristics of this form
- of government, and what are the defects of which we were speaking?
-
- First of all, I said, consider the nature of the qualification
- just think what would happen if pilots were to be chosen according
- to their property, and a poor man were refused permission to steer,
- even though he were a better pilot?
-
- You mean that they would shipwreck?
-
- Yes; and is not this true of the government of anything?
-
- I should imagine so.
-
- Except a city?--or would you include a city?
-
- Nay, he said, the case of a city is the strongest of all,
- inasmuch as the rule of a city is the greatest and most difficult
- of all.
-
- This, then, will be the first great defect of oligarchy?
-
- Clearly.
-
- And here is another defect which is quite as bad.
-
- What defect?
-
- The inevitable division: such a State is not one, but two States,
- the one of poor, the other of rich men; and they are living on
- the same spot and always conspiring against one another.
-
- That, surely, is at least as bad.
-
- Another discreditable feature is, that, for a like reason,
- they are incapable of carrying on any war. Either they arm
- the multitude, and then they are more afraid of them than of
- the enemy; or, if they do not call them out in the hour of battle,
- they are oligarchs indeed, few to fight as they are few to rule.
- And at the same time their fondness for money makes them unwilling
- to pay taxes.
-
- How discreditable!
-
- And, as we said before, under such a constitution the same persons
- have too many callings--they are husbandmen, tradesmen, warriors,
- all in one. Does that look well?
-
- Anything but well.
-
- There is another evil which is, perhaps, the greatest of all,
- and to which this State first begins to be liable.
-
- What evil?
-
- A man may sell all that he has, and another may acquire his property;
- yet after the sale he may dwell in the city of which he is no longer
- a part, being neither trader, nor artisan, nor horseman, nor hoplite,
- but only a poor, helpless creature.
-
- Yes, that is an evil which also first begins in this State.
-
- The evil is certainly not prevented there; for oligarchies have
- both the extremes of great wealth and utter poverty.
-
- True.
-
- But think again: In his wealthy days, while he was spending
- his money, was a man of this sort a whit more good to the State
- for the purposes of citizenship? Or did he only seem to be a member
- of the ruling body, although in truth he was neither ruler nor subject,
- but just a spendthrift?
-
- As you say, he seemed to be a ruler, but was only a spendthrift.
-
- May we not say that this is the drone in the house who is
- like the drone in the honeycomb, and that the one is the plague
- of the city as the other is of the hive?
-
- Just so, Socrates.
-
- And God has made the flying drones, Adeimantus, all without stings,
- whereas of the walking drones he has made some without stings but others
- have dreadful stings; of the stingless class are those who in their
- old age end as paupers; of the stingers come all the criminal class,
- as they are termed.
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- Clearly then, whenever you see paupers in a State, somewhere in
- that neighborhood there are hidden away thieves, and cutpurses
- and robbers of temples, and all sorts of malefactors.
-
- Clearly.
-
- Well, I said, and in oligarchical States do you not find paupers?
-
- Yes, he said; nearly everybody is a pauper who is not a ruler.
-
- And may we be so bold as to affirm that there are also many
- criminals to be found in them, rogues who have stings, and whom
- the authorities are careful to restrain by force?
-
- Certainly, we may be so bold.
-
- The existence of such persons is to be attributed to want of education,
- ill-training, and an evil constitution of the State?
-
- True.
-
- Such, then, is the form and such are the evils of oligarchy;
- and there may be many other evils.
-
- Very likely.
-
- Then oligarchy, or the form of government in which the rulers
- are elected for their wealth, may now be dismissed. Let us
- next proceed to consider the nature and origin of the individual
- who answers to this State.
-
- By all means.
-
- Does not the timocratical man change into the oligarchical on this wise?
-
- How?
-
- A time arrives when the representative of timocracy has a son:
- at first he begins by emulating his father and walking in his footsteps,
- but presently he sees him of a sudden foundering against the State
- as upon a sunken reef, and he and all that he has is lost;
- he may have been a general or some other high officer who is brought
- to trial under a prejudice raised by informers, and either put to death,
- or exiled, or deprived of the privileges of a citizen, and all his
- property taken from him.
-
- Nothing more likely.
-
- And the son has seen and known all this--he is a ruined man,
- and his fear has taught him to knock ambition and passion head-foremost
- from his bosom's throne; humbled by poverty he takes to money-making
- and by mean and miserly savings and hard work gets a fortune together.
- Is not such an one likely to seat the concupiscent and covetous
- element on the vacant throne and to suffer it to play the great king
- within him, girt with tiara and chain and scimitar?
-
- Most true, he replied.
-
- And when he has made reason and spirit sit down on the ground obediently
- on either side of their sovereign, and taught them to know their place,
- he compels the one to think only of how lesser sums may be turned
- into larger ones, and will not allow the other to worship and admire
- anything but riches and rich men, or to be ambitious of anything
- so much as the acquisition of wealth and the means of acquiring it.
-
- Of all changes, he said, there is none so speedy or so sure
- as the conversion of the ambitious youth into the avaricious one.
-
- And the avaricious, I said, is the oligarchical youth?
-
- Yes, he said; at any rate the individual out of whom he came
- is like the State out of which oligarchy came.
-
- Let us then consider whether there is any likeness between them.
-
- Very good.
-
- First, then, they resemble one another in the value which they set
- upon wealth?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Also in their penurious, laborious character; the individual only
- satisfies his necessary appetites, and confines his expenditure
- to them; his other desires he subdues, under the idea that they
- are unprofitable.
-
- True.
-
- He is a shabby fellow, who saves something out of everything and makes
- a purse for himself; and this is the sort of man whom the vulgar applaud.
- Is he not a true image of the State which he represents?
-
- He appears to me to be so; at any rate money is highly valued
- by him as well as by the State.
-
- You see that he is not a man of cultivation, I said.
-
- I imagine not, he said; had he been educated he would never have
- made a blind god director of his chorus, or given him chief honour.
-
- Excellent! I said. Yet consider: Must we not further admit
- that owing to this want of cultivation there will be found in him
- dronelike desires as of pauper and rogue, which are forcibly kept
- down by his general habit of life?
-
- True.
-
- Do you know where you will have to look if you want to discover
- his rogueries?
-
- Where must I look?
-
- You should see him where he has some great opportunity
- of acting dishonestly, as in the guardianship of an orphan.
-
- Aye.
-
- It will be clear enough then that in his ordinary dealings which
- give him a reputation for honesty he coerces his bad passions
- by an enforced virtue; not making them see that they are wrong,
- or taming them by reason, but by necessity and fear constraining them,
- and because he trembles for his possessions.
-
- To be sure.
-
- Yes, indeed, my dear friend, but you will find that the natural
- desires of the drone commonly exist in him all the same whenever
- he has to spend what is not his own.
-
- Yes, and they will be strong in him too.
-
- The man, then, will be at war with himself; he will be two men,
- and not one; but, in general, his better desires will be found
- to prevail over his inferior ones.
-
- True.
-
- For these reasons such an one will be more respectable than most people;
- yet the true virtue of a unanimous and harmonious soul will flee far
- away and never come near him.
-
- I should expect so.
-
- And surely, the miser individually will be an ignoble competitor in a
- State for any prize of victory, or other object of honourable ambition;
- he will not spend his money in the contest for glory; so afraid
- is he of awakening his expensive appetites and inviting them to help
- and join in the struggle; in true oligarchical fashion he fights
- with a small part only of his resources, and the result commonly
- is that he loses the prize and saves his money.
-
- Very true.
-
- Can we any longer doubt, then, that the miser and money-maker
- answers to the oligarchical State?
-
- There can be no doubt.
-
- Next comes democracy; of this the origin and nature have still
- to be considered by us; and then we will enquire into the ways
- of the democratic man, and bring him up for judgement.
-
- That, he said, is our method.
-
- Well, I said, and how does the change from oligarchy into democracy arise?
- Is it not on this wise?--The good at which such a State alms
- is to become as rich as possible, a desire which is insatiable?
-
- What then?
-
- The rulers, being aware that their power rests upon their wealth,
- refuse to curtail by law the extravagance of the spendthrift youth
- because they gain by their ruin; they take interest from them and buy
- up their estates and thus increase their own wealth and importance?
-
- To be sure.
-
- There can be no doubt that the love of wealth and the spirit
- of moderation cannot exist together in citizens of the same State
- to any considerable extent; one or the other will be disregarded.
-
- That is tolerably clear.
-
- And in oligarchical States, from the general spread of carelessness
- and extravagance, men of good family have often been reduced
- to beggary?
-
- Yes, often.
-
- And still they remain in the city; there they are, ready to sting
- and fully armed, and some of them owe money, some have forfeited
- their citizenship; a third class are in both predicaments;
- and they hate and conspire against those who have got their property,
- and against everybody else, and are eager for revolution.
-
- That is true.
-
- On the other hand, the men of business, stooping as they walk,
- and pretending not even to see those whom they have already ruined,
- insert their sting--that is, their money--into some one else who is
- not on his guard against them, and recover the parent sum many times
- over multiplied into a family of children: and so they make drone
- and pauper to abound in the State.
-
- Yes, he said, there are plenty of them--that is certain.
-
- The evil blazes up like a fire; and they will not extinguish it,
- either by restricting a man's use of his own property, or by
- another remedy:
-
- What other?
-
- One which is the next best, and has the advantage of compelling
- the citizens to look to their characters:--Let there be a general rule
- that every one shall enter into voluntary contracts at his own risk,
- and there will be less of this scandalous money-making, and the evils
- of which we were speaking will be greatly lessened in the State.
-
- Yes, they will be greatly lessened.
-
- At present the governors, induced by the motives which I have named,
- treat their subjects badly; while they and their adherents,
- especially the young men of the governing class, are habituated
- to lead a life of luxury and idleness both of body and mind;
- they do nothing, and are incapable of resisting either pleasure
- or pain.
-
- Very true.
-
- They themselves care only for making money, and are as indifferent
- as the pauper to the cultivation of virtue.
-
- Yes, quite as indifferent.
-
- Such is the state of affairs which prevails among them.
- And often rulers and their subjects may come in one another's way,
- whether on a pilgrimage or a march, as fellow-soldiers
- or fellow-sailors; aye, and they may observe the behaviour
- of each other in the very moment of danger--for where danger is,
- there is no fear that the poor will be despised by the rich--
- and very likely the wiry sunburnt poor man may be placed in battle
- at the side of a wealthy one who has never spoilt his complexion
- and has plenty of superfluous flesh--when he sees such an one puffing
- and at his wit's end, how can he avoid drawing the conclusion
- that men like him are only rich because no one has the courage
- to despoil them? And when they meet in private will not people
- be saying to one another `Our warriors are not good for much'?
-
- Yes, he said, I am quite aware that this is their way of talking.
-
- And, as in a body which is diseased the addition of a touch from without
- may bring on illness, and sometimes even when there is no external
- provocation a commotion may arise within-in the same way wherever
- there is weakness in the State there is also likely to be illness,
- of which the occasions may be very slight, the one party introducing
- from without their oligarchical, the other their democratical allies,
- and then the State falls sick, and is at war with herself;
- and may be at times distracted, even when there is no external cause.
-
- Yes, surely.
-
- And then democracy comes into being after the poor have conquered
- their opponents, slaughtering some and banishing some, while to
- the remainder they give an equal share of freedom and power;
- and this is the form of government in which the magistrates are
- commonly elected by lot.
-
- Yes, he said, that is the nature of democracy, whether the revolution
- has been effected by arms, or whether fear has caused the opposite
- party to withdraw.
-
- And now what is their manner of life, and what sort of a government
- have they? for as the government is, such will be the man.
-
- Clearly, he said.
-
- In the first place, are they not free; and is not the city full
- of freedom and frankness--a man may say and do what he likes?
-
- `Tis said so, he replied.
-
- And where freedom is, the individual is clearly able to order
- for himself his own life as he pleases?
-
- Clearly.
-
- Then in this kind of State there will be the greatest variety
- of human natures?
-
- There will.
-
- This, then, seems likely to be the fairest of States, being an
- embroidered robe which is spangled with every sort of flower.
- And just as women and children think a variety of colours to be of
- all things most charming, so there are many men to whom this State,
- which is spangled with the manners and characters of mankind,
- will appear to be the fairest of States.
-
- Yes.
-
- Yes, my good Sir, and there will be no better in which to look
- for a government.
-
- Why?
-
- Because of the liberty which reigns there--they have a complete
- assortment of constitutions; and he who has a mind to establish
- a State, as we have been doing, must go to a democracy as he would
- to a bazaar at which they sell them, and pick out the one that
- suits him; then, when he has made his choice, he may found his State.
-
- He will be sure to have patterns enough.
-
- And there being no necessity, I said, for you to govern in this State,
- even if you have the capacity, or to be governed, unless you like,
- or go to war when the rest go to war, or to be at peace when others
- are at peace, unless you are so disposed--there being no necessity also,
- because some law forbids you to hold office or be a dicast,
- that you should not hold office or be a dicast, if you have a fancy--
- is not this a way of life which for the moment is supremely
- delightful
-
- For the moment, yes.
-
- And is not their humanity to the condemned in some cases quite charming?
- Have you not observed how, in a democracy, many persons, although they
- have been sentenced to death or exile, just stay where they
- are and walk about the world--the gentleman parades like a hero,
- and nobody sees or cares?
-
- Yes, he replied, many and many a one.
-
- See too, I said, the forgiving spirit of democracy, and the `don't care'
- about trifles, and the disregard which she shows of all the fine
- principles which we solemnly laid down at the foundation of the city--
- as when we said that, except in the case of some rarely gifted nature,
- there never will be a good man who has not from his childhood been
- used to play amid things of beauty and make of them a joy and a study--
- how grandly does she trample all these fine notions of ours
- under her feet, never giving a thought to the pursuits which make
- a statesman, and promoting to honour any one who professes to be
- the people's friend.
-
- Yes, she is of a noble spirit.
-
- These and other kindred characteristics are proper to democracy,
- which is a charming form of government, full of variety and disorder,
- and dispensing a sort of equality to equals and unequals alike.
-
- We know her well.
-
- Consider now, I said, what manner of man the individual is,
- or rather consider, as in the case of the State, how he comes
- into being.
-
- Very good, he said.
-
- Is not this the way--he is the son of the miserly and oligarchical
- father who has trained him in his own habits?
-
- Exactly.
-
- And, like his father, he keeps under by force the pleasures
- which are of the spending and not of the getting sort,
- being those which are called unnecessary?
-
- Obviously.
-
- Would you like, for the sake of clearness, to distinguish
- which are the necessary and which are the unnecessary pleasures?
-
- I should.
-
- Are not necessary pleasures those of which we cannot get rid, and of
- which the satisfaction is a benefit to us? And they are rightly so,
- because we are framed by nature to desire both what is beneficial
- and what is necessary, and cannot help it.
-
- True.
-
- We are not wrong therefore in calling them necessary?
-
- We are not.
-
- And the desires of which a man may get rid, if he takes pains from
- his youth upwards--of which the presence, moreover, does no good,
- and in some cases the reverse of good--shall we not be right in saying
- that all these are unnecessary?
-
- Yes, certainly.
-
- Suppose we select an example of either kind, in order that we
- may have a general notion of them?
-
- Very good.
-
- Will not the desire of eating, that is, of simple food and condiments,
- in so far as they are required for health and strength,
- be of the necessary class?
-
- That is what I should suppose.
-
- The pleasure of eating is necessary in two ways; it does us good
- and it is essential to the continuance of life?
-
- Yes.
-
- But the condiments are only necessary in so far as they are good
- for health?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And the desire which goes beyond this, or more delicate food,
- or other luxuries, which might generally be got rid of,
- if controlled and trained in youth, and is hurtful to the body,
- and hurtful to the soul in the pursuit of wisdom and virtue,
- may be rightly called unnecessary?
-
- Very true.
-
- May we not say that these desires spend, and that the others make
- money because they conduce to production?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And of the pleasures of love, and all other pleasures, the same
- holds good?
-
- True.
-
- And the drone of whom we spoke was he who was surfeited in pleasures
- and desires of this sort, and was the slave of the unnecessary desires,
- whereas he who was subject o the necessary only was miserly
- and oligarchical?
-
- Very true.
-
- Again, let us see how the democratical man grows out of the oligarchical:
- the following, as I suspect, is commonly the process.
-
- What is the process?
-
- When a young man who has been brought up as we were just
- now describing, in a vulgar and miserly way, has tasted drones'
- honey and has come to associate with fierce and crafty natures
- who are able to provide for him all sorts of refinements
- and varieties of pleasure--then, as you may imagine, the change
- will begin of the oligarchical principle within him into the democratical?
-
- Inevitably.
-
- And as in the city like was helping like, and the change was effected
- by an alliance from without assisting one division of the citizens,
- so too the young man is changed by a class of desires coming from
- without to assist the desires within him, that which is and alike
- again helping that which is akin and alike?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And if there be any ally which aids the oligarchical principle
- within him, whether the influence of a father or of kindred,
- advising or rebuking him, then there arises in his soul a faction
- and an opposite faction, and he goes to war with himself.
-
- It must be so.
-
- And there are times when the democratical principle gives way to
- the oligarchical, and some of his desires die, and others are banished;
- a spirit of reverence enters into the young man's soul and order
- is restored.
-
- Yes, he said, that sometimes happens.
-
- And then, again, after the old desires have been driven out,
- fresh ones spring up, which are akin to them, and because he,
- their father, does not know how to educate them, wax fierce
- and numerous.
-
- Yes, he said, that is apt to be the way.
-
- They draw him to his old associates, and holding secret intercourse
- with them, breed and multiply in him.
-
- Very true.
-
- At length they seize upon the citadel of the young man's soul,
- which they perceive to be void of all accomplishments and fair
- pursuits and true words, which make their abode in the minds of men
- who are dear to the gods, and are their best guardians and sentinels.
-
- None better.
-
- False and boastful conceits and phrases mount upwards and take
- their place.
-
- They are certain to do so.
-
- And so the young man returns into the country of the lotus-eaters,
- and takes up his dwelling there in the face of all men; and if
- any help be sent by his friends to the oligarchical part of him,
- the aforesaid vain conceits shut the gate of the king's fastness;
- and they will neither allow the embassy itself to enter,
- private if private advisers offer the fatherly counsel of the aged
- will they listen to them or receive them. There is a battle
- and they gain the day, and then modesty, which they call silliness,
- is ignominiously thrust into exile by them, and temperance,
- which they nickname unmanliness, is trampled in the mire and cast forth;
- they persuade men that moderation and orderly expenditure are vulgarity
- and meanness, and so, by the help of a rabble of evil appetites,
- they drive them beyond the border.
-
- Yes, with a will.
-
- And when they have emptied and swept clean the soul of him who is now
- in their power and who is being initiated by them in great mysteries,
- the next thing is to bring back to their house insolence and
- anarchy and waste and impudence in bright array having garlands
- on their heads, and a great company with them, hymning their praises
- and calling them by sweet names; insolence they term breeding,
- and anarchy liberty, and waste magnificence, and impudence courage.
- And so the young man passes out of his original nature, which was
- trained in the school of necessity, into the freedom and libertinism
- of useless and unnecessary pleasures.
-
- Yes, he said, the change in him is visible enough.
-
- After this he lives on, spending his money and labour and time
- on unnecessary pleasures quite as much as on necessary ones;
- but if he be fortunate, and is not too much disordered in his wits,
- when years have elapsed, and the heyday of passion is over--
- supposing that he then re-admits into the city some part
- of the exiled virtues, and does not wholly give himself up to
- their successors--in that case he balances his pleasures and lives
- in a sort of equilibrium, putting the government of himself
- into the hands of the one which comes first and wins the turn;
- and when he has had enough of that, then into the hands of another;
- he despises none of them but encourages them all equally.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Neither does he receive or let pass into the fortress any true
- word of advice; if any one says to him that some pleasures are the
- satisfactions of good and noble desires, and others of evil desires,
- and that he ought to use and honour some and chastise and master
- the others--whenever this is repeated to him he shakes his head
- and says that they are all alike, and that one is as good as another.
-
- Yes, he said; that is the way with him.
-
- Yes, I said, he lives from day to day indulging the appetite of the hour;
- and sometimes he is lapped in drink and strains of the flute;
- then he becomes a water-drinker, and tries to get thin; then he takes
- a turn at gymnastics; sometimes idling and neglecting everything,
- then once more living the life of a philosopher; often he-is busy
- with politics, and starts to his feet and says and does whatever
- comes into his head; and, if he is emulous of any one who is
- a warrior, off he is in that direction, or of men of business,
- once more in that. His life has neither law nor order; and this
- distracted existence he terms joy and bliss and freedom; and so he
- goes on.
-
- Yes, he replied, he is all liberty and equality.
-
- Yes, I said; his life is motley and manifold and an epitome of the lives
- of many;--he answers to the State which we described as fair and spangled.
- And many a man and many a woman will take him for their pattern,
- and many a constitution and many an example of manners is contained
- in him.
-
- Just so.
-
- Let him then be set over against democracy; he may truly be called
- the democratic man.
-
- Let that be his place, he said.
-
- Last of all comes the most beautiful of all, man and State alike,
- tyranny and the tyrant; these we have now to consider.
-
- Quite true, he said.
-
- Say then, my friend, in what manner does tyranny arise?--that it
- has a democratic origin is evident.
-
- Clearly.
-
- And does not tyranny spring from democracy in the same manner
- as democracy from oligarchy--I mean, after a sort?
-
- How?
-
- The good which oligarchy proposed to itself and the means
- by which it was maintained was excess of wealth--am I not right?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the insatiable desire of wealth and the neglect of all other
- things for the sake of money-getting was also the ruin of oligarchy?
-
- True.
-
- And democracy has her own good, of which the insatiable desire
- brings her to dissolution?
-
- What good?
-
- Freedom, I replied; which, as they tell you in a democracy,
- is the glory of the State--and that therefore in a democracy alone
- will the freeman of nature deign to dwell.
-
- Yes; the saying is in everybody's mouth.
-
- I was going to observe, that the insatiable desire of this and
- the neglect of other things introduces the change in democracy,
- which occasions a demand for tyranny.
-
- How so?
-
- When a democracy which is thirsting for freedom has evil cupbearers
- presiding over the feast, and has drunk too deeply of the strong
- wine of freedom, then, unless her rulers are very amenable and give
- a plentiful draught, she calls them to account and punishes them,
- and says that they are cursed oligarchs.
-
- Yes, he replied, a very common occurrence.
-
- Yes, I said; and loyal citizens are insultingly termed by her
- slaves who hug their chains and men of naught; she would have
- subjects who are like rulers, and rulers who are like subjects:
- these are men after her own heart, whom she praises and honours
- both in private and public. Now, in such a State, can liberty
- have any limit?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- By degrees the anarchy finds a way into private houses, and ends
- by getting among the animals and infecting them.
-
- How do you mean?
-
- I mean that the father grows accustomed to descend to the level of his
- sons and to fear them, and the son is on a level with his father,
- he having no respect or reverence for either of his parents;
- and this is his freedom, and metic is equal with the citizen
- and the citizen with the metic, and the stranger is quite as good
- as either.
-
- Yes, he said, that is the way.
-
- And these are not the only evils, I said--there are several lesser ones:
- In such a state of society the master fears and flatters his scholars,
- and the scholars despise their masters and tutors; young and old
- are all alike; and the young man is on a level with the old,
- and is ready to compete with him in word or deed; and old men
- condescend to the young and are full of pleasantry and gaiety;
- they are loth to be thought morose and authoritative, and therefore they
- adopt the manners of the young.
-
- Quite true, he said.
-
- The last extreme of popular liberty is when the slave bought with money,
- whether male or female, is just as free as his or her purchaser;
- nor must I forget to tell of the liberty and equality of the two sexes
- in relation to each other.
-
- Why not, as Aeschylus says, utter the word which rises to our lips?
-
- That is what I am doing, I replied; and I must add that no one
- who does not know would believe, how much greater is the liberty
- which the animals who are under the dominion of man have in a democracy
- than in any other State: for truly, the she-dogs, as the proverb says,
- are as good as their she-mistresses, and the horses and asses have
- a way of marching along with all the rights and dignities of freemen;
- and they will run at anybody who comes in their way if he does
- not leave the road clear for them: and all things are just ready
- to burst with liberty.
-
- When I take a country walk, he said, I often experience what you describe.
- You and I have dreamed the same thing.
-
- And above all, I said, and as the result of all, see how sensitive
- the citizens become; they chafe impatiently at the least touch
- of authority and at length, as you know, they cease to care even
- for the laws, written or unwritten; they will have no one over them.
-
- Yes, he said, I know it too well.
-
- Such, my friend, I said, is the fair and glorious beginning
- out of which springs tyranny.
-
- Glorious indeed, he said. But what is the next step?
-
- The ruin of oligarchy is the ruin of democracy; the same disease
- magnified and intensified by liberty overmasters democracy--
- the truth being that the excessive increase of anything often
- causes a reaction in the opposite direction; and this is the case
- not only in the seasons and in vegetable and animal life, but above
- all in forms of government.
-
- True.
-
- The excess of liberty, whether in States or individuals,
- seems only to pass into excess of slavery.
-
- Yes, the natural order.
-
- And so tyranny naturally arises out of democracy, and the most
- aggravated form of tyranny and slavery out of the most extreme
- form of liberty?
-
- As we might expect.
-
- That, however, was not, as I believe, your question-you rather
- desired to know what is that disorder which is generated alike
- in oligarchy and democracy, and is the ruin of both?
-
- Just so, he replied.
-
- Well, I said, I meant to refer to the class of idle spendthrifts,
- of whom the more courageous are the-leaders and the more timid
- the followers, the same whom we were comparing to drones, some stingless,
- and others having stings.
-
- A very just comparison.
-
- These two classes are the plagues of every city in which they
- are generated, being what phlegm and bile are to the body.
- And the good physician and lawgiver of the State ought, like the wise
- bee-master, to keep them at a distance and prevent, if possible,
- their ever coming in; and if they have anyhow found a way in,
- then he should have them and their cells cut out as speedily
- as possible.
-
- Yes, by all means, he said.
-
- Then, in order that we may see clearly what we are doing, let us
- imagine democracy to be divided, as indeed it is, into three classes;
- for in the first place freedom creates rather more drones in
- the democratic than there were in the oligarchical State.
-
- That is true.
-
- And in the democracy they are certainly more intensified.
-
- How so?
-
- Because in the oligarchical State they are disqualified and driven
- from office, and therefore they cannot train or gather strength;
- whereas in a democracy they are almost the entire ruling power,
- and while the keener sort speak and act, the rest keep buzzing
- about the bema and do not suffer a word to be said on the other side;
- hence in democracies almost everything is managed by the drones.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Then there is another class which is always being severed from
- the mass.
-
- What is that?
-
- They are the orderly class, which in a nation of traders sure
- to be the richest.
-
- Naturally so.
-
- They are the most squeezable persons and yield the largest amount
- of honey to the drones.
-
- Why, he said, there is little to be squeezed out of people
- who have little.
-
- And this is called the wealthy class, and the drones feed upon them.
-
- That is pretty much the case, he said.
-
- The people are a third class, consisting of those who work with their
- own hands; they are not politicians, and have not much to live upon.
- This, when assembled, is the largest and most powerful class in a democracy.
-
- True, he said; but then the multitude is seldom willing to congregate
- unless they get a little honey.
-
- And do they not share? I said. Do not their leaders deprive
- the rich of their estates and distribute them among the people;
- at the same time taking care to reserve the larger part for themselves?
-
- Why, yes, he said, to that extent the people do share.
-
- And the persons whose property is taken from them are compelled
- to defend themselves before the people as they best can?
-
- What else can they do?
-
- And then, although they may have no desire of change, the others
- charge them with plotting against the people and being friends
- of oligarchy? True.
-
- And the end is that when they see the people, not of their own accord,
- but through ignorance, and because they are deceived by informers,
- seeking to do them wrong, then at last they are forced to become
- oligarchs in reality; they do not wish to be, but the sting of
- the drones torments them and breeds revolution in them.
-
- That is exactly the truth.
-
- Then come impeachments and judgments and trials of one another.
-
- True.
-
- The people have always some champion whom they set over them
- and nurse into greatness.
-
- Yes, that is their way.
-
- This and no other is the root from which a tyrant springs;
- when he first appears above ground he is a protector.
-
- Yes, that is quite clear.
-
- How then does a protector begin to change into a tyrant?
- Clearly when he does what the man is said to do in the tale
- of the Arcadian temple of Lycaean Zeus.
-
- What tale?
-
- The tale is that he who has tasted the entrails of a single human
- victim minced up with the entrails of other victims is destined
- to become a wolf. Did you never hear it?
-
- Oh, yes.
-
- And the protector of the people is like him; having a mob entirely at
- his disposal, he is not restrained from shedding the blood of kinsmen;
- by the favourite method of false accusation he brings them into
- court and murders them, making the life of man to disappear,
- and with unholy tongue and lips tasting the blood of his fellow citizen;
- some he kills and others he banishes, at the same time hinting
- at the abolition of debts and partition of lands: and after this,
- what will be his destiny? Must he not either perish at the hands
- of his enemies, or from being a man become a wolf--that is,
- a tyrant?
-
- Inevitably.
-
- This, I said, is he who begins to make a party against the rich?
-
- The same.
-
- After a while he is driven out, but comes back, in spite of his enemies,
- a tyrant full grown.
-
- That is clear.
-
- And if they are unable to expel him, or to get him condemned
- to death by a public accusation, they conspire to assassinate him.
-
- Yes, he said, that is their usual way.
-
- Then comes the famous request for a bodyguard, which is the device
- of all those who have got thus far in their tyrannical career--`Let
- not the people's friend,' as they say, `be lost to them.'
-
- Exactly.
-
- The people readily assent; all their fears are for him--
- they have none for themselves.
-
- Very true.
-
- And when a man who is wealthy and is also accused of being an enemy
- of the people sees this, then, my friend, as the oracle said to Croesus,
-
- By pebbly Hermus' shore he flees and rests not and is not
- ashamed to be a coward.
-
- And quite right too, said he, for if he were, he would never be
- ashamed again.
-
- But if he is caught he dies.
-
- Of course.
-
- And he, the protector of whom we spoke, is to be seen, not `larding
- the plain' with his bulk, but himself the overthrower of many,
- standing up in the chariot of State with the reins in his hand,
- no longer protector, but tyrant absolute.
-
- No doubt, he said.
-
- And now let us consider the happiness of the man, and also
- of the State in which a creature like him is generated.
-
- Yes, he said, let us consider that.
-
- At first, in the early days of his power, he is full of smiles,
- and he salutes every one whom he meets;--he to be called a tyrant,
- who is making promises in public and also in private! liberating debtors,
- and distributing land to the people and his followers, and wanting
- to be so kind and good to every one!
-
- Of course, he said.
-
- But when he has disposed of foreign enemies by conquest or treaty,
- and there is nothing to fear from them, then he is always stirring up
- some war or other, in order that the people may require a leader.
-
- To be sure.
-
- Has he not also another object, which is that they may be impoverished
- by payment of taxes, and thus compelled to devote themselves to their
- daily wants and therefore less likely to conspire against him? Clearly.
-
- And if any of them are suspected by him of having notions of freedom,
- and of resistance to his authority, he will have a good pretext
- for destroying them by placing them at the mercy of the enemy;
- and for all these reasons the tyrant must be always getting up
- a war.
-
- He must.
-
- Now he begins to grow unpopular.
-
- A necessary result.
-
- Then some of those who joined in setting him up, and who are in power,
- speak their minds to him and to one another, and the more courageous
- of them cast in his teeth what is being done.
-
- Yes, that may be expected.
-
- And the tyrant, if he means to rule, must get rid of them; he cannot
- stop while he has a friend or an enemy who is good for anything.
-
- He cannot.
-
- And therefore he must look about him and see who is valiant,
- who is high-minded, who is wise, who is wealthy; happy man,
- he is the enemy of them all, and must seek occasion against them
- whether he will or no, until he has made a purgation of the State.
-
- Yes, he said, and a rare purgation.
-
- Yes, I said, not the sort of purgation which the physicians make
- of the body; for they take away the worse and leave the better part,
- but he does the reverse.
-
- If he is to rule, I suppose that he cannot help himself.
-
- What a blessed alternative, I said:--to be compelled to dwell only
- with the many bad, and to be by them hated, or not to live at all!
-
- Yes, that is the alternative.
-
- And the more detestable his actions are to the citizens the more
- satellites and the greater devotion in them will he require?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And who are the devoted band, and where will he procure them?
-
- They will flock to him, he said, of their own accord, if lie pays them.
-
- By the dog! I said, here are more drones, of every sort and from
- every land.
-
- Yes, he said, there are.
-
- But will he not desire to get them on the spot?
-
- How do you mean?
-
- He will rob the citizens of their slaves; he will then set them
- free and enrol them in his bodyguard.
-
- To be sure, he said; and he will be able to trust them best of all.
-
- What a blessed creature, I said, must this tyrant be; he has put
- to death the others and has these for his trusted friends.
-
- Yes, he said; they are quite of his sort.
-
- Yes, I said, and these are the new citizens whom he has
- called into existence, who admire him and are his companions,
- while the good hate and avoid him.
-
- Of course.
-
- Verily, then, tragedy is a wise thing and Euripides a great tragedian.
-
- Why so?
-
- Why, because he is the author of the pregnant saying,
-
- Tyrants are wise by living with the wise;
-
- and he clearly meant to say that they are the wise whom the tyrant
- makes his companions.
-
- Yes, he said, and he also praises tyranny as godlike; and many other
- things of the same kind are said by him and by the other poets.
-
- And therefore, I said, the tragic poets being wise men will forgive
- us and any others who live after our manner if we do not receive
- them into our State, because they are the eulogists of tyranny.
-
- Yes, he said, those who have the wit will doubtless forgive us.
-
- But they will continue to go to other cities and attract mobs,
- and hire voices fair and loud and persuasive, and draw the cities
- over to tyrannies and democracies.
-
- Very true.
-
- Moreover, they are paid for this and receive honour--the greatest honour,
- as might be expected, from tyrants, and the next greatest
- from democracies; but the higher they ascend our constitution hill,
- the more their reputation fails, and seems unable from shortness
- of breath to proceed further.
-
- True.
-
- But we are wandering from the subject: Let us therefore return
- and enquire how the tyrant will maintain that fair and numerous
- and various and ever-changing army of his.
-
- If, he said, there are sacred treasures in the city, he will
- confiscate and spend them; and in so far as the fortunes
- of attainted persons may suffice, he will be able to diminish
- the taxes which he would otherwise have to impose upon the people.
-
- And when these fail?
-
- Why, clearly, he said, then he and his boon companions, whether male
- or female, will be maintained out of his father's estate.
-
- You mean to say that the people, from whom he has derived his being,
- will maintain him and his companions?
-
- Yes, he said; they cannot help themselves.
-
- But what if the people fly into a passion, and aver that a grown-up
- son ought not to be supported by his father, but that the father
- should be supported by the son? The father did not bring him
- into being, or settle him in life, in order that when his son
- became a man he should himself be the servant of his own servants
- and should support him and his rabble of slaves and companions;
- but that his son should protect him, and that by his help he might
- be emancipated from the government of the rich and aristocratic,
- as they are termed. And so he bids him and his companions depart,
- just as any other father might drive out of the house a riotous son
- and his undesirable associates.
-
- By heaven, he said, then the parent will discover what a monster he
- has been fostering in his bosom; and, when he wants to drive him out,
- he will find that he is weak and his son strong.
-
- Why, you do not mean to say that the tyrant will use violence?
- What! beat his father if he opposes him?
-
- Yes, he will, having first disarmed him.
-
- Then he is a parricide, and a cruel guardian of an aged parent;
- and this is real tyranny, about which there can be no longer a mistake:
- as the saying is, the people who would escape the smoke which is
- the slavery of freemen, has fallen into the fire which is the tyranny
- of slaves. Thus liberty, getting out of all order and reason,
- passes into the harshest and bitterest form of slavery.
-
- True, he said.
-
- Very well; and may we not rightly say that we have sufficiently
- discussed the nature of tyranny, and the manner of the transition
- from democracy to tyranny?
-
- Yes, quite enough, he said.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK IX
-
-
- SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
-
- LAST of all comes the tyrannical man; about whom we have once more to ask,
- how is he formed out of the democratical? and how does he live,
- in happiness or in misery?
-
- Yes, he said, he is the only one remaining.
-
- There is, however, I said, a previous question which remains unanswered.
-
- What question?
-
- I do not think that we have adequately determined the nature
- and number of the appetites, and until this is accomplished
- the enquiry will always be confused.
-
- Well, he said, it is not too late to supply the omission.
-
- Very true, I said; and observe the point which I want to understand:
- Certain of the unnecessary pleasures and appetites I conceive
- to be unlawful; every one appears to have them, but in some persons
- they are controlled by the laws and by reason, and the better
- desires prevail over them-either they are wholly banished or they
- become few and weak; while in the case of others they are stronger,
- and there are more of them.
-
- Which appetites do you mean?
-
- I mean those which are awake when the reasoning and human and ruling
- power is asleep; then the wild beast within us, gorged with meat
- or drink, starts up and having shaken off sleep, goes forth to
- satisfy his desires; and there is no conceivable folly or crime--
- not excepting incest or any other unnatural union, or parricide,
- or the eating of forbidden food--which at such a time, when he has
- parted company with all shame and sense, a man may not be ready
- to commit.
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- But when a man's pulse is healthy and temperate, and when before
- going to sleep he has awakened his rational powers, and fed them
- on noble thoughts and enquiries, collecting himself in meditation;
- after having first indulged his appetites neither too much nor
- too little, but just enough to lay them to sleep, and prevent
- them and their enjoyments and pains from interfering with the
- higher principle--which he leaves in the solitude of pure abstraction,
- free to contemplate and aspire to the knowledge of the unknown,
- whether in past, present, or future: when again he has allayed
- the passionate element, if he has a quarrel against any one--
- I say, when, after pacifying the two irrational principles, he rouses up
- the third, which is reason, before he takes his rest, then, as you know,
- he attains truth most nearly, and is least likely to be the sport
- of fantastic and lawless visions.
-
- I quite agree.
-
- In saying this I have been running into a digression; but the point
- which I desire to note is that in all of us, even in good men,
- there is a lawless wild-beast nature, which peers out in sleep.
- Pray, consider whether I am right, and you agree with me.
-
- Yes, I agree.
-
- And now remember the character which we attributed to the democratic man.
- He was supposed from his youth upwards to have been trained under
- a miserly parent, who encouraged the saving appetites in him,
- but discountenanced the unnecessary, which aim only at amusement
- and ornament?
-
- True.
-
- And then he got into the company of a more refined, licentious sort
- of people, and taking to all their wanton ways rushed into the opposite
- extreme from an abhorrence of his father's meanness. At last,
- being a better man than his corruptors, he was drawn in both directions
- until he halted midway and led a life, not of vulgar and slavish passion,
- but of what he deemed moderate indulgence in various pleasures.
- After this manner the democrat was generated out of the oligarch?
-
- Yes, he said; that was our view of him, and is so still.
-
- And now, I said, years will have passed away, and you must conceive
- this man, such as he is, to have a son, who is brought up in his
- father's principles.
-
- I can imagine him.
-
- Then you must further imagine the same thing to happen to the son
- which has already happened to the father:--he is drawn into a perfectly
- lawless life, which by his seducers is termed perfect liberty;
- and his father and friends take part with his moderate desires,
- and the opposite party assist the opposite ones. As soon as these dire
- magicians and tyrant-makers find that they are losing their hold on him,
- they contrive to implant in him a master passion, to be lord over
- his idle and spendthrift lusts--a sort of monstrous winged drone--
- that is the only image which will adequately describe him.
-
- Yes, he said, that is the only adequate image of him.
-
- And when his other lusts, amid clouds of incense and perfumes
- and garlands and wines, and all the pleasures of a dissolute life,
- now let loose, come buzzing around him, nourishing to the utmost
- the sting of desire which they implant in his drone-like nature,
- then at last this lord of the soul, having Madness for the captain
- of his guard, breaks out into a frenzy: and if he finds in himself
- any good opinions or appetites in process of formation, and there
- is in him any sense of shame remaining, to these better principles he
- puts an end, and casts them forth until he has purged away temperance
- and brought in madness to the full.
-
- Yes, he said, that is the way in which the tyrannical man is generated.
-
- And is not this the reason why of old love has been called a tyrant?
-
- I should not wonder.
-
- Further, I said, has not a drunken man also the spirit of a tyrant?
-
- He has.
-
- And you know that a man who is deranged and not right in his mind,
- will fancy that he is able to rule, not only over men, but also over
- the gods?
-
- That he will.
-
- And the tyrannical man in the true sense of the word comes
- into being when, either under the influence of nature, or habit,
- or both, he becomes drunken, lustful, passionate? O my friend,
- is not that so?
-
- Assuredly.
-
- Such is the man and such is his origin. And next, how does he live?
-
- Suppose, as people facetiously say, you were to tell me.
-
- I imagine, I said, at the next step in his progress, that there
- will be feasts and carousals and revellings and courtezans,
- and all that sort of thing; Love is the lord of the house within him,
- and orders all the concerns of his soul.
-
- That is certain.
-
- Yes; and every day and every night desires grow up many and formidable,
- and their demands are many.
-
- They are indeed, he said.
-
- His revenues, if he has any, are soon spent.
-
- True.
-
- Then comes debt and the cutting down of his property.
-
- Of course.
-
- When he has nothing left, must not his desires, crowding in the nest
- like young ravens, be crying aloud for food; and he, goaded on by them,
- and especially by love himself, who is in a manner the captain
- of them, is in a frenzy, and would fain discover whom he can defraud
- or despoil of his property, in order that he may gratify them?
-
- Yes, that is sure to be the case.
-
- He must have money, no matter how, if he is to escape horrid pains
- and pangs.
-
- He must.
-
- And as in himself there was a succession of pleasures, and the new
- got the better of the old and took away their rights, so he being
- younger will claim to have more than his father and his mother,
- and if he has spent his own share of the property, he will take
- a slice of theirs.
-
- No doubt he will.
-
- And if his parents will not give way, then he will try first
- of all to cheat and deceive them.
-
- Very true.
-
- And if he fails, then he will use force and plunder them.
-
- Yes, probably.
-
- And if the old man and woman fight for their own, what then, my friend?
- Will the creature feel any compunction at tyrannizing over them?
-
- Nay, he said, I should not feel at all comfortable about his parents.
-
- But, O heavens! Adeimantus, on account of some newfangled love
- of a harlot, who is anything but a necessary connection, can you
- believe that he would strike the mother who is his ancient friend
- and necessary to his very existence, and would place her under
- the authority of the other, when she is brought under the same roof
- with her; or that, under like circumstances, he would do the same
- to his withered old father, first and most indispensable of friends,
- for the sake of some newly found blooming youth who is the reverse
- of indispensable?
-
- Yes, indeed, he said; I believe that he would.
-
- Truly, then, I said, a tyrannical son is a blessing to his father
- and mother.
-
- He is indeed, he replied.
-
- He first takes their property, and when that falls, and pleasures
- are beginning to swarm in the hive of his soul, then he breaks
- into a house, or steals the garments of some nightly wayfarer;
- next he proceeds to clear a temple. Meanwhile the old opinions
- which he had when a child, and which gave judgment about good and evil,
- are overthrown by those others which have just been emancipated,
- and are now the bodyguard of love and share his empire.
- These in his democratic days, when he was still subject to the laws
- and to his father, were only let loose in the dreams of sleep.
- But now that he is under the dominion of love, he becomes always
- and in waking reality what he was then very rarely and in a dream only;
- he will commit the foulest murder, or eat forbidden food, or be
- guilty of any other horrid act. Love is his tyrant, and lives
- lordly in him and lawlessly, and being himself a king, leads him on,
- as a tyrant leads a State, to the performance of any reckless deed
- by which he can maintain himself and the rabble of his associates,
- whether those whom evil communications have brought in from without,
- or those whom he himself has allowed to break loose within him by reason
- of a similar evil nature in himself. Have we not here a picture of his way
- of life?
-
- Yes, indeed, he said.
-
- And if there are only a few of them in the State, the rest of the people
- are well disposed, they go away and become the bodyguard or mercenary
- soldiers of some other tyrant who may probably want them for a war;
- and if there is no war, they stay at home and do many little pieces
- of mischief in the city.
-
- What sort of mischief?
-
- For example, they are the thieves, burglars, cutpurses, footpads,
- robbers of temples, man-stealers of the community; or if they
- are able to speak they turn informers, and bear false witness,
- and take bribes.
-
- A small catalogue of evils, even if the perpetrators of them
- are few in number.
-
- Yes, I said; but small and great are comparative terms,
- and all these things, in the misery and evil which they inflict
- upon a State, do not come within a thousand miles of the tyrant;
- when this noxious class and their followers grow numerous and become
- conscious of their strength, assisted by the infatuation of the people,
- they choose from among themselves the one who has most of the tyrant
- in his own soul, and him they create their tyrant.
-
- Yes, he said, and he will be the most fit to be a tyrant.
-
- If the people yield, well and good; but if they resist him,
- as he began by beating his own father and mother, so now, if he has
- the power, he beats them, and will keep his dear old fatherland
- or motherland, as the Cretans say, in subjection to his young
- retainers whom he has introduced to be their rulers and masters.
- This is the end of his passions and desires.
-
- Exactly.
-
- When such men are only private individuals and before they get power,
- this is their character; they associate entirely with their own
- flatterers or ready tools; or if they want anything from anybody,
- they in their turn are equally ready to bow down before them:
- they profess every sort of affection for them; but when they have gained
- their point they know them no more.
-
- Yes, truly.
-
- They are always either the masters or servants and never the friends
- of anybody; the tyrant never tastes of true freedom or friendship.
-
- Certainly not.
-
- And may we not rightly call such men treacherous?
-
- No question.
-
- Also they are utterly unjust, if we were right in our notion
- of justice?
-
- Yes, he said, and we were perfectly right.
-
- Let us then sum up in a word, I said, the character of the worst man:
- he is the waking reality of what we dreamed.
-
- Most true.
-
- And this is he who being by nature most of a tyrant bears rule,
- and the longer he lives the more of a tyrant he becomes.
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- That is certain, said Glaucon, taking his turn to answer.
-
- And will not he who has been shown to be the wickedest, be also
- the most miserable? and he who has tyrannized longest and most,
- most continually and truly miserable; although this may not be
- the opinion of men in general?
-
- Yes, he said, inevitably.
-
- And must not the tyrannical man be like the tyrannical, State, and the
- democratical man like the democratical State; and the same of the others?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And as State is to State in virtue and happiness, so is man
- in relation to man?
-
- To be sure.
-
- Then comparing our original city, which was under a king,
- and the city which is under a tyrant, how do they stand as to virtue?
-
- They are the opposite extremes, he said, for one is the very best
- and the other is the very worst.
-
- There can be no mistake, I said, as to which is which, and therefore
- I will at once enquire whether you would arrive at a similar decision
- about their relative happiness and misery. And here we must not allow
- ourselves to be panic-stricken at the apparition of the tyrant,
- who is only a unit and may perhaps have a few retainers about him;
- but let us go as we ought into every corner of the city and look
- all about, and then we will give our opinion.
-
- A fair invitation, he replied; and I see, as every one must,
- that a tyranny is the wretchedest form of government, and the rule
- of a king the happiest.
-
- And in estimating the men too, may I not fairly make a like request,
- that I should have a judge whose mind can enter into and see through
- human nature? He must not be like a child who looks at the outside
- and is dazzled at the pompous aspect which the tyrannical nature
- assumes to the beholder, but let him be one who has a clear insight.
- May I suppose that the judgment is given in the hearing of us all
- by one who is able to judge, and has dwelt in the same place with him,
- and been present at his dally life and known him in his family relations,
- where he may be seen stripped of his tragedy attire, and again
- in the hour of public danger--he shall tell us about the happiness
- and misery of the tyrant when compared with other men?
-
- That again, he said, is a very fair proposal.
-
- Shall I assume that we ourselves are able and experienced judges
- and have before now met with such a person? We shall then have
- some one who will answer our enquiries.
-
- By all means.
-
- Let me ask you not to forget the parallel of the individual and the State;
- bearing this in mind, and glancing in turn from one to the other
- of them, will you tell me their respective conditions?
-
- What do you mean? he asked.
-
- Beginning with the State, I replied, would you say that a city
- which is governed by a tyrant is free or enslaved?
-
- No city, he said, can be more completely enslaved.
-
- And yet, as you see, there are freemen as well as masters in such
- a State?
-
- Yes, he said, I see that there are--a few; but the people,
- speaking generally, and the best of them, are miserably degraded
- and enslaved.
-
- Then if the man is like the State, I said, must not the same rule
- prevail? his soul is full of meanness and vulgarity--the best
- elements in him are enslaved; and there is a small ruling part,
- which is also the worst and maddest.
-
- Inevitably.
-
- And would you say that the soul of such an one is the soul of a freeman,
- or of a slave?
-
- He has the soul of a slave, in my opinion.
-
- And the State which is enslaved under a tyrant is utterly incapable
- of acting voluntarily?
-
- Utterly incapable.
-
- And also the soul which is under a tyrant (I am speaking of the soul
- taken as a whole) is least capable of doing what she desires;
- there is a gadfly which goads her, and she is full of trouble
- and remorse?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And is the city which is under a tyrant rich or poor?
-
- Poor.
-
- And the tyrannical soul must be always poor and insatiable?
-
- True.
-
- And must not such a State and such a man be always full of fear?
-
- Yes, indeed.
-
- Is there any State in which you will find more of lamentation
- and sorrow and groaning and pain?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- And is there any man in whom you will find more of this sort of misery
- than in the tyrannical man, who is in a fury of passions and desires?
-
- Impossible.
-
- Reflecting upon these and similar evils, you held the tyrannical
- State to be the most miserable of States?
-
- And I was right, he said.
-
- Certainly, I said. And when you see the same evils in the tyrannical man,
- what do you say of him?
-
- I say that he is by far the most miserable of all men.
-
- There, I said, I think that you are beginning to go wrong.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- I do not think that he has as yet reached the utmost extreme of misery.
-
- Then who is more miserable?
-
- One of whom I am about to speak.
-
- Who is that?
-
- He who is of a tyrannical nature, and instead of leading a private life
- has been cursed with the further misfortune of being a public tyrant.
-
- From what has been said, I gather that you are right.
-
- Yes, I replied, but in this high argument you should be a little
- more certain, and should not conjecture only; for of all questions,
- this respecting good and evil is the greatest.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Let me then offer you an illustration, which may, I think,
- throw a light upon this subject.
-
- What is your illustration?
-
- The case of rich individuals in cities who possess many slaves:
- from them you may form an idea of the tyrant's condition,
- for they both have slaves; the only difference is that he has
- more slaves.
-
- Yes, that is the difference.
-
- You know that they live securely and have nothing to apprehend
- from their servants?
-
- What should they fear?
-
- Nothing. But do you observe the reason of this?
-
- Yes; the reason is, that the whole city is leagued together
- for the protection of each individual.
-
- Very true, I said. But imagine one of these owners, the master
- say of some fifty slaves, together with his family and property
- and slaves, carried off by a god into the wilderness, where there
- are no freemen to help him--will he not be in an agony of fear lest
- he and his wife and children should be put to death by his slaves?
-
- Yes, he said, he will be in the utmost fear.
-
- The time has arrived when he will be compelled to flatter divers of
- his slaves, and make many promises to them of freedom and other things,
- much against his will--he will have to cajole his own servants.
-
- Yes, he said, that will be the only way of saving himself.
-
- And suppose the same god, who carried him away, to surround him with
- neighbours who will not suffer one man to be the master of another,
- and who, if they could catch the offender, would take his life?
-
- His case will be still worse, if you suppose him to be everywhere
- surrounded and watched by enemies.
-
- And is not this the sort of prison in which the tyrant will be bound--
- he who being by nature such as we have described, is full of all sorts
- of fears and lusts? His soul is dainty and greedy, and yet alone,
- of all men in the city, he is never allowed to go on a journey,
- or to see the things which other freemen desire to see, but he
- lives in his hole like a woman hidden in the house, and is jealous
- of any other citizen who goes into foreign parts and sees anything
- of interest.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- And amid evils such as these will not he who is ill-governed
- in his own person--the tyrannical man, I mean--whom you
- just now decided to be the most miserable of all--will not he
- be yet more miserable when, instead of leading a private life,
- he is constrained by fortune to be a public tyrant?
- He has to be master of others when he is not master of himself:
- he is like a diseased or paralytic man who is compelled to pass
- his life, not in retirement, but fighting and combating with other men.
-
- Yes, he said, the similitude is most exact.
-
- Is not his case utterly miserable? and does not the actual tyrant
- lead a worse life than he whose life you determined to be the worst?
-
- Certainly.
-
- He who is the real tyrant, whatever men may think, is the real slave,
- and is obliged to practise the greatest adulation and servility,
- and to be the flatterer of the vilest of mankind. He has desires
- which he is utterly unable to satisfy, and has more wants than any one,
- and is truly poor, if you know how to inspect the whole soul of him:
- all his life long he is beset with fear and is full of convulsions,
- and distractions, even as the State which he resembles:
- and surely the resemblance holds?
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Moreover, as we were saying before, he grows worse from having power:
- he becomes and is of necessity more jealous, more faithless,
- more unjust, more friendless, more impious, than he was at first;
- he is the purveyor and cherisher of every sort of vice, and the consequence
- is that he is supremely miserable, and that he makes everybody else
- as miserable as himself.
-
- No man of any sense will dispute your words.
-
- Come then, I said, and as the general umpire in theatrical
- contests proclaims the result, do you also decide who in your
- opinion is first in the scale of happiness, and who second,
- and in what order the others follow: there are five of them in all--
- they are the royal, timocratical, oligarchical, democratical, tyrannical.
-
- The decision will be easily given, he replied; they shall be choruses
- coming on the stage, and I must judge them in the order in which
- they enter, by the criterion of virtue and vice, happiness and misery.
-
- Need we hire a herald, or shall I announce, that the son of Ariston
- (the best) has decided that the best and justest is also the happiest,
- and that this is he who is the most royal man and king over himself;
- and that the worst and most unjust man is also the most miserable,
- and that this is he who being the greatest tyrant of himself is also the
- greatest tyrant of his State?
-
- Make the proclamation yourself, he said.
-
- And shall I add, `whether seen or unseen by gods and men'?
-
- Let the words be added.
-
- Then this, I said, will be our first proof; and there is another,
- which may also have some weight.
-
- What is that?
-
- The second proof is derived from the nature of the soul:
- seeing that the individual soul, like the State, has been
- divided by us into three principles, the division may, I think,
- furnish a new demonstration.
-
- Of what nature?
-
- It seems to me that to these three principles three pleasures correspond;
- also three desires and governing powers.
-
- How do you mean? he said.
-
- There is one principle with which, as we were saying, a man learns,
- another with which he is angry; the third, having many forms,
- has no special name, but is denoted by the general term appetitive,
- from the extraordinary strength and vehemence of the desires of eating
- and drinking and the other sensual appetites which are the main
- elements of it; also money-loving, because such desires are generally
- satisfied by the help of money.
-
- That is true, he said.
-
- If we were to say that the loves and pleasures of this third part
- were concerned with gain, we should then be able to fall back
- on a single notion; and might truly and intelligibly describe
- this part of the soul as loving gain or money.
-
- I agree with you.
-
- Again, is not the passionate element wholly set on ruling
- and conquering and getting fame?
-
- True.
-
- Suppose we call it the contentious or ambitious--would the term
- be suitable?
-
- Extremely suitable.
-
- On the other hand, every one sees that the principle of knowledge
- is wholly directed to the truth, and cares less than either
- of the others for gain or fame.
-
- Far less.
-
- `Lover of wisdom,' `lover of knowledge,' are titles which we
- may fitly apply to that part of the soul?
-
- Certainly.
-
- One principle prevails in the souls of one class of men,
- another in others, as may happen?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then we may begin by assuming that there are three classes of men--
- lovers of wisdom, lovers of honour, lovers of gain?
-
- Exactly.
-
- And there are three kinds of pleasure, which are their several objects?
-
- Very true.
-
- Now, if you examine the three classes of men, and ask of them
- in turn which of their lives is pleasantest, each will be found
- praising his own and depreciating that of others: the money-maker
- will contrast the vanity of honour or of learning if they bring
- no money with the solid advantages of gold and silver?
-
- True, he said.
-
- And the lover of honour--what will be his opinion? Will he not think
- that the pleasure of riches is vulgar, while the pleasure of learning,
- if it brings no distinction, is all smoke and nonsense to him?
-
- Very true.
-
- And are we to suppose, I said, that the philosopher sets any value on
- other pleasures in comparison with the pleasure of knowing the truth,
- and in that pursuit abiding, ever learning, not so far indeed from the heaven
- of pleasure? Does he not call the other pleasures necessary, under the
- idea that if there were no necessity for them, he would rather not have them?
-
- There can be no doubt of that, he replied.
-
- Since, then, the pleasures of each class and the life of each are
- in dispute, and the question is not which life is more or less honourable,
- or better or worse, but which is the more pleasant or painless--
- how shall we know who speaks truly?
-
- I cannot myself tell, he said.
-
- Well, but what ought to be the criterion? Is any better than
- experience and wisdom and reason?
-
- There cannot be a better, he said.
-
- Then, I said, reflect. Of the three individuals, which has
- the greatest experience of all the pleasures which we enumerated?
- Has the lover of gain, in learning the nature of essential truth,
- greater experience of the pleasure of knowledge than the philosopher has
- of the pleasure of gain?
-
- The philosopher, he replied, has greatly the advantage; for he has
- of necessity always known the taste of the other pleasures from his
- childhood upwards: but the lover of gain in all his experience has
- not of necessity tasted--or, I should rather say, even had he desired,
- could hardly have tasted--the sweetness of learning and knowing truth.
-
- Then the lover of wisdom has a great advantage over the lover of gain,
- for he has a double experience?
-
- Yes, very great.
-
- Again, has he greater experience of the pleasures of honour,
- or the lover of honour of the pleasures of wisdom?
-
- Nay, he said, all three are honoured in proportion as they attain
- their object; for the rich man and the brave man and the wise
- man alike have their crowd of admirers, and as they all receive
- honour they all have experience of the pleasures of honour;
- but the delight which is to be found in the knowledge of true being
- is known to the philosopher only.
-
- His experience, then, will enable him to judge better than any one?
-
- Far better.
-
- And he is the only one who has wisdom as well as experience?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Further, the very faculty which is the instrument of judgment is not
- possessed by the covetous or ambitious man, but only by the philosopher?
-
- What faculty?
-
- Reason, with whom, as we were saying, the decision ought to rest.
-
- Yes.
-
- And reasoning is peculiarly his instrument?
-
- Certainly.
-
- If wealth and gain were the criterion, then the praise or blame
- of the lover of gain would surely be the most trustworthy?
-
- Assuredly.
-
- Or if honour or victory or courage, in that case the judgement
- of the ambitious or pugnacious would be the truest?
-
- Clearly.
-
- But since experience and wisdom and reason are the judges--
-
- The only inference possible, he replied, is that pleasures which
- are approved by the lover of wisdom and reason are the truest.
-
- And so we arrive at the result, that the pleasure of the intelligent
- part of the soul is the pleasantest of the three, and that he of us
- in whom this is the ruling principle has the pleasantest life.
-
- Unquestionably, he said, the wise man speaks with authority when he
- approves of his own life.
-
- And what does the judge affirm to be the life which is next,
- and the pleasure which is next?
-
- Clearly that of the soldier and lover of honour; who is nearer
- to himself than the money-maker.
-
- Last comes the lover of gain?
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Twice in succession, then, has the just man overthrown the unjust
- in this conflict; and now comes the third trial, which is
- dedicated to Olympian Zeus the saviour: a sage whispers in my ear
- that no pleasure except that of the wise is quite true and pure--
- all others are a shadow only; and surely this will prove the greatest
- and most decisive of falls?
-
- Yes, the greatest; but will you explain yourself?
-
- I will work out the subject and you shall answer my questions.
-
- Proceed.
-
- Say, then, is not pleasure opposed to pain?
-
- True.
-
- And there is a neutral state which is neither pleasure nor pain?
-
- There is.
-
- A state which is intermediate, and a sort of repose of the soul
- about either--that is what you mean?
-
- Yes.
-
- You remember what people say when they are sick?
-
- What do they say?
-
- That after all nothing is pleasanter than health. But then they
- never knew this to be the greatest of pleasures until they were ill.
-
- Yes, I know, he said.
-
- And when persons are suffering from acute pain, you must.
- have heard them say that there is nothing pleasanter than to get rid
- of their pain?
-
- I have.
-
- And there are many other cases of suffering in which the mere rest
- and cessation of pain, and not any positive enjoyment, is extolled
- by them as the greatest pleasure?
-
- Yes, he said; at the time they are pleased and well content to be
- at rest.
-
- Again, when pleasure ceases, that sort of rest or cessation will
- be painful?
-
- Doubtless, he said.
-
- Then the intermediate state of rest will be pleasure and will
- also be pain?
-
- So it would seem.
-
- But can that which is neither become both?
-
- I should say not.
-
- And both pleasure and pain are motions of the soul, are they not?
-
- Yes.
-
- But that which is neither was just now shown to be rest and not motion,
- and in a mean between them?
-
- Yes.
-
- How, then, can we be right in supposing that the absence of pain
- is pleasure, or that the absence of pleasure is pain?
-
- Impossible.
-
- This then is an appearance only and not a reality; that is tc say,
- the rest is pleasure at the moment and in comparison of what
- is painful, and painful in comparison of what is pleasant;
- but all these representations, when tried by the test of true pleasure,
- are not real but a sort of imposition?
-
- That is the inference.
-
- Look at the other class of pleasures which have no antecedent pains
- and you will no longer suppose, as you perhaps may at present,
- that pleasure is only the cessation of pain, or pain of pleasure.
-
- What are they, he said, and where shall I find them?
-
- There are many of them: take as an example the pleasures, of smell,
- which are very great and have no antecedent pains; they come in a moment,
- and when they depart leave no pain behind them.
-
- Most true, he said.
-
- Let us not, then, be induced to believe that pure pleasure
- is the cessation of pain, or pain of pleasure.
-
- No.
-
- Still, the more numerous and violent pleasures which reach the soul
- through the body are generally of this sort--they are reliefs
- of pain.
-
- That is true.
-
- And the anticipations of future pleasures and pains are of a like nature?
-
- Yes.
-
- Shall I give you an illustration of them?
-
- Let me hear.
-
- You would allow, I said, that there is in nature an upper and lower
- and middle region?
-
- I should.
-
- And if a person were to go from the lower to the middle region,
- would he not imagine that he is going up; and he who is standing
- in the middle and sees whence he has come, would imagine that he
- is already in the upper region, if he has never seen the true
- upper world?
-
- To be sure, he said; how can he think otherwise?
-
- But if he were taken back again he would imagine, and truly imagine,
- that he was descending?
-
- No doubt.
-
- All that would arise out of his ignorance of the true upper
- and middle and lower regions?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then can you wonder that persons who are inexperienced in the truth,
- as they have wrong ideas about many other things, should also have
- wrong ideas about pleasure and pain and the intermediate state;
- so that when they are only being drawn towards the painful they
- feel pain and think the pain which they experience to be real,
- and in like manner, when drawn away from pain to the neutral
- or intermediate state, they firmly believe that they have reached
- the goal of satiety and pleasure; they, not knowing pleasure,
- err in contrasting pain with the absence of pain. which is like
- contrasting black with grey instead of white--can you wonder, I say,
- at this?
-
- No, indeed; I should be much more disposed to wonder at the opposite.
-
- Look at the matter thus:--Hunger, thirst, and the like, are inanitions
- of the bodily state?
-
- Yes.
-
- And ignorance and folly are inanitions of the soul?
-
- True.
-
- And food and wisdom are the corresponding satisfactions of either?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And is the satisfaction derived from that which has less or from
- that which has more existence the truer?
-
- Clearly, from that which has more.
-
- What classes of things have a greater share of pure existence in
- your judgment--those of which food and drink and condiments and all
- kinds of sustenance are examples, or the class which contains true
- opinion and knowledge and mind and all the different kinds of virtue?
- Put the question in this way:--Which has a more pure being--
- that which is concerned with the invariable, the immortal,
- and the true, and is of such a nature, and is found in such natures;
- or that which is concerned with and found in the variable and mortal,
- and is itself variable and mortal?
-
- Far purer, he replied, is the being of that which is concerned
- with the invariable.
-
- And does the essence of the invariable partake of knowledge
- in the same degree as of essence?
-
- Yes, of knowledge in the same degree.
-
- And of truth in the same degree?
-
- Yes.
-
- And, conversely, that which has less of truth will also have less
- of essence?
-
- Necessarily.
-
- Then, in general, those kinds of things which are in the service
- of the body have less of truth and essence than those which are
- in the service of the soul?
-
- Far less.
-
- And has not the body itself less of truth and essence than the soul?
-
- Yes.
-
- What is filled with more real existence, and actually has a more
- real existence, is more really filled than that which is filled
- with less real existence and is less real?
-
- Of course.
-
- And if there be a pleasure in being filled with that which is
- according to nature, that which is more really filled with more
- real being will more really and truly enjoy true pleasure;
- whereas that which participates in less real being will be less
- truly and surely satisfied, and will participate in an illusory
- and less real pleasure?
-
- Unquestionably.
-
- Those then who know not wisdom and virtue, and are always busy with
- gluttony and sensuality, go down and up again as far as the mean;
- and in this region they move at random throughout life, but they
- never pass into the true upper world; thither they neither look,
- nor do they ever find their way, neither are they truly filled
- with true being, nor do they taste of pure and abiding pleasure.
- Like cattle, with their eyes always looking down and their heads
- stooping to the earth, that is, to the dining-table, they fatten
- and feed and breed, and, in their excessive love of these delights,
- they kick and butt at one another with horns and hoofs which are made
- of iron; and they kill one another by reason of their insatiable lust.
- For they fill themselves with that which is not substantial,
- and the part of themselves which they fill is also unsubstantial
- and incontinent.
-
- Verily, Socrates, said Glaucon, you describe the life of the many
- like an oracle.
-
- Their pleasures are mixed with pains--how can they be otherwise?
- For they are mere shadows and pictures of the true, and are coloured
- by contrast, which exaggerates both light and shade, and so they
- implant in the minds of fools insane desires of themselves; and they
- are fought about as Stesichorus says that the Greeks fought about
- the shadow of Helen at Troy in ignorance of the truth.
-
- Something of that sort must inevitably happen.
-
- And must not the like happen with the spirited or passionate
- element of the soul? Will not the passionate man who carries his
- passion into action, be in the like case, whether he is envious
- and ambitious, or violent and contentious, or angry and discontented,
- if he be seeking to attain honour and victory and the satisfaction
- of his anger without reason or sense?
-
- Yes, he said, the same will happen with the spirited element also.
-
- Then may we not confidently assert that the lovers of money and honour,
- when they seek their pleasures under the guidance and in the company
- of reason and knowledge, and pursue after and win the pleasures which
- wisdom shows them, will also have the truest pleasures in the highest
- degree which is attainable to them, inasmuch as they follow truth;
- and they will have the pleasures which are natural to them,
- if that which is best for each one is also most natural to him?
-
- Yes, certainly; the best is the most natural.
-
- And when the whole soul follows the philosophical principle,
- and there is no division, the several parts are just, and do each
- of them their own business, and enjoy severally the best and truest
- pleasures of which they are capable?
-
- Exactly.
-
- But when either of the two other principles prevails, it fails
- in attaining its own pleasure, and compels the rest to pursue
- after a pleasure which is a shadow only and which is not their own?
-
- True.
-
- And the greater the interval which separates them from philosophy
- and reason, the more strange and illusive will be the pleasure?
-
- Yes.
-
- And is not that farthest from reason which is at the greatest
- distance from law and order?
-
- Clearly.
-
- And the lustful and tyrannical desires are, as we saw,
- at the greatest distance? Yes.
-
- And the royal and orderly desires are nearest?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then the tyrant will live at the greatest distance from true
- or natural pleasure, and the king at the least?
-
- Certainly.
-
- But if so, the tyrant will live most unpleasantly, and the king
- most pleasantly?
-
- Inevitably.
-
- Would you know the measure of the interval which separates them?
-
- Will you tell me?
-
- There appear to be three pleasures, one genuine and two spurious:
- now the transgression of the tyrant reaches a point beyond the spurious;
- he has run away from the region of law and reason, and taken up
- his abode with certain slave pleasures which are his satellites,
- and the measure of his inferiority can only be expressed in
- a figure.
-
- How do you mean?
-
- I assume, I said, that the tyrant is in the third place from the oligarch;
- the democrat was in the middle?
-
- Yes.
-
- And if there is truth in what has preceded, he will be wedded
- to an image of pleasure which is thrice removed as to truth
- from the pleasure of the oligarch?
-
- He will.
-
- And the oligarch is third from the royal; since we count as one
- royal and aristocratical?
-
- Yes, he is third.
-
- Then the tyrant is removed from true pleasure by the space
- of a number which is three times three?
-
- Manifestly.
-
- The shadow then of tyrannical pleasure determined by the number
- of length will be a plane figure.
-
- Certainly.
-
- And if you raise the power and make the plane a solid, there is no
- difficulty in seeing how vast is the interval by which the tyrant
- is parted from the king.
-
- Yes; the arithmetician will easily do the sum.
-
- Or if some person begins at the other end and measures the interval
- by which the king is parted from the tyrant in truth of pleasure,
- he will find him, when the multiplication is complete, living 729
- times more pleasantly, and the tyrant more painfully by this
- same interval.
-
- What a wonderful calculation! And how enormous is the distance
- which separates the just from the unjust in regard to pleasure
- and pain!
-
- Yet a true calculation, I said, and a number which nearly concerns
- human life, if human beings are concerned with days and nights
- and months and years.
-
- Yes, he said, human life is certainly concerned with them.
-
- Then if the good and just man be thus superior in pleasure
- to the evil and unjust, his superiority will be infinitely
- greater in propriety of life and in beauty and virtue?
-
- Immeasurably greater.
-
- Well, I said, and now having arrived at this stage of the argument,
- we may revert to the words which brought us hither: Was not some
- one saying that injustice was a gain to the perfectly unjust who was
- reputed to be just?
-
- Yes, that was said.
-
- Now then, having determined the power and quality of justice
- and injustice, let us have a little conversation with him.
-
- What shall we say to him?
-
- Let us make an image of the soul, that he may have his own words
- presented before his eyes.
-
- Of what sort?
-
- An ideal image of the soul, like the composite creations of
- ancient mythology, such as the Chimera or Scylla or Cerberus,
- and there are many others in which two or more different natures
- are said to grow into one.
-
- There are said of have been such unions.
-
- Then do you now model the form of a multitudinous, many-headed monster,
- having a ring of heads of all manner of beasts, tame and wild,
- which he is able to generate and metamorphose at will.
-
- You suppose marvellous powers in the artist; but, as language
- is more pliable than wax or any similar substance, let there
- be such a model as you propose.
-
- Suppose now that you make a second form as of a lion, and a third
- of a man, the second smaller than the first, and the third smaller
- than the second.
-
- That, he said, is an easier task; and I have made them as you say.
-
- And now join them, and let the three grow into one.
-
- That has been accomplished.
-
- Next fashion the outside of them into a single image, as of a man,
- so that he who is not able to look within, and sees only the outer hull,
- may believe the beast to be a single human creature. I have done so,
- he said.
-
- And now, to him who maintains that it is profitable for the human
- creature to be unjust, and unprofitable to be just, let us reply that,
- if he be right, it is profitable for this creature to feast the
- multitudinous monster and strengthen the lion and the lion-like qualities,
- but to starve and weaken the man, who is consequently liable to be
- dragged about at the mercy of either of the other two; and he is
- not to attempt to familiarize or harmonize them with one another--
- he ought rather to suffer them to fight and bite and devour one another.
-
- Certainly, he said; that is what the approver of injustice says.
-
- To him the supporter of justice makes answer that he should ever
- so speak and act as to give the man within him in some way or other
- the most complete mastery over the entire human creature.
-
- He should watch over the many-headed monster like a good husbandman,
- fostering and cultivating the gentle qualities, and preventing the wild
- ones from growing; he should be making the lion-heart his ally,
- and in common care of them all should be uniting the several parts
- with one another and with himself.
-
- Yes, he said, that is quite what the maintainer of justice say.
-
- And so from every point of view, whether of pleasure, honour,
- or advantage, the approver of justice is right and speaks the truth,
- and the disapprover is wrong and false and ignorant.
-
- Yes, from every point of view.
-
- Come, now, and let us gently reason with the unjust, who is not
- intentionally in error. `Sweet Sir,' we will say to him, what think
- you of things esteemed noble and ignoble? Is not the noble that
- which subjects the beast to the man, or rather to the god in man;
- and the ignoble that which subjects the man to the beast?'
- He can hardly avoid saying yes--can he now?
-
- Not if he has any regard for my opinion.
-
- But, if he agree so far, we may ask him to answer another question:
- `Then how would a man profit if he received gold and silver
- on the condition that he was to enslave the noblest part of him
- to the worst? Who can imagine that a man who sold his son
- or daughter into slavery for money, especially if he sold them
- into the hands of fierce and evil men, would be the gainer,
- however large might be the sum which he received? And will any
- one say that he is not a miserable caitiff who remorselessly sells
- his own divine being to that which is most godless and detestable?
- Eriphyle took the necklace as the price of her husband's life,
- but he is taking a bribe in order to compass a worse ruin.'
-
- Yes, said Glaucon, far worse--I will answer for him.
-
- Has not the intemperate been censured of old, because in him
- the huge multiform monster is allowed to be too much at large?
-
- Clearly.
-
- And men are blamed for pride and bad temper when the lion and serpent
- element in them disproportionately grows and gains strength?
-
- Yes.
-
- And luxury and softness are blamed, because they relax and weaken
- this same creature, and make a coward of him?
-
- Very true.
-
- And is not a man reproached for flattery and meanness who subordinates
- the spirited animal to the unruly monster, and, for the sake of money,
- of which he can never have enough, habituates him in the days
- of his youth to be trampled in the mire, and from being a lion
- to become a monkey?
-
- True, he said.
-
- And why are mean employments and manual arts a reproach Only
- because they imply a natural weakness of the higher principle;
- the individual is unable to control the creatures within him,
- but has to court them, and his great study is how to flatter them.
-
- Such appears to be the reason.
-
- And therefore, being desirous of placing him under a rule like that
- of the best, we say that he ought to be the servant of the best,
- in whom the Divine rules; not, as Thrasymachus supposed, to the
- injury of the servant, but because every one had better be ruled
- by divine wisdom dwelling within him; or, if this be impossible,
- then by an external authority, in order that we may be all,
- as far as possible, under the same government, friends and equals.
-
- True, he said.
-
- And this is clearly seen to be the intention of the law, which is
- the ally of the whole city; and is seen also in the authority
- which we exercise over children, and the refusal to let them
- be free until we have established in them a principle analogous
- to the constitution of a state, and by cultivation of this higher
- element have set up in their hearts a guardian and ruler like our own,
- and when this is done they may go their ways.
-
- Yes, he said, the purpose of the law is manifest.
-
- From what point of view, then, and on what ground can we say that
- a man is profited by injustice or intemperance or other baseness,
- which will make him a worse man, even though he acquire money
- or power by his wickedness?
-
- From no point of view at all.
-
- What shall he profit, if his injustice be undetected and unpunished?
- He who is undetected only gets worse, whereas he who is detected
- and punished has the brutal part of his nature silenced and humanized;
- the gentler element in him is liberated, and his whole soul is
- perfected and ennobled by the acquirement of justice and temperance
- and wisdom, more than the body ever is by receiving gifts of beauty,
- strength and health, in proportion as the soul is more honourable than
- the body.
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- To this nobler purpose the man of understanding will devote
- the energies of his life. And in the first place, he will honour
- studies which impress these qualities on his soul and disregard others?
-
- Clearly, he said.
-
- In the next place, he will regulate his bodily habit and training,
- and so far will he be from yielding to brutal and irrational pleasures,
- that he will regard even health as quite a secondary matter;
- his first object will be not that he may be fair or strong or well,
- unless he is likely thereby to gain temperance, but he will always
- desire so to attemper the body as to preserve the harmony of
- the soul?
-
- Certainly he will, if he has true music in him.
-
- And in the acquisition of wealth there is a principle of order
- and harmony which he will also observe; he will not allow himself
- to be dazzled by the foolish applause of the world, and heap up
- riches to his own infinite harm?
-
- Certainly not, he said.
-
- He will look at the city which is within him, and take heed that no
- disorder occur in it, such as might arise either from superfluity
- or from want; and upon this principle he will regulate his property
- and gain or spend according to his means.
-
- Very true.
-
- And, for the same reason, he will gladly accept and enjoy such
- honours as he deems likely to make him a better man; but those,
- whether private or public, which are likely to disorder his life,
- he will avoid?
-
- Then, if that is his motive, he will not be a statesman.
-
- By the dog of Egypt, he will! in the city which is his own he
- certainly will, though in the land of his birth perhaps not,
- unless he have a divine call.
-
- I understand; you mean that he will be a ruler in the city
- of which we are the founders, and which exists in idea only;
- for I do not believe that there is such an one anywhere on earth?
-
- In heaven, I replied, there is laid up a pattern of it, methinks, which he
- who desires may behold, and beholding, may set his own house in order.
- But whether such an one exists, or ever will exist in fact,
- is no matter; for he will live after the manner of that city,
- having nothing to do with any other.
-
- I think so, he said.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK X
-
-
- SOCRATES - GLAUCON
-
- OF THE many excellences which I perceive in the order of our State,
- there is none which upon reflection pleases me better than the rule
- about poetry.
-
- To what do you refer?
-
- To the rejection of imitative poetry, which certainly ought
- not to be received; as I see far more clearly now that the parts
- of the soul have been distinguished.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- Speaking in confidence, for I should not like to have my words
- repeated to the tragedians and the rest of the imitative tribe--
- but I do not mind saying to you, that all poetical imitations are
- ruinous to the understanding of the hearers, and that the knowledge
- of their true nature is the only antidote to them.
-
- Explain the purport of your remark.
-
- Well, I will tell you, although I have always from my earliest youth
- had an awe and love of Homer, which even now makes the words falter
- on my lips, for he is the great captain and teacher of the whole
- of that charming tragic company; but a man is not to be reverenced
- more than the truth, and therefore I will speak out.
-
- Very good, he said.
-
- Listen to me then, or rather, answer me.
-
- Put your question.
-
- Can you tell me what imitation is? for I really do not know.
-
- A likely thing, then, that I should know.
-
- Why not? for the duller eye may often see a thing sooner than
- the keener.
-
- Very true, he said; but in your presence, even if I had any faint notion,
- I could not muster courage to utter it. Will you enquire yourself?
-
- Well then, shall we begin the enquiry in our usual manner:
- Whenever a number of individuals have a common name, we assume them
- to have also a corresponding idea or form. Do you understand me?
-
- I do.
-
- Let us take any common instance; there are beds and tables in the world--
- plenty of them, are there not?
-
- Yes.
-
- But there are only two ideas or forms of them--one the idea of a bed,
- the other of a table.
-
- True.
-
- And the maker of either of them makes a bed or he makes a table for our use,
- in accordance with the idea--that is our way of speaking in this
- and similar instances--but no artificer makes the ideas themselves:
- how could he?
-
- Impossible.
-
- And there is another artist,--I should like to know what you would
- say of him.
-
- Who is he?
-
- One who is the maker of all the works of all other workmen.
-
- What an extraordinary man!
-
- Wait a little, and there will be more reason for your saying so.
- For this is he who is able to make not only vessels of every kind,
- but plants and animals, himself and all other things--the earth
- and heaven, and the things which are in heaven or under the earth;
- he makes the gods also.
-
- He must be a wizard and no mistake.
-
- Oh! you are incredulous, are you? Do you mean that there is no
- such maker or creator, or that in one sense there might be a maker
- of all these things but in another not? Do you see that there
- is a way in which you could make them all yourself?
-
- What way?
-
- An easy way enough; or rather, there are many ways in which the feat
- might be quickly and easily accomplished, none quicker than that of
- turning a mirror round and round--you would soon enough make the sun
- and the heavens, and the earth and yourself, and other animals and plants,
- and all the, other things of which we were just now speaking, in the mirror.
-
- Yes, he said; but they would be appearances only.
-
- Very good, I said, you are coming to the point now. And the painter
- too is, as I conceive, just such another--a creator of appearances,
- is he not?
-
- Of course.
-
- But then I suppose you will say that what he creates is untrue.
- And yet there is a sense in which the painter also creates a bed?
-
- Yes, he said, but not a real bed.
-
- And what of the maker of the bed? Were you not saying that he too makes,
- not the idea which, according to our view, is the essence of the bed,
- but only a particular bed?
-
- Yes, I did.
-
- Then if he does not make that which exists he cannot make true existence,
- but only some semblance of existence; and if any one were to say
- that the work of the maker of the bed, or of any other workman,
- has real existence, he could hardly be supposed to be speaking
- the truth.
-
- At any rate, he replied, philosophers would say that he was not
- speaking the truth.
-
- No wonder, then, that his work too is an indistinct expression
- of truth.
-
- No wonder.
-
- Suppose now that by the light of the examples just offered we
- enquire who this imitator is?
-
- If you please.
-
- Well then, here are three beds: one existing in nature, which is made
- by God, as I think that we may say--for no one else can be the maker?
-
- No.
-
- There is another which is the work of the carpenter?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the work of the painter is a third?
-
- Yes.
-
- Beds, then, are of three kinds, and there are three artists
- who superintend them: God, the maker of the bed, and the painter?
-
- Yes, there are three of them.
-
- God, whether from choice or from necessity, made one bed in nature
- and one only; two or more such ideal beds neither ever have been
- nor ever will be made by God.
-
- Why is that?
-
- Because even if He had made but two, a third would still appear
- behind them which both of them would have for their idea,
- and that would be the ideal bed and the two others.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- God knew this, and He desired to be the real maker of a real bed,
- not a particular maker of a particular bed, and therefore He created
- a bed which is essentially and by nature one only.
-
- So we believe.
-
- Shall we, then, speak of Him as the natural author or maker of the bed?
-
- Yes, he replied; inasmuch as by the natural process of creation He
- is the author of this and of all other things.
-
- And what shall we say of the carpenter--is not he also the maker
- of the bed?
-
- Yes.
-
- But would you call the painter a creator and maker?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Yet if he is not the maker, what is he in relation to the bed?
-
- I think, he said, that we may fairly designate him as the imitator
- of that which the others make.
-
- Good, I said; then you call him who is third in the descent from
- nature an imitator?
-
- Certainly, he said.
-
- And the tragic poet is an imitator, and therefore, like all
- other imitators, he is thrice removed from the king and from the truth?
-
- That appears to be so.
-
- Then about the imitator we are agreed. And what about the painter?--
- I would like to know whether he may be thought to imitate that which
- originally exists in nature, or only the creations of artists?
-
- The latter.
-
- As they are or as they appear? You have still to determine this.
-
- What do you mean?
-
- I mean, that you may look at a bed from different points of view,
- obliquely or directly or from any other point of view, and the bed
- will appear different, but there is no difference in reality.
- And the same of all things.
-
- Yes, he said, the difference is only apparent.
-
- Now let me ask you another question: Which is the art of painting
- designed to be--an imitation of things as they are, or as they appear--
- of appearance or of reality?
-
- Of appearance.
-
- Then the imitator, I said, is a long way off the truth, and can
- do all things because he lightly touches on a small part of them,
- and that part an image. For example: A painter will paint a cobbler,
- carpenter, or any other artist, though he knows nothing of their arts;
- and, if he is a good artist, he may deceive children or simple persons,
- when he shows them his picture of a carpenter from a distance,
- and they will fancy that they are looking at a real carpenter.
-
- Certainly.
-
- And whenever any one informs us that he has found a man knows
- all the arts, and all things else that anybody knows, and every
- single thing with a higher degree of accuracy than any other man--
- whoever tells us this, I think that we can only imagine to be a
- simple creature who is likely to have been deceived by some wizard
- or actor whom he met, and whom he thought all-knowing, because he
- himself was unable to analyse the nature of knowledge and ignorance
- and imitation.
-
- Most true.
-
- And so, when we hear persons saying that the tragedians, and Homer,
- who is at their head, know all the arts and all things human,
- virtue as well as vice, and divine things too, for that the good
- poet cannot compose well unless he knows his subject, and that he
- who has not this knowledge can never be a poet, we ought to
- consider whether here also there may not be a similar illusion.
- Perhaps they may have come across imitators and been deceived by them;
- they may not have remembered when they saw their works that these were
- but imitations thrice removed from the truth, and could easily be made
- without any knowledge of the truth, because they are appearances
- only and not realities? Or, after all, they may be in the right,
- and poets do really know the things about which they seem to the many
- to speak so well?
-
- The question, he said, should by all means be considered.
-
- Now do you suppose that if a person were able to make the original
- as well as the image, he would seriously devote himself to the
- image-making branch? Would he allow imitation to be the ruling
- principle of his life, as if he had nothing higher in him?
-
- I should say not.
-
- The real artist, who knew what he was imitating, would be interested
- in realities and not in imitations; and would desire to leave
- as memorials of himself works many and fair; and, instead of being
- the author of encomiums, he would prefer to be the theme of them.
-
- Yes, he said, that would be to him a source of much greater honour
- and profit.
-
- Then, I said, we must put a question to Homer; not about medicine,
- or any of the arts to which his poems only incidentally refer:
- we are not going to ask him, or any other poet, whether he has cured
- patients like Asclepius, or left behind him a school of medicine
- such as the Asclepiads were, or whether he only talks about medicine
- and other arts at second hand; but we have a right to know respecting
- military tactics, politics, education, which are the chiefest and
- noblest subjects of his poems, and we may fairly ask him about them.
- `Friend Homer,' then we say to him, `if you are only in the second
- remove from truth in what you say of virtue, and not in the third--
- not an image maker or imitator--and if you are able to discern
- what pursuits make men better or worse in private or public life,
- tell us what State was ever better governed by your help?
- The good order of Lacedaemon is due to Lycurgus, and many other
- cities great and small have been similarly benefited by others;
- but who says that you have been a good legislator to them and
- have done them any good? Italy and Sicily boast of Charondas,
- and there is Solon who is renowned among us; but what city
- has anything to say about you?' Is there any city which he
- might name?
-
- I think not, said Glaucon; not even the Homerids themselves pretend
- that he was a legislator.
-
- Well, but is there any war on record which was carried on successfully
- by him, or aided by his counsels, when he was alive?
-
- There is not.
-
- Or is there any invention of his, applicable to the arts or to
- human life, such as Thales the Milesian or Anacharsis the Scythian,
- and other ingenious men have conceived, which is attributed to him?
-
- There is absolutely nothing of the kind.
-
- But, if Homer never did any public service, was he privately
- a guide or teacher of any? Had he in his lifetime friends
- who loved to associate with him, and who handed down to posterity
- an Homeric way of life, such as was established by Pythagoras
- who was so greatly beloved for his wisdom, and whose followers
- are to this day quite celebrated for the order which was named after him?
-
- Nothing of the kind is recorded of him. For surely, Socrates, Creophylus,
- the companion of Homer, that child of flesh, whose name always makes us laugh,
- might be more justly ridiculed for his stupidity, if, as is said, Homer
- was greatly neglected by him and others in his own day when he was alive?
-
- Yes, I replied, that is the tradition. But can you imagine, Glaucon,
- that if Homer had really been able to educate and improve mankind--
- if he had possessed knowledge and not been a mere imitator--can you imagine,
- I say, that he would not have had many followers, and been honoured
- and loved by them? Protagoras of Abdera, and Prodicus of Ceos,
- and a host of others, have only to whisper to their contemporaries:
- `You will never be able to manage either your own house or your own
- State until you appoint us to be your ministers of education'--
- and this ingenious device of theirs has such an effect in making
- them love them that their companions all but carry them about on
- their shoulders. And is it conceivable that the contemporaries
- of Homer, or again of Hesiod, would have allowed either of them
- to go about as rhapsodists, if they had really been able to make
- mankind virtuous? Would they not have been as unwilling to part
- with them as with gold, and have compelled them to stay at home
- with them? Or, if the master would not stay, then the disciples
- would have followed him about everywhere, until they had got
- education enough?
-
- Yes, Socrates, that, I think, is quite true.
-
- Then must we not infer that all these poetical individuals,
- beginning with Homer, are only imitators; they copy images
- of virtue and the like, but the truth they never reach? The poet
- is like a painter who, as we have already observed, will make
- a likeness of a cobbler though he understands nothing of cobbling;
- and his picture is good enough for those who know no more than he does,
- and judge only by colours and figures.
-
- Quite so.
-
- In like manner the poet with his words and phrases may be said
- to lay on the colours of the several arts, himself understanding
- their nature only enough to imitate them; and other people,
- who are as ignorant as he is, and judge only from his words,
- imagine that if he speaks of cobbling, or of military tactics,
- or of anything else, in metre and harmony and rhythm, he speaks very well--
- such is the sweet influence which melody and rhythm by nature have.
- And I think that you must have observed again and again what a poor
- appearance the tales of poets make when stripped of the colours which
- music puts upon them, and recited in simple prose.
-
- Yes, he said.
-
- They are like faces which were never really beautiful, but only blooming;
- and now the bloom of youth has passed away from them?
-
- Exactly.
-
- Here is another point: The imitator or maker of the image
- knows nothing of true existence; he knows appearances only.
- Am I not right?
-
- Yes.
-
- Then let us have a clear understanding, and not be satisfied
- with half an explanation.
-
- Proceed.
-
- Of the painter we say that he will paint reins, and he will paint
- a bit?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the worker in leather and brass will make them?
-
- Certainly.
-
- But does the painter know the right form of the bit and reins?
- Nay, hardly even the workers in brass and leather who make them;
- only the horseman who knows how to use them--he knows their
- right form.
-
- Most true.
-
- And may we not say the same of all things?
-
- What?
-
- That there are three arts which are concerned with all things:
- one which uses, another which makes, a third which imitates them?
-
- Yes.
-
- And the excellence or beauty or truth of every structure,
- animate or inanimate, and of every action of man, is relative
- to the use for which nature or the artist has intended them.
-
- True.
-
- Then the user of them must have the greatest experience of them,
- and he must indicate to the maker the good or bad qualities which
- develop themselves in use; for example, the flute-player will tell
- the flute-maker which of his flutes is satisfactory to the performer;
- he will tell him how he ought to make them, and the other will attend
- to his instructions?
-
- Of course.
-
- The one knows and therefore speaks with authority about the goodness
- and badness of flutes, while the other, confiding in him,
- will do what he is told by him?
-
- True.
-
- The instrument is the same, but about the excellence or badness
- of it the maker will only attain to a correct belief; and this he
- will gain from him who knows, by talking to him and being compelled
- to hear what he has to say, whereas the user will have knowledge?
-
- True.
-
- But will the imitator have either? Will he know from use whether
- or no his drawing is correct or beautiful? Or will he have right
- opinion from being compelled to associate with another who knows
- and gives him instructions about what he should draw?
-
- Neither.
-
- Then he will no more have true opinion than he will have knowledge
- about the goodness or badness of his imitations?
-
- I suppose not.
-
- The imitative artist will be in a brilliant state of intelligence
- about his own creations?
-
- Nay, very much the reverse.
-
- And still he will go on imitating without knowing what makes
- a thing good or bad, and may be expected therefore to imitate
- only that which appears to be good to the ignorant multitude?
-
- Just so.
-
- Thus far then we are pretty well agreed that the imitator has no
- knowledge worth mentioning of what he imitates. Imitation is only
- a kind of play or sport, and the tragic poets, whether they write
- in iambic or in Heroic verse, are imitators in the highest degree?
-
- Very true.
-
- And now tell me, I conjure you, has not imitation been shown by us
- to be concerned with that which is thrice removed from the truth?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And what is the faculty in man to which imitation is addressed?
-
- What do you mean?
-
- I will explain: The body which is large when seen near,
- appears small when seen at a distance?
-
- True.
-
- And the same object appears straight when looked at out of the water,
- and crooked when in the water; and the concave becomes convex,
- owing to the illusion about colours to which the sight is liable.
- Thus every sort of confusion is revealed within us; and this is
- that weakness of the human mind on which the art of conjuring and of
- deceiving by light and shadow and other ingenious devices imposes,
- having an effect upon us like magic.
-
- True.
-
- And the arts of measuring and numbering and weighing come to
- the rescue of the human understanding-there is the beauty of them--
- and the apparent greater or less, or more or heavier, no longer
- have the mastery over us, but give way before calculation and measure
- and weight?
-
- Most true.
-
- And this, surely, must be the work of the calculating and rational
- principle in the soul
-
- To be sure.
-
- And when this principle measures and certifies that some things
- are equal, or that some are greater or less than others, there occurs
- an apparent contradiction?
-
- True.
-
- But were we not saying that such a contradiction is the same faculty
- cannot have contrary opinions at the same time about the same thing?
-
- Very true.
-
- Then that part of the soul which has an opinion contrary to measure
- is not the same with that which has an opinion in accordance
- with measure?
-
- True.
-
- And the better part of the soul is likely to be that which trusts
- to measure and calculation?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And that which is opposed to them is one of the inferior principles
- of the soul?
-
- No doubt.
-
- This was the conclusion at which I was seeking to arrive when I
- said that painting or drawing, and imitation in general, when doing
- their own proper work, are far removed from truth, and the companions
- and friends and associates of a principle within us which is equally
- removed from reason, and that they have no true or healthy aim.
-
- Exactly.
-
- The imitative art is an inferior who marries an inferior, and has
- inferior offspring.
-
- Very true.
-
- And is this confined to the sight only, or does it extend
- to the hearing also, relating in fact to what we term poetry?
-
- Probably the same would be true of poetry.
-
- Do not rely, I said, on a probability derived from the analogy
- of painting; but let us examine further and see whether the faculty
- with which poetical imitation is concerned is good or bad.
-
- By all means.
-
- We may state the question thus:--Imitation imitates the actions of men,
- whether voluntary or involuntary, on which, as they imagine, a good
- or bad result has ensued, and they rejoice or sorrow accordingly.
- Is there anything more?
-
- No, there is nothing else.
-
- But in all this variety of circumstances is the man at unity
- with himself--or rather, as in the instance of sight there was
- confusion and opposition in his opinions about the same things,
- so here also is there not strife and inconsistency in his life?
- Though I need hardly raise the question again, for I remember that all
- this has been already admitted; and the soul has been acknowledged
- by us to be full of these and ten thousand similar oppositions
- occurring at the same moment?
-
- And we were right, he said.
-
- Yes, I said, thus far we were right; but there was an omission
- which must now be supplied.
-
- What was the omission?
-
- Were we not saying that a good man, who has the misfortune to lose
- his son or anything else which is most dear to him, will bear
- the loss with more equanimity than another?
-
- Yes.
-
- But will he have no sorrow, or shall we say that although he cannot
- help sorrowing, he will moderate his sorrow?
-
- The latter, he said, is the truer statement.
-
- Tell me: will he be more likely to struggle and hold out against
- his sorrow when he is seen by his equals, or when he is alone?
-
- It will make a great difference whether he is seen or not.
-
- When he is by himself he will not mind saying or doing many things
- which he would be ashamed of any one hearing or seeing him do?
-
- True.
-
- There is a principle of law and reason in him which bids him resist,
- as well as a feeling of his misfortune which is forcing him to indulge
- his sorrow?
-
- True.
-
- But when a man is drawn in two opposite directions, to and
- from the same object, this, as we affirm, necessarily implies
- two distinct principles in him?
-
- Certainly.
-
- One of them is ready to follow the guidance of the law?
-
- How do you mean?
-
- The law would say that to be patient under suffering is best,
- and that we should not give way to impatience, as there is no
- knowing whether such things are good or evil; and nothing is gained
- by impatience; also, because no human thing is of serious importance,
- and grief stands in the way of that which at the moment is most required.
-
- What is most required? he asked.
-
- That we should take counsel about what has happened, and when
- the dice have been thrown order our affairs in the way which reason
- deems best; not, like children who have had a fall, keeping hold
- of the part struck and wasting time in setting up a howl, but always
- accustoming the soul forthwith to apply a remedy, raising up that
- which is sickly and fallen, banishing the cry of sorrow by the healing art.
-
- Yes, he said, that is the true way of meeting the attacks of fortune.
-
- Yes, I said; and the higher principle is ready to follow this
- suggestion of reason?
-
- Clearly.
-
- And the other principle, which inclines us to recollection of our
- troubles and to lamentation, and can never have enough of them,
- we may call irrational, useless, and cowardly?
-
- Indeed, we may.
-
- And does not the latter--I mean the rebellious principle--
- furnish a great variety of materials for imitation? Whereas the wise
- and calm temperament, being always nearly equable, is not easy
- to imitate or to appreciate when imitated, especially at a public
- festival when a promiscuous crowd is assembled in a theatre.
- For the feeling represented is one to which they are strangers.
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then the imitative poet who aims at being popular is not by nature made,
- nor is his art intended, to please or to affect the principle
- in the soul; but he will prefer the passionate and fitful temper,
- which is easily imitated?
-
- Clearly.
-
- And now we may fairly take him and place him by the side of the painter,
- for he is like him in two ways: first, inasmuch as his creations
- have an inferior degree of truth--in this, I say, he is like him;
- and he is also like him in being concerned with an inferior
- part of the soul; and therefore we shall be right in refusing
- to admit him into a well-ordered State, because he awakens and
- nourishes and strengthens the feelings and impairs the reason.
- As in a city when the evil are permitted to have authority
- and the good are put out of the way, so in the soul of man,
- as we maintain, the imitative poet implants an evil constitution,
- for he indulges the irrational nature which has no discernment
- of greater and less, but thinks the same thing at one time great
- and at another small-he is a manufacturer of images and is very far
- removed from the truth.
-
- Exactly.
-
- But we have not yet brought forward the heaviest count in our accusation:--
- the power which poetry has of harming even the good (and there
- are very few who are not harmed), is surely an awful thing?
-
- Yes, certainly, if the effect is what you say.
-
- Hear and judge: The best of us, as I conceive, when we listen
- to a passage of Homer, or one of the tragedians, in which he
- represents some pitiful hero who is drawling out his sorrows in a
- long oration, or weeping, and smiting his breast--the best of us,
- you know, delight in giving way to sympathy, and are in raptures
- at the excellence of the poet who stirs our feelings most.
-
- Yes, of course I know.
-
- But when any sorrow of our own happens to us, then you may observe
- that we pride ourselves on the opposite quality--we would fain be quiet
- and patient; this is the manly part, and the other which delighted
- us in the recitation is now deemed to be the part of a woman.
-
- Very true, he said.
-
- Now can we be right in praising and admiring another who is doing
- that which any one of us would abominate and be ashamed of in his
- own person?
-
- No, he said, that is certainly not reasonable.
-
- Nay, I said, quite reasonable from one point of view.
-
- What point of view?
-
- If you consider, I said, that when in misfortune we feel a natural
- hunger and desire to relieve our sorrow by weeping and lamentation,
- and that this feeling which is kept under control in our own
- calamities is satisfied and delighted by the poets;-the better
- nature in each of us, not having been sufficiently trained
- by reason or habit, allows the sympathetic element to break
- loose because the sorrow is another's; and the spectator fancies
- that there can be no disgrace to himself in praising and pitying
- any one who comes telling him what a good man he is, and making
- a fuss about his troubles; he thinks that the pleasure is a gain,
- and why should he be supercilious and lose this and the poem too?
- Few persons ever reflect, as I should imagine, that from the evil
- of other men something of evil is communicated to themselves.
- And so the feeling of sorrow which has gathered strength at the sight
- of the misfortunes of others is with difficulty repressed in
- our own.
-
- How very true!
-
- And does not the same hold also of the ridiculous? There are jests
- which you would be ashamed to make yourself, and yet on the comic stage,
- or indeed in private, when you hear them, you are greatly amused
- by them, and are not at all disgusted at their unseemliness;--
- the case of pity is repeated;--there is a principle in human nature
- which is disposed to raise a laugh, and this which you once restrained
- by reason, because you were afraid of being thought a buffoon,
- is now let out again; and having stimulated the risible faculty
- at the theatre, you are betrayed unconsciously to yourself into
- playing the comic poet at home.
-
- Quite true, he said.
-
- And the same may be said of lust and anger and all the other affections,
- of desire and pain and pleasure, which are held to be inseparable
- from every action--in all of them poetry feeds and waters the passions
- instead of drying them up; she lets them rule, although they ought
- to be controlled, if mankind are ever to increase in happiness and virtue.
-
- I cannot deny it.
-
- Therefore, Glaucon, I said, whenever you meet with any of the eulogists
- of Homer declaring that he has been the educator of Hellas, and that he
- is profitable for education and for the ordering of human things,
- and that you should take him up again and again and get to know him
- and regulate your whole life according to him, we may love and honour
- those who say these things--they are excellent people, as far as
- their lights extend; and we are ready to acknowledge that Homer is
- the greatest of poets and first of tragedy writers; but we must remain
- firm in our conviction that hymns to the gods and praises of famous
- men are the only poetry which ought to be admitted into our State.
- For if you go beyond this and allow the honeyed muse to enter,
- either in epic or lyric verse, not law and the reason of mankind,
- which by common consent have ever been deemed best, but pleasure
- and pain will be the rulers in our State.
-
- That is most true, he said.
-
- And now since we have reverted to the subject of poetry, let this
- our defence serve to show the reasonableness of our former judgment
- in sending away out of our State an art having the tendencies
- which we have described; for reason constrained us. But that she
- may impute to us any harshness or want of politeness, let us tell
- her that there is an ancient quarrel between philosophy and poetry;
- of which there are many proofs, such as the saying of `the yelping
- hound howling at her lord,' or of one `mighty in the vain talk
- of fools,' and `the mob of sages circumventing Zeus,' and the `subtle
- thinkers who are beggars after all'; and there are innumerable
- other signs of ancient enmity between them. Notwithstanding this,
- let us assure our sweet friend and the sister arts of imitation
- that if she will only prove her title to exist in a well-ordered
- State we shall be delighted to receive her--we are very conscious
- of her charms; but we may not on that account betray the truth.
- I dare say, Glaucon, that you are as much charmed by her as I am,
- especially when she appears in Homer?
-
- Yes, indeed, I am greatly charmed.
-
- Shall I propose, then, that she be allowed to return from exile,
- but upon this condition only--that she make a defence of herself
- in lyrical or some other metre?
-
- Certainly.
-
- And we may further grant to those of her defenders who are lovers of poetry
- and yet not poets the permission to speak in prose on her behalf:
- let them show not only that she is pleasant but also useful to
- States and to human life, and we will listen in a kindly spirit;
- for if this can be proved we shall surely be the gainers--I mean,
- if there is a use in poetry as well as a delight?
-
- Certainly, he said, we shall the gainers.
-
- If her defence fails, then, my dear friend, like other persons
- who are enamoured of something, but put a restraint upon themselves
- when they think their desires are opposed to their interests,
- so too must we after the manner of lovers give her up,
- though not without a struggle. We too are inspired by that love
- of poetry which the education of noble States has implanted in us,
- and therefore we would have her appear at her best and truest;
- but so long as she is unable to make good her defence,
- this argument of ours shall be a charm to us, which we will repeat
- to ourselves while we listen to her strains; that we may not fall
- away into the childish love of her which captivates the many.
- At all events we are well aware that poetry being such as we have
- described is not to be regarded seriously as attaining to the truth;
- and he who listens to her, fearing for the safety of the city which is
- within him, should be on his guard against her seductions and make
- our words his law.
-
- Yes, he said, I quite agree with you.
-
- Yes, I said, my dear Glaucon, for great is the issue at stake,
- greater than appears, whether a man is to be good or bad.
- And what will any one be profited if under the influence of honour
- or money or power, aye, or under the excitement of poetry, he neglect
- justice and virtue?
-
- Yes, he said; I have been convinced by the argument, as I believe
- that any one else would have been.
-
- And yet no mention has been made of the greatest prizes and rewards
- which await virtue.
-
- What, are there any greater still? If there are, they must
- be of an inconceivable greatness.
-
- Why, I said, what was ever great in a short time? The whole
- period of threescore years and ten is surely but a little thing
- in comparison with eternity?
-
- Say rather `nothing,' he replied.
-
- And should an immortal being seriously think of this little space
- rather than of the whole?
-
- Of the whole, certainly. But why do you ask?
-
- Are you not aware, I said, that the soul of man is immortal
- and imperishable?
-
- He looked at me in astonishment, and said: No, by heaven:
- And are you really prepared to maintain this?
-
- Yes, I said, I ought to be, and you too--there is no difficulty
- in proving it.
-
- I see a great difficulty; but I should like to hear you state this
- argument of which you make so light.
-
- Listen then.
-
- I am attending.
-
- There is a thing which you call good and another which you call evil?
-
- Yes, he replied.
-
- Would you agree with me in thinking that the corrupting and destroying
- element is the evil, and the saving and improving element the good?
-
- Yes.
-
- And you admit that every thing has a good and also an evil;
- as ophthalmia is the evil of the eyes and disease of the whole body;
- as mildew is of corn, and rot of timber, or rust of copper and iron:
- in everything, or in almost everything, there is an inherent evil
- and disease?
-
- Yes, he said.
-
- And anything which is infected by any of these evils is made evil,
- and at last wholly dissolves and dies?
-
- True.
-
- The vice and evil which is inherent in each is the destruction of each;
- and if this does not destroy them there is nothing else that will;
- for good certainly will not destroy them, nor again, that which is
- neither good nor evil.
-
- Certainly not.
-
- If, then, we find any nature which having this inherent corruption
- cannot be dissolved or destroyed, we may be certain that of such
- a nature there is no destruction?
-
- That may be assumed.
-
- Well, I said, and is there no evil which corrupts the soul?
-
- Yes, he said, there are all the evils which we were just now passing
- in review: unrighteousness, intemperance, cowardice, ignorance.
-
- But does any of these dissolve or destroy her?--and here do not let
- us fall into the error of supposing that the unjust and foolish man,
- when he is detected, perishes through his own injustice,
- which is an evil of the soul. Take the analogy of the body:
- The evil of the body is a disease which wastes and reduces and
- annihilates the body; and all the things of which we were just
- now speaking come to annihilation through their own corruption
- attaching to them and inhering in them and so destroying them.
- Is not this true?
-
- Yes.
-
- Consider the soul in like manner. Does the injustice or other evil
- which exists in the soul waste and consume her? Do they by attaching
- to the soul and inhering in her at last bring her to death,
- and so separate her from the body ?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- And yet, I said, it is unreasonable to suppose that anything can
- perish from without through affection of external evil which could
- not be destroyed from within by a corruption of its own?
-
- It is, he replied.
-
- Consider, I said, Glaucon, that even the badness of food,
- whether staleness, decomposition, or any other bad quality,
- when confined to the actual food, is not supposed to destroy the body;
- although, if the badness of food communicates corruption to the body,
- then we should say that the body has been destroyed by a corruption
- of itself, which is disease, brought on by this; but that the body,
- being one thing, can be destroyed by the badness of food,
- which is another, and which does not engender any natural infection--
- this we shall absolutely deny?
-
- Very true.
-
- And, on the same principle, unless some bodily evil can produce an evil
- of the soul, we must not suppose that the soul, which is one thing,
- can be dissolved by any merely external evil which belongs to another?
-
- Yes, he said, there is reason in that.
-
- Either then, let us refute this conclusion, or, while it
- remains unrefuted, let us never say that fever, or any other disease,
- or the knife put to the throat, or even the cutting up of
- the whole body into the minutest pieces, can destroy the soul,
- until she herself is proved to become more unholy or unrighteous
- in consequence of these things being done to the body; but that
- the soul, or anything else if not destroyed by an internal evil,
- can be destroyed by an external one, is not to. be affirmed by any man.
-
- And surely, he replied, no one will ever prove that the souls
- of men become more unjust in consequence of death.
-
- But if some one who would rather not admit the immortality of the soul
- boldly denies this, and says that the dying do really become more
- evil and unrighteous, then, if the speaker is right, I suppose
- that injustice, like disease, must be assumed to be fatal to the unjust,
- and that those who take this disorder die by the natural inherent
- power of destruction which evil has, and which kills them sooner
- or later, but in quite another way from that in which, at present,
- the wicked receive death at the hands of others as the penalty
- of their deeds?
-
- Nay, he said, in that case injustice, if fatal to the unjust,
- will not be so very terrible to him, for he will be delivered
- from evil. But I rather suspect the opposite to be the truth,
- and that injustice which, if it have the power, will murder others,
- keeps the murderer alive--aye, and well awake too; so far removed is
- her dwelling-place from being a house of death.
-
- True, I said; if the inherent natural vice or evil of the soul is
- unable to kill or destroy her, hardly will that which is appointed
- to be the destruction of some other body, destroy a soul or anything
- else except that of which it was appointed to be the destruction.
-
- Yes, that can hardly be.
-
- But the soul which cannot be destroyed by an evil, whether inherent
- or external, must exist for ever, and if existing for ever,
- must be immortal?
-
- Certainly.
-
- That is the conclusion, I said; and, if a true conclusion,
- then the souls must always be the same, for if none be destroyed
- they will not diminish in number. Neither will they increase,
- for the increase of the immortal natures must come from something mortal,
- and all things would thus end in immortality.
-
- Very true.
-
- But this we cannot believe--reason will not allow us--
- any more than we can believe the soul, in her truest nature,
- to be full of variety and difference and dissimilarity.
-
- What do you mean? he said.
-
- The soul, I said, being, as is now proven, immortal, must be
- the fairest of compositions and cannot be compounded of many elements?
-
- Certainly not.
-
- Her immortality is demonstrated by the previous argument, and there
- are many other proofs; but to see her as she really is, not as we
- now behold her, marred by communion with the body and other miseries,
- you must contemplate her with the eye of reason, in her original purity;
- and then her beauty will be revealed, and justice and injustice and all
- the things which we have described will be manifested more clearly.
- Thus far, we have spoken the truth concerning her as she appears
- at present, but we must remember also that we have seen her only
- in a condition which may be compared to that of the sea-god Glaucus,
- whose original image can hardly be discerned because his natural
- members are broken off and crushed and damaged by the waves in all
- sorts of ways, and incrustations have grown over them of seaweed
- and shells and stones, so that he is more like some monster
- than he is to his own natural form. And the soul which we behold
- is in a similar condition, disfigured by ten thousand ills.
- But not there, Glaucon, not there must we look.
-
- Where then?
-
- At her love of wisdom. Let us see whom she affects, and what
- society and converse she seeks in virtue of her near kindred
- with the immortal and eternal and divine; also how different
- she would become if wholly following this superior principle,
- and borne by a divine impulse out of the ocean in which she now is,
- and disengaged from the stones and shells and things of earth
- and rock which in wild variety spring up around her because she
- feeds upon earth, and is overgrown by the good things of this life
- as they are termed: then you would see her as she is, and know
- whether she has one shape only or many, or what her nature is.
- Of her affections and of the forms which she takes in this present
- life I think that we have now said enough.
-
- True, he replied.
-
- And thus, I said, we have fulfilled the conditions of the argument;
- we have not introduced the rewards and glories of justice, which, as you
- were saying, are to be found in Homer and Hesiod; but justice in her
- own nature has been shown to be best for the soul in her own nature.
- Let a man do what is just, whether he have the ring of Gyges or not,
- and even if in addition to the ring of Gyges he put on the helmet
- of Hades.
-
- Very true.
-
- And now, Glaucon, there will be no harm in further enumerating how many
- and how great are the rewards which justice and the other virtues
- procure to the soul from gods and men, both in life and after death.
-
- Certainly not, he said.
-
- Will you repay me, then, what you borrowed in the argument?
-
- What did I borrow?
-
- The assumption that the just man should appear unjust and the
- unjust just: for you were of opinion that even if the true state
- of the case could not possibly escape the eyes of gods and men,
- still this admission ought to be made for the sake of the argument,
- in order that pure justice might be weighed against pure injustice.
- Do you remember?
-
- I should be much to blame if I had forgotten.
-
- Then, as the cause is decided, I demand on behalf of justice that
- the estimation in which she is held by gods and men and which we
- acknowledge to be her due should now be restored to her by us;
- since she has been shown to confer reality, and not to deceive those
- who truly possess her, let what has been taken from her be given back,
- that so she may win that palm of appearance which is hers also,
- and which she gives to her own.
-
- The demand, he said, is just.
-
- In the first place, I said--and this is the first thing which you
- will have to give back--the nature both of the just and unjust
- is truly known to the gods.
-
- Granted.
-
- And if they are both known to them, one must be the friend and
- the other the enemy of the gods, as we admitted from the beginning?
-
- True.
-
- And the friend of the gods may be supposed to receive from them all
- things at their best, excepting only such evil as is the necessary
- consequence of former sins?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Then this must be our notion of the just man, that even when he is
- in poverty or sickness, or any other seeming misfortune, all things
- will in the end work together for good to him in life and death:
- for the gods have a care of any one whose desire is to become just
- and to be like God, as far as man can attain the divine likeness,
- by the pursuit of virtue?
-
- Yes, he said; if he is like God he will surely not be neglected
- by him.
-
- And of the unjust may not the opposite be supposed?
-
- Certainly.
-
- Such, then, are the palms of victory which the gods give the just?
-
- That is my conviction.
-
- And what do they receive of men? Look at things as they really are,
- and you will see that the clever unjust are in the case of runners,
- who run well from the starting-place to the goal but not back again
- from the goal: they go off at a great pace, but in the end only
- look foolish, slinking away with their ears draggling on their shoulders,
- and without a crown; but the true runner comes to the finish and
- receives the prize and is crowned. And this is the way with the just;
- he who endures to the end of every action and occasion of his entire
- life has a good report and carries off the prize which men have
- to bestow.
-
- True.
-
- And now you must allow me to repeat of the just the blessings which
- you were attributing to the fortunate unjust. I shall say of them,
- what you were saying of the others, that as they grow older,
- they become rulers in their own city if they care to be; they marry
- whom they like and give in marriage to whom they will; all that you
- said of the others I now say of these. And, on the other hand,
- of the unjust I say that the greater number, even though they escape
- in their youth, are found out at last and look foolish at the end
- of their course, and when they come to be old and miserable are
- flouted alike by stranger and citizen; they are beaten and then
- come those things unfit for ears polite, as you truly term them;
- they will be racked and have their eyes burned out, as you were saying.
- And you may suppose that I have repeated the remainder of your tale
- of horrors. But will you let me assume, without reciting them,
- that these things are true?
-
- Certainly, he said, what you say is true.
-
- These, then, are the prizes and rewards and gifts which are bestowed
- upon the just by gods and men in this present life, in addition
- to the other good things which justice of herself provides.
-
- Yes, he said; and they are fair and lasting.
-
- And yet, I said, all these are as nothing, either in number or
- greatness in comparison with those other recompenses which await
- both just and unjust after death. And you ought to hear them,
- and then both just and unjust will have received from us a full
- payment of the debt which the argument owes to them.
-
- Speak, he said; there are few things which I would more gladly hear.
-
- SOCRATES
-
- Well, I said, I will tell you a tale; not one of the tales
- which Odysseus tells to the hero Alcinous, yet this too is a tale
- of a hero, Er the son of Armenius, a Pamphylian by birth.
- He was slain in battle, and ten days afterwards, when the bodies
- of the dead were taken up already in a state of corruption, his body
- was found unaffected by decay, and carried away home to be buried.
- And on the twelfth day, as he was lying on the funeral pile,
- he returned to life and told them what he had seen in the other world.
- He said that when his soul left the body he went on a journey
- with a great company, and that they came to a mysterious place at
- which there were two openings in the earth; they were near together,
- and over against them were two other openings in the heaven above.
- In the intermediate space there were judges seated, who commanded
- the just, after they had given judgment on them and had bound
- their sentences in front of them, to ascend by the heavenly way
- on the right hand; and in like manner the unjust were bidden
- by them to descend by the lower way on the left hand; these also
- bore the symbols of their deeds, but fastened on their backs.
- He drew near, and they told him that he was to be the messenger
- who would carry the report of the other world to men, and they bade
- him hear and see all that was to be heard and seen in that place.
- Then he beheld and saw on one side the souls departing at either
- opening of heaven and earth when sentence had been given on them;
- and at the two other openings other souls, some ascending
- out of the earth dusty and worn with travel, some descending
- out of heaven clean and bright. And arriving ever and anon they
- seemed to have come from a long journey, and they went forth with
- gladness into the meadow, where they encamped as at a festival;
- and those who knew one another embraced and conversed, the souls
- which came from earth curiously enquiring about the things above,
- and the souls which came from heaven about the things beneath.
- And they told one another of what had happened by the way,
- those from below weeping and sorrowing at the remembrance of the things
- which they had endured and seen in their journey beneath the earth
- (now the journey lasted a thousand years), while those from above
- were describing heavenly delights and visions of inconceivable beauty.
- The Story, Glaucon, would take too long to tell; but the sum was this:--
- He said that for every wrong which they had done to any one they
- suffered tenfold; or once in a hundred years--such being reckoned
- to be the length of man's life, and the penalty being thus paid ten
- times in a thousand years. If, for example, there were any who had been
- the cause of many deaths, or had betrayed or enslaved cities or armies,
- or been guilty of any other evil behaviour, for each and all of their
- offences they received punishment ten times over, and the rewards
- of beneficence and justice and holiness were in the same proportion.
- I need hardly repeat what he said concerning young children dying
- almost as soon as they were born. Of piety and impiety to gods
- and parents, and of murderers, there were retributions other and
- greater far which he described. He mentioned that he was present
- when one of the spirits asked another, `Where is Ardiaeus the Great?'
- (Now this Ardiaeus lived a thousand years before the time of Er:
- he had been the tyrant of some city of Pamphylia, and had murdered
- his aged father and his elder brother, and was said to have committed
- many other abominable crimes.) The answer of the other spirit was:
- `He comes not hither and will never come. And this,' said he,
- `was one of the dreadful sights which we ourselves witnessed.
- We were at the mouth of the cavern, and, having completed all
- our experiences, were about to reascend, when of a sudden Ardiaeus
- appeared and several others, most of whom were tyrants; and there
- were also besides the tyrants private individuals who had been
- great criminals: they were just, as they fancied, about to return
- into the upper world, but the mouth, instead of admitting them,
- gave a roar, whenever any of these incurable sinners or some one
- who had not been sufficiently punished tried to ascend; and then
- wild men of fiery aspect, who were standing by and heard the sound,
- seized and carried them off; and Ardiaeus and others they bound head
- and foot and hand, and threw them down and flayed them with scourges,
- and dragged them along the road at the side, carding them on thorns
- like wool, and declaring to the passers-by what were their crimes,
- and that they were being taken away to be cast into hell.'
- And of all the many terrors which they had endured, he said that there
- was none like the terror which each of them felt at that moment,
- lest they should hear the voice; and when there was silence,
- one by one they ascended with exceeding joy. These, said Er,
- were the penalties and retributions, and there were blessings as
- great.
-
- Now when the spirits which were in the meadow had tarried seven days,
- on the eighth they were obliged to proceed on their journey, and,
- on the fourth day after, he said that they came to a place where
- they could see from above a line of light, straight as a column,
- extending right through the whole heaven and through the earth,
- in colour resembling the rainbow, only brighter and purer;
- another day's journey brought them to the place, and there,
- in the midst of the light, they saw the ends of the chains of heaven
- let down from above: for this light is the belt of heaven,
- and holds together the circle of the universe, like the under-girders
- of a trireme. From these ends is extended the spindle of Necessity,
- on which all the revolutions turn. The shaft and hook of this
- spindle are made of steel, and the whorl is made partly of steel
- and also partly of other materials. Now the whorl is in form
- like the whorl used on earth; and the description of it implied
- that there is one large hollow whorl which is quite scooped out,
- and into this is fitted another lesser one, and another, and another,
- and four others, making eight in all, like vessels which fit
- into one another; the whorls show their edges on the upper side,
- and on their lower side all together form one continuous whorl.
- This is pierced by the spindle, which is driven home through the centre
- of the eighth. The first and outermost whorl has the rim broadest,
- and the seven inner whorls are narrower, in the following proportions--
- the sixth is next to the first in size, the fourth next to the sixth;
- then comes the eighth; the seventh is fifth, the fifth is sixth,
- the third is seventh, last and eighth comes the second.
- The largest (of fixed stars) is spangled, and the seventh (or sun)
- is brightest; the eighth (or moon) coloured by the reflected
- light of the seventh; the second and fifth (Saturn and Mercury)
- are in colour like one another, and yellower than the preceding;
- the third (Venus) has the whitest light; the fourth (Mars) is reddish;
- the sixth (Jupiter) is in whiteness second. Now the whole spindle
- has the same motion; but, as the whole revolves in one direction,
- the seven inner circles move slowly in the other, and of these
- the swiftest is the eighth; next in swiftness are the seventh,
- sixth, and fifth, which move together; third in swiftness appeared
- to move according to the law of this reversed motion the fourth;
- the third appeared fourth and the second fifth. The spindle turns
- on the knees of Necessity; and on the upper surface of each circle
- is a siren, who goes round with them, hymning a single tone or note.
- The eight together form one harmony; and round about, at equal intervals,
- there is another band, three in number, each sitting upon her throne:
- these are the Fates, daughters of Necessity, who are clothed in white
- robes and have chaplets upon their heads, Lachesis and Clotho
- and Atropos, who accompany with their voices the harmony of the sirens--
- Lachesis singing of the past, Clotho of the present, Atropos of the future;
- Clotho from time to time assisting with a touch of her right hand
- the revolution of the outer circle of the whorl or spindle, and Atropos
- with her left hand touching and guiding the inner ones, and Lachesis
- laying hold of either in turn, first with one hand and then with the
- other.
-
- When Er and the spirits arrived, their duty was to go at once to Lachesis;
- but first of all there came a prophet who arranged them in order;
- then he took from the knees of Lachesis lots and samples
- of lives, and having mounted a high pulpit, spoke as follows:
- `Hear the word of Lachesis, the daughter of Necessity.
- Mortal souls, behold a new cycle of life and mortality.
- Your genius will not be allotted to you, but you choose your genius;
- and let him who draws the first lot have the first choice,
- and the life which he chooses shall be his destiny. Virtue is free,
- and as a man honours or dishonours her he will have more or less
- of her; the responsibility is with the chooser--God is justified.'
- When the Interpreter had thus spoken he scattered lots indifferently
- among them all, and each of them took up the lot which fell near him,
- all but Er himself (he was not allowed), and each as he took his lot
- perceived the number which he had obtained. Then the Interpreter
- placed on the ground before them the samples of lives; and there were
- many more lives than the souls present, and they were of all sorts.
- There were lives of every animal and of man in every condition.
- And there were tyrannies among them, some lasting out the tyrant's life,
- others which broke off in the middle and came to an end in poverty
- and exile and beggary; and there were lives of famous men,
- some who were famous for their form and beauty as well as for
- their strength and success in games, or, again, for their birth
- and the qualities of their ancestors; and some who were the reverse
- of famous for the opposite qualities. And of women likewise;
- there was not, however, any definite character them, because the soul,
- when choosing a new life, must of necessity become different.
- But there was every other quality, and the all mingled with one another,
- and also with elements of wealth and poverty, and disease and health;
- and there were mean states also. And here, my dear Glaucon,
- is the supreme peril of our human state; and therefore the utmost
- care should be taken. Let each one of us leave every other kind
- of knowledge and seek and follow one thing only, if peradventure
- he may be able to learn and may find some one who will make him
- able to learn and discern between good and evil, and so to choose
- always and everywhere the better life as he has opportunity.
- He should consider the bearing of all these things which have been
- mentioned severally and collectively upon virtue; he should know
- what the effect of beauty is when combined with poverty or wealth
- in a particular soul, and what are the good and evil consequences
- of noble and humble birth, of private and public station, of strength
- and weakness, of cleverness and dullness, and of all the soul,
- and the operation of them when conjoined; he will then look at the nature
- of the soul, and from the consideration of all these qualities he
- will be able to determine which is the better and which is the worse;
- and so he will choose, giving the name of evil to the life which will
- make his soul more unjust, and good to the life which will make
- his soul more just; all else he will disregard. For we have seen
- and know that this is the best choice both in life and after death.
- A man must take with him into the world below an adamantine faith
- in truth and right, that there too he may be undazzled by the desire
- of wealth or the other allurements of evil, lest, coming upon tyrannies
- and similar villainies, he do irremediable wrongs to others and suffer
- yet worse himself; but let him know how to choose the mean and avoid
- the extremes on either side, as far as possible, not only in this
- life but in all that which is to come. For this is the way of
- happiness.
-
- And according to the report of the messenger from the other world this
- was what the prophet said at the time: `Even for the last comer,
- if he chooses wisely and will live diligently, there is appointed
- a happy and not undesirable existence. Let not him who chooses first
- be careless, and let not the last despair.' And when he had spoken,
- he who had the first choice came forward and in a moment chose the
- greatest tyranny; his mind having been darkened by folly and sensuality,
- he had not thought out the whole matter before he chose, and did
- not at first sight perceive that he was fated, among other evils,
- to devour his own children. But when he had time to reflect,
- and saw what was in the lot, he began to beat his breast and lament
- over his choice, forgetting the proclamation of the prophet;
- for, instead of throwing the blame of his misfortune on himself,
- he accused chance and the gods, and everything rather than himself.
- Now he was one of those who came from heaven, and in a former life
- had dwelt in a well-ordered State, but his virtue was a matter
- of habit only, and he had no philosophy. And it was true of others
- who were similarly overtaken, that the greater number of them came
- from heaven and therefore they had never been schooled by trial,
- whereas the pilgrims who came from earth, having themselves
- suffered and seen others suffer, were not in a hurry to choose.
- And owing to this inexperience of theirs, and also because the lot
- was a chance, many of the souls exchanged a good destiny for an evil
- or an evil for a good. For if a man had always on his arrival
- in this world dedicated himself from the first to sound philosophy,
- and had been moderately fortunate in the number of the lot,
- he might, as the messenger reported, be happy here, and also his
- journey to another life and return to this, instead of being rough
- and underground, would be smooth and heavenly. Most curious,
- he said, was the spectacle--sad and laughable and strange;
- for the choice of the souls was in most cases based on their experience
- of a previous life. There he saw the soul which had once been Orpheus
- choosing the life of a swan out of enmity to the race of women,
- hating to be born of a woman because they had been his murderers;
- he beheld also the soul of Thamyras choosing the life of a nightingale;
- birds, on the other hand, like the swan and other musicians,
- wanting to be men. The soul which obtained the twentieth lot chose
- the life of a lion, and this was the soul of Ajax the son of Telamon,
- who would not be a man, remembering the injustice which was
- done him the judgment about the arms. The next was Agamemnon,
- who took the life of an eagle, because, like Ajax, he hated
- human nature by reason of his sufferings. About the middle came
- the lot of Atalanta; she, seeing the great fame of an athlete,
- was unable to resist the temptation: and after her there followed
- the soul of Epeus the son of Panopeus passing into the nature of a
- woman cunning in the arts; and far away among the last who chose,
- the soul of the jester Thersites was putting on the form of a monkey.
- There came also the soul of Odysseus having yet to make a choice,
- and his lot happened to be the last of them all. Now the recollection
- of former tolls had disenchanted him of ambition, and he went
- about for a considerable time in search of the life of a private
- man who had no cares; he had some difficulty in finding this,
- which was lying about and had been neglected by everybody else;
- and when he saw it, he said that he would have done the had
- his lot been first instead of last, and that he was delighted
- to have it. And not only did men pass into animals, but I
- must also mention that there were animals tame and wild who
- changed into one another and into corresponding human natures--
- the good into the gentle and the evil into the savage, in all sorts
- of combinations.
-
- All the souls had now chosen their lives, and they went in the order
- of their choice to Lachesis, who sent with them the genius whom
- they had severally chosen, to be the guardian of their lives
- and the fulfiller of the choice: this genius led the souls first
- to Clotho, and drew them within the revolution of the spindle
- impelled by her hand, thus ratifying the destiny of each;
- and then, when they were fastened to this, carried them to Atropos,
- who spun the threads and made them irreversible, whence without
- turning round they passed beneath the throne of Necessity;
- and when they had all passed, they marched on in a scorching heat
- to the plain of Forgetfulness, which was a barren waste destitute
- of trees and verdure; and then towards evening they encamped
- by the river of Unmindfulness, whose water no vessel can hold;
- of this they were all obliged to drink a certain quantity,
- and those who were not saved by wisdom drank more than was necessary;
- and each one as he drank forgot all things. Now after they had gone
- to rest, about the middle of the night there was a thunderstorm
- and earthquake, and then in an instant they were driven upwards
- in all manner of ways to their birth, like stars shooting.
- He himself was hindered from drinking the water. But in what
- manner or by what means he returned to the body he could not say;
- only, in the morning, awaking suddenly, he found himself lying on
- the pyre.
-
- And thus, Glaucon, the tale has been saved and has not perished,
- and will save us if we are obedient to the word spoken; and we
- shall pass safely over the river of Forgetfulness and our soul
- will not be defiled. Wherefore my counsel is that we hold fast ever
- to the heavenly way and follow after justice and virtue always,
- considering that the soul is immortal and able to endure every sort
- of good and every sort of evil. Thus shall we live dear to one another
- and to the gods, both while remaining here and when, like conquerors
- in the games who go round to gather gifts, we receive our reward.
- And it shall be well with us both in this life and in the pilgrimage
- of a thousand years which we have been describing.
-
-
- The End of The Republic, by Plato***
-
-